528 111 61MB
English Pages 485 [548] Year 1953
Domenico Scarlatti by
Ralph Kirkpatrick A Famous
Harpsichordist's Study of the
Times, and Works of
Composers
One
Life,
of the Greatest
for His Instrument
mm i
i
m
MTS
1961
TfOMENICO SCARLATTI
Domenico
Scarlatti,
by Domingo Antonio de Velasco.
Alpiarga, Portugal, bequest of Jose Relvas
DOMENICO SCARLATTI BY K_sTalpn t^yl ir/cpatric/c
THOMAS
Y.
NEW YORK
CROWELL COMPANY •
ESTABLISHED
1834
Copyright, 1953, by Princeton University Press L. C.
Music
Card 68-29620
calligraphy by Gordon
Mapes
Printed in the United States of America Apollo Edition, 1968
1
PREFACE Few
composers of the stature of Domenico
neglected in the literature of music.
Long
Scarlatti
before
I
have been so was asked in
1940 to consider writing a book on him, I had become painfully aware of the inadequacy of the available texts and the absence of information fundamentally necessary to
me
as a
performer of his
works. I had begun collecting notes on his miscellaneous compositions
wherever
I
found them, and had enjoyed a
brief opportunity in
Venice in 1939 to gain some idea of the original texts of the sonatas. But I had no idea of the magnitude of the task which was to oc-
cupy a large part of 1
94
to
in part
my
time for the twelve years after
undertake a study of his
life
and works.
I
I
agreed
in
was motivated
by the challenge to fill a long-standing gap, but largely by pressing need for a well-established knowledge and under-
my own
standing of Scarlatti.
When
in 1941 I had no notion of being able to European source material. I conceived of the book as a mere compilation and reexamining of previously available biographical material, redeemed by its possible value as a study and interpretation of the music by an experienced harpsichord player. After preliminary cataloguing and orientation, including a study and I
began work
obtain access to
evaluation of all that had already been written, I fully realized
the paucity of factual and biographical information
Domenico that, apart
Scarlatti.
Inspired in part by SitwelPs
from the music
little
the only possible
itself,
concerning book,
way
I felt
of convey-
ing any notion of Scarlatti as a person, or of the nature of his
was
to
life,
attempt to draw a portrait in which the shadowy and almost
invisible figure of the principal
personage might be conjured up
background and by those personages known to have been associated with him. I wished this background and these personages by
his
to be seen as far as possible to be firmly attached to an
documented
facts.
To
this
through eighteenth-century eyes, and
underlying foundation of scrupulously
end
I
Portuguese, and Spanish history, and biographical
knowledge of
Scarlatti. •
v
•
Italian,
in investigating all possible
information concerning the personages
have been connected with
summer
spent a large part of the
of 1943 in acquiring the necessary general
Contemporary
I
knew
diaries
to
and
PREFACE memoirs, and
all
the available travel journals of eighteenth-century
me
with a mass of
and copied-out excerpts of which the amount
finally retained
visitors to Italy, Portugal,
notes
book represents only the merest
in this
The due
and Spain furnished fraction.
next years, apart from the frequent and long interruptions
activities,
performing
were occupied with the assimilation and organization of
and
my
not to mention struggles with
this material,
literary
my
time of
to the considerable extension at that
almost non-existent
summer
In the
historical techniques.
of 1946, how-
ever, I put together a draft of the biographical portion of the book,
based on the surprisingly large body of material it
about Scarlatti!
)
had been able European sources.
that I
try without access to
My
in the biographical portion of the book, not so
basic intentions, as in the
biography that
I
to unpublished sources.
London,
my
a vast
now found I
was able
by a summer passed
decision to
if still
transformed I
amount of it
to
make
unsatisfying
my
attitude
possible to
work
in Italy.
all
in
its
make from
in libraries
hither-
and archives
in
Venice, and
But most important of
all
a visit to Spain. This not only produced
amount of new toward
an interpreter of
Scarlatti.
In the meantime
I
material, but completely
Scarlatti's music.
date whatever small comprehension
as
much
original contribution to Scar-
Rome, Naples, Bologna, Parma, and
Paris,
to benefit
w?^
enough of
return to Europe in 1947 produced a drastic and decisive
change
latti's
(little
to accumulate in this coun-
had begun
may
I
From
feel I
that time
have acquired
1943 a chronological study of
in
the harpsichord sonatas, designed as a basis for the musical
portion of the book. This I completed during the
The summer
of 1948 in
Rome
summer
was spent largely
biographical portion of the book and in assimilating the terial I
and a
had acquired
in Italy
and
the remainder of that year I set up cars
1
947.
new ma-
brief return to Spain
Portugal that autumn added further material. For
visit to
Pullman
A
Spain.
of
in recasting the
between concerts, and
at
my
typewriter in hotels and
home
in
moments
that could
be spared from practicing and rehearsals, transcribing Portuguese
and Spanish documents, and making what was nearly the
final draft of Scarlatti's
I
then fondly believed
biography.
PREFACE The summer of 1949 was spent in Rome wrestling with the problems of writing and organization of the musical portion. Again, but not for the
last time,
I
went through the complete my notes and
chronological series of the sonatas, supplementing
my
clarifying
ideas as to the
method and terminology
of conveying
on paper their fundamental character and the underlying principles
and harmonic
of their formal
a
knowledge of music and
made
structure. I
musical portion that would prove, were
still
it
a performer's understanding of
protection at all against the ability to write
The
nonsense.
a draft of the
in existence, that
relationship of biographical
proved a troublesome problem, and
I
some
it is
no
really shocking
and musical portions
constantly fluctuated be-
tween an attempt to unite them and a decision to separate them. subsequently realized that verbal discussion of poetical
and imaginative
specific pieces
I
on a
level can be extraordinarily dangerous. Re-
peatedly I have realized that what I have written about a piece distorts or limits
what
as a
have often found myself batting the misleading
gram
I feel its
engaged
and incomplete
at
content to be. (I
an instrument in com-
indications of
my own
pro-
notes.)
summer
In the
problems of
performer
tacitly
what
of 1950, also spent in
Rome,
in connection with the musical portion, I
had written
in 1949,
and decided
I
resolved the
threw away most
to retain
my
initial
separation of biography and music. I realized that to a picture of a musical personality I could never bring verbal completeness,
even were
I
possessed of greater literary
ness to spend a further long portion of
my
skill,
life in
and of a willingpolishing and re-
vising, that in writing I could only discuss certain aspects of Scarlatti's
them
music,
This latti
tion,
and that only
as a musician could I
hope
to bring
together. is
and
why
I
consider this book not really a portrait of Scar-
his music, despite the illusory
appearance of
its
organiza-
but only a series of contributions to a portrait, a portrait that
can be completed only by the music
itself.
Just as the biographical
life by that and places, so the musical part, by ininterpretive comment, discussions of the special
portion attempts to outline the portrayal of Scarlatti's of surrounding personages
formative data, aspects of
harmony, form, and performance, attempts •
vii
'
to outline
PREFACE something which by
its
very nature will always be as absent from
the printed page as by historical accident are the direct emanations of Scarlatti's person.
For the materials of this book libraries and their staffs:
am
I
lowing
in
largely indebted to the fol-
New
Haven, Yale University
Library, Library of the Yale School of Music; Washington, Li-
brary of Congress; Cambridge, Harvard College Library ;
York,
New York
Museum, Library of the Royal Fitzwilliam Museum; Paris,
Hispanic Society; London, British College
Music;
of
New
Public Library, Frick Art Reference Library,
Cambridge,
Bibliotheque Nationale; Venice, Biblioteca Nazionale Marciana;
Parma, Biblioteca Palatina; Bologna, Biblioteca del Liceo Musi-
Rome,
cale;
Biblioteca Apostolica Vaticana, Archivio di S. Pietro,
Biblioteca Santa Cecilia, Biblioteca Angelica; Naples, Biblioteca del
Conservatorio di
Pietro a Maiella; Madrid, Biblioteca Nacional,
S.
Archivo Historico Nacional, Biblioteca de Palacio, Archivo de Palacio, Archivo de la Capilla Real, Archivo Historico de Proto-
cols, Biblioteca Municipal, Hemeroteca,
For valuable information and grateful to his death
and
my
material at
my work with
Bauer
my
in
preliminary work
now I
and the
Duke
Levi,
Servizio
office
entire unpublished
first
that
was
time. In
first
my
in
Virgilio Mortari, Ferruccio
Padre Arnaldo Furlotti, Ennio Francesco Malipiero, Dr. Ulderico Ro-
Conte A. E.
Doro
the
until
England by Vere PilkingDent; in France by Messrs.
have been helped
Frank Walker, Edward J. Adhemar and Heugel; in Italy by
landi,
am
researches I
Rome, who
much
appears in print for the
ton,
Porrini,
Lisbon,
unfailing interest and helpfulness;
Munich, who placed her
disposal, with the result that
discovered by her
Vignanelli,
my
for aid in
predecessors, to S. A. Luciani in
watched
to Luise
Museo Alba;
Torre do Tombo.
Biblioteca Nacional, Archivo da
Saffi,
Italiano
Microfilm,
Douglas
of the U.S. Cultural Attache;
in
Allanbrook, Spain by the
of San Lucar, Walter Starkie, Miss Margaret Cole, Miss
Leslie Frost, the
Marques del
Saltillo,
Mathilde Lopez Serrano,
Federico Navarro Franco, Jose Subira, Enrique Barrera, and the Scarlatti family, especially Julio Scarlatti,
Rosa and Luis Rallo;
in
Portugal by Santiago Kastner and by Mario de Sampayo Ribeiro, •
viii
•
PREFACE who
sent
me some
of Domenico's Portuguese vocal pieces and the
in Vienna by Beekman Cannon United States by friends too numerous to mention.
V;
portrait of Joao
For
illustrations in this
Scholz,
who procured
for
volume
I
me from
am
;
and
in the
especially indebted to Janos
Turin the entire
series of Juvar-
Domenico's operas, and who permitted me to pubthe Ghezzi drawing from his collection to John Thacher,
ra drawings for lish
;
who brought
me from Madrid
back for
a copy of Amiconi's en-
graving with the supposed Scarlatti portrait ; to John Havemeyer,
who photographed Winternitz
house for me;
Scarlatti's
photographs of
for
Italian
advice in pictorial matters was given Sachs,
Emanuel Valuable
and
by Agnes Mongan, Paul
Edgar Wind, Sanchez Canton, Hyatt Mayor, Albert M.
Friend, and
Valuable this
me
to
harpsichords.
Edward Croft-Murray.
aid, especially in connection
book, has been given
suggested that
I
write
me
with the historical part of
by Carleton Sprague Smith, who
first
by Manfred Bukofzer, Leo Schrade,
it;
Oliver Strunk, Arthur Mendel, and by
Eva
J.
O'Meara. All of
the aforementioned have been liberally helpful with criticism on various parts of the book as
For rigorous I
am
gradually took shape.
it
criticism, especially of the biographical chapters,
Miss O'Meara, John Bryson, Day friends, but most of
especially indebted to
Thorpe, Thornton Wilder, and many other all to
Beecher Hogan,
who
spent hours in detailed criticism and
to Nathan Hale, whose penetratcomments exerted a strong influence. For the musical chapters I have been fortunate enough to enjoy criticism and discussion, especially of the chapter on Scarlatti's harmony, or of elements in it, from Manfred Bukofzer, Roger Sessions, Darius Milhaud, Erich Itor Kahn, Quincy Porter, and
correction of eight chapters;
and
ing
Paul Hindemith. The chapter on performance strongly
reflects
the influence and ideas of Diran Alexanian, the one single musician of
my
acquaintance from
whom
I
have learned more than from
any other.
During the past ten years I have frequently enjoyed was as encouraging and as helpful as the many
that
direct con-
memorable were the three delightful and arduous summers I
tributions to the book. in this respect
hospitality
Often
I
received both. Especially
•
ix
•
PREFACE spent in
Rome
Academy. Also
with Laurance and Isabel Roberts, of the American I recall with vivid appreciation the fortnight dur-
ing the final preparation of the manuscript which I spent as the bedridden but pampered guest of Lois and Quincy Porter. Special thanks are due Albert Seay, who for nearly a year worked
with me on the checking of notes and the preparation of the manuscript, and who, with the occasional assistance of Mrs. Seay, prepared most of the final typewritten copy and the musical ex-
amples. Further thanks are due the Princeton University Press for its
profoundly satisfying handling of
To
those I have mentioned, and to
this book.
many more,
I
owe
gratitude
in perpetuity.
Guilford, Connecticut
June 1953
For the present reprinting some small but obvious misprints have been corrected. additions have been
made
in the
The
for the
most part
principal changes
Appendices and Catalogue
result of direct consultation of the
and as a
Munster and Vienna manu-
scripts.
Further indebtedness should here be recorded: to Alfred Kuhn,
who prepared
the index; to Dr.
graciously received
photographs ; and
me to
in
Wilhelm Wormann, who most
Munster and procured the necessary
Charles Buckley,
Amiconi portrait of Farinelli (Fig. 37). Guilford, Connecticut
May
1955
who
traced the missing
CONTENTS PREFACE
v
REFERENCE NOTE
chapter Naples tories
•
ment
*
i.
The Fledgling.
Birth
•
xix
The
•
Alessandro's Teaching
•
Domenico's First Operas
•
chapter
The
Conserva-
Voyage
First
Florence and Ferdinando de' Medici
ments
•
Domenico's First Employ-
•
Uncertainty
Political
3
Family
Scarlatti
•
•
Departure from Naples.
The Young Eagle.
ii.
Alessandro's Letter
•
Venice
•
2I
Music and Masquerades
The
Conservatories
First
Account of Domenico's Harpsichord Playing
ingrave
Rome
Cristofori's Instru-
•
•
Gasparini
•
The
Venetian Opera
Rose-
•
Friendship with Handel.
•
chapter Queen
in.
Roman
Patrimony.
35
Cardinal Ottoboni and her Circle Pasquini Corelli Arcadia Maria Casimira of Poland Capeci, Juvarra, and Domenico's Operas.
.
.
Cristina
•
•
•
chapter The
•
•
•
•
•
Church and Theater.
iv.
Vatican
•
S&
The Portuguese Embassy
•
Roman TheThe
and Domenico's Last Operas Emancipation Mythical London Voyage Departure.
aters
•
•
•
chapter
v.
Lisbon
Joao
Antonio riage
•
•
•
67
Lisbon Patriarchy.
Seixas
V •
Maria Barbara Don Domenico's MarAlessandro's Death •
Royal Chapel
•
•
•
Royal Weddings.
chapter Seville
•
The Spanish Scene. Felipe V and Isabel Farnese
8l
vi.
Maria Barbara
•
Aranjuez,
La •
•
Fernando and
Granja, Escorial xi
•
•
Madrid
•
CONTENTS Juvarra and the Royal Palace
Madrid Opera Gravicembalo latti
•
•
•
Essercizi fer Knighthood Death of Catalina Scar-
Scarlatti's
•
Scarlatti's Portrait
•
Arrival of Farinelli
•
•
Death of Felipe V.
chapter
vii.
The Reign of the Melomanes.
J
07
J
37
and Accession of Fernando and Maria Barbara Aranjuez Embarkations at Palace Opera Farinelli Scarlatti's Second Marriage and Harpsichord Sonatas Scarlatti
•
•
•
•
•
Family Letter
•
•
Amiconi's Portrait
Royal Chapel
•
Scarlatti's
End
Reputation out-
Testament Death of Maria Barbara, of Fernando VI Regime and Farinelli's Departure Posterity.
side Spain
Forebodings of the
•
and Death
New
Only Surviving
Scarlatti's
•
Soler
•
•
Scarlatti's
•
•
•
chapter
vin.
Royal Sonatas.
The Queen's and Other Manuscripts The Missing Autographs The Designation Sonata The Pairwise Ar•
•
•
rangement Chronology of the Sonatas Early Works, Back•
•
ground of Scarlatti's Keyboard Style The Earliest Pieces The Fugues Early Sonatas The Essercizi The Flamboyant Period and the Easy Pieces The Middle Period •
•
•
•
•
•
•
The Late
Sonatas.
chapter
ix. Scarlatti's
Harpsichord.
1
1S
and the Queen's Instruments -Conclusions as to Scarlatti's Harpsichord The Early Pianoforte Scarlatti's Organ Music Scarlatti's Harpsichord Playing Scarlatti's Keyboard Technique Harpsichord Sound as Bounded by the Organ, Guitar, and Orchestra Shadings of Harpsichord Sound Imitations of other Instruments Farinelli's
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
The
Influence of the Spanish Guitar.
chapter
x. Scarlatti's
Consistency of Scarlatti's
20 7
Harmony.
Harmonic
Style
•
Basic Triads
and the Three-Chord Analysis Inversion and Fundamental Bass Remaining Elements of Harmonic Vo•
•
•
xii
•
CONTENTS Chords
cabulary, Peculiarities of Seventh
Movement
Diatonic tensities
•
of
Harmony
•
Cadential
vs.
Harmonic
In-
•
Vertical
Essential Peculiarities of Scarlatti's Treatment:
Dropping and Adding of
Voices, Transposition of Voices,
Harmonic Ellipse, Pedal Points both Real and Understood Harmonic Superposition Contractions and Exten•
sions
•
•
Longo's "Corrections" and
Scarlatti's Intentions
Equal Temperament and Key System Modulation
chapter
Temporary and
•
Structural Modulation.
The Anatomy of the
xi.
Rules for
Soler's
•
•
Scarlatti 251
Sonata.
The Varied Organism tion
Crux The Opening •
The Pre-Crux ther Closing
Restatement
•
•
of the Scarlatti Sonata
and Function of
Identification
•
•
The
its
Continuation
•
•
Defini-
Members, the
The
Transition
•
The Post-Crux The Closing The FurThe Final Closing The Excursion The Main Types of Form The Closed Sonata •
«
•
•
•
•
•
The Open Sonata
•
Forms
Exceptional
•
Tonal Structure
•
Treatment of Thematic Material, the Three Main Traditions
•
The
Interplay of Forces that Shape the Scarlatti
Sonata.
chapter xii. The Performance
of the Scarlatti 28 °
Sonatas. Attitude of the Performer tion
and Dynamics
Articulation,
and
•
•
Scarlatti's
Text
Tempo and Rhythm
Inflection
•
•
•
Registra-
Phrasing,
Expressive Range.
APPENDICES appendix
i.
The
Scarlatti Family.
A. Notes on the Scarlatti Family. B.
The
Scarlatti
Family Tree. xin
•
327
CONTENTS appendix
ii.
Documents, chronologically
ar-
ranged, concerning Domenico
and
Scarlatti
appendix
in.
his Offspring.
33 I
Documents concerning 3 60
Instruments. A. Cardinal Ottoboni's Instruments. B. Inventory of
C. Provisions
Queen Maria
of
Barbara's Instruments.
Testament
Farinelli's
concerning
Music and Instruments.
D.
Indications
for
Registration
in
Organ
Scarlatti's
Pieces.
appendix
iv.
Ornamentation
3 65
in Scarlatti.
The Appoggiatura The Short The Long Appoggiatura The Trill The Tied Trill The Trill with Termination The Upper Appoggiatura and Trill The Lower Appoggiatura and Trill The Rhythmic Values of the Trill The Tremulo The Remaining Ornaments not Indicated by Signs: The Mordent, The Turn, The Slide, The Acciaccatura, ArpeggiaSources of Information
Appoggiatura
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
tion
•
Additions to Scarlatti's Text
•
•
Peculiarities of
Rhyth-
mic Notation.
appendix
v.
Keyboard Works.
399
A. Principal Manuscript Sources. B.
Note on Miscellaneous Manuscripts of Secondary
Importance. C. Eighteenth-Century Editions.
D. The Editions of Czerny, Longo, Gerstenberg, and Newton.
appendix
vi.
Vocal Music.
413
A. Operas.
and other Occasional
B. Oratorios, Serenades, •
xiv
•
Pieces.
CONTENTS C. Partial List of tributed to
Domenico
Chamber Cantatas and
Arias At-
Scarlatti.
D. Church Music.
appendix
vii.
Miscellaneous, Doubtful, and 425 Spurious Works.
A. Miscellaneous
Works
Attributed to Domenico Scar-
latti.
B. Spurious
Keyboard Works.
C. Spurious Vocal Works.
BIBLIOGRAPHY.
4*9
NOTE ON CATALOGUE.
440
catalogue of sonatas and Table of Principal Sources in Approximately Chronological Order.
table of sonatas
in the
442
Order of Longo's 457
Edition.
THE SCARLATTI FAMILY TREE.
4^1
ADDITIONS AND CORRECTIONS, JUNE
I
963.
+6 5
FURTHER ADDITIONS, APRIL 1 968.
*7 2
INDEX.
473
xv
•
REFERENCE NOTE The
numbering of the sonatas follows that of the Catalogue of
Sonatas at the end of the book. This Catalogue identifies the sonatas in terms of
My
Longo numbers and
of their principal sources.
bers.
K when it is them from those of another system. A following the catalogue converts Longo numbers into K numSonata numbers in Roman numerals in Chapter XI and in
italic
arabic throughout the rest of the
catalogue numbers are prefixed by the letter
necessary to distinguish table
{Sixty Sonatas
.
.
.
New
my
edition
York, G. Schirmer), designed
in part
examples for
to provide a series of additional musical
further supplemented by
my
book refer
to
this book,
and
recorded performance of these same
sonatas (Columbia).
The
examples
text of the musical
source cited in their captions.
is
Examples
taken from the primary
Appendix IV, however, and Parma manuscripts. the examples and in referin
are based on a collation of the Venice
Where
possible,
measure numbers
in
ences in the text correspond to those of Longo's edition.
When
chronology or
title
gives an obvious clue to the location
of a source reference in the Appendices or Catalogue, no source
reference
mention
is
given for material in the
in the
footnotes
may
text.
Books given abbreviated
be fully identified in the Bibli-
ography.
Documents are transcribed literally with respect to orthography and punctuation. Eighteenth-century capitalization in many cases is too ambiguous to be strictly followed. Quotations from English sources respect the orthography of the original, but the eighteenth-
century mannerism of setting proper names in
italics
or capitals
has been eliminated in the quotations from Blainville, Clarke, and
Mainwaring.
xvi
ILLUSTRATIONS Domenico
Frontispiece:
Scarlatti,
by Domingo Antonio de Velasco
Alpiarca, Portugal, bequest of Jose Relvas
(following page 323) 1.
Naples, by Antonio Jolli
2.
Alessandro
3.
Italian
by an unknown painter
4.
Francesco Gasparini, by Pier Leone Ghezzi
5.
Antonio Vivaldi, by Ghezzi
6.
Arcangelo Corelli, by Howard, engraved by Van der Gucht
7.
Cardinal Ottoboni, by Trevisano, engraved by Freij
8.
Filippo Juvarra, by Ghezzi
Drawings by Filippo Juvarra
9-14.
theater, 15. 1
Scarlatti,
Harpsichord
6.
for
The Piazza Navona, by Giuseppe
The Piazza San
17-20.
Queen Maria
presumably for operas by Domenico
Pietro,
Casimira's
Scarlatti
Vasi
by Vasi
Autographs of Domenico
Scarlatti
G
minor
21.
Autograph tenor part of the Miserere
22.
Ouverture of Tolomeo
23.
Et
24.
Joao V, by an unknown painter
25.
Maria Barbara de Braganza, by Domenico Dupra
26.
Fernando VI
27.
Felipe
28.
The Fountain
of the Tritons at Aranjuez, by Velazquez
29.
The
by MichelAnge Houasse
30.
Farinelli in a female role,
31.
Farinelli, by Jacopo Amiconi, engraved by
32.
Frontispiece of Scarlatti's Essercizi, designed by Amiconi
33.
Vignette from the
34.
Page from
35.
Domenico
incarnatus
V
from the Mass
as a boy,
in
G
in
minor
by Jean Ranc
and the Royal Family, by Van Loo
Escorial,
title
by Ghezzi
page of
Wagner
Scarlatti's Essercizi
Scarlatti's Essercizi
Scarlatti [?], lithograph
•
xvii
by Alfred Lemoine
ILLUSTRATIONS 36.
Domenico
Scarlatti
[?],
by Amiconi, engraved by Flipart
(Detail of Fig. 38) 37-
Farinelli at Aranjuez,
by Amiconi
38. Fernando VI, Maria Barbara, and the Spanish Court, by Amiconi, engraved by Flipart 39-
Autograph
40.
Scarlatti's
41-
Horn
42.
Guitar player, by
letter of Scarlatti
house [?] in Madrid
players, by
Ghezzi
Goya
43-
Sonata 208,
44-
Sonata 208, second half, in the
first
half, in the Venice manuscript
XVlll
Parma manuscript
T>
OMENICO SCA%LATTI
I
THE FLEDGLING
•
NAPLES BIRTH THE SCARLATTI FAMILY THE CONSERVATORIES ALESSANDRO's TEACHING DOMENICo's FIRST EMPLOYMENT PO•
*
•
•
LITICAL UNCERTAINTY
•
FIRST
VOYAGE
ROME
*
FLORENCE AND DOMENI-
USTOFORl's INSTRUMENTS •
•
DEPARTURE FROM NAPLES
n 1685 Naples was as populous, as noisy, and as it is now. Even then it was a little battered, and from the summit of the town its dirty as
crumbling medieval fortresses looked out over the harbor.
swarmed magnificence and
filth.
Up
the hill from the waterfront
jumble of splendor and squalor, of
a
Palaces with the stench of the gutter rising
to their
very cornices bounded broad sunlit squares or concealed the
narrow
alleys that
were then
as
much
out of bounds to the respecta-
ble rich as they were to the Allied soldiers of 1944.
The
inhabitants
of these dark alley dens on the Neapolitan hillside lived then, as street. The street was not only the thoroughand the promenade, but also the center of social life and natural functions. There naked babies played in the dunghills; their brothers and sisters chased dogs and mules; and their elders made love. In the narrower passages an occasional clatter of hooves drowned out the muffled sounds of bare human feet. In the streets that were
they live now, in the fare
broad enough could be heard the rattling of carriage wheels, the lashing of whips, and the soft belching cry of the Neapolitan carter to his horse or,
more probably,
as colorful as the piles of
a very Vesuvius of curses, as rich and
melons and peppers on the
street corners
and as odoriferous as the fish of the nearby market. Only slightly subdued at the hour of siesta, this racket gave place at night to guitars and strident Neapolitan voices raised in quarrel or in amorous lament. But even in the relative stillness of the early morning hours Naples scarcely afforded a sense of calm. All was potentially in motion, explosive, as was that quietly smoking cone to the left of the great bay.
Such respectability, cleanliness, or
dignity as appeared on the streets of Naples passed scarcely noticed
or became conspicuous only in the
pomp
of viceregal and church ly
THE FLEDGLING processions.
For the most part these
virtues concealed themselves
palace courtyards and behind the tightly closed shutters of
in
upper
floors.
Domenico
Scarlatti's
family probably enjoyed the respectability
of upper floors or of removal far back in the courtyard 1
Strada Toledo, but a confused to his cradle at
in noise
sisters in
If during his infancy there
and animation from the outer
must have been furnished by
and
from the
of sound must have penetrated
most hours of the day.
was anything lacking it
hum
the nursery. In his early
city,
and squealing brothers
his yelling
Domenico seldom can
life
have known solitude.
Domenico
was born on October 26, 1685. 2
Scarlatti
sixth of ten children
born to Alessandro
Scarlatti
He
and Antonia
Anzalone between 1679 and 1695. (They were married on April
12, 1678.)
Alessandro
had already asserted
Scarlatti, at the
his musical fecundity,
was the
in
Rome
age of twenty-five,
and was rapidly
ap-
proaching the height of his fame as an opera composer. Born in
Palermo on
May
early age by
2,
Queen
1660, discovered and launched in
Sweden,
Cristina of
whom
Rome
at
an
he had served
as
maestro di caf fella since 1680, 3 Alessandro had arrived in Naples only a few months before Domenico's birth to take up his
new
position as maestro di caffella to the Spanish Viceroy of Naples.
Domenico's baptismal record
by the highest Neapolitan his
own
life
testifies to his
of royal patronage.
family's endorsement
and prophetically foreshadows
nobility,
The
infant
Domenico, wrapped
in
the swaddling clothes of immemorial Mediterranean custom, "was
held at the holy font by Sig ra D. Eleanora del Carpio, Princess of Colobrano [the Vicereine of Naples],
and Sig r D. Domenico
Martio Carafa, Duke of Maddaloni." Domenico's elder brothers and illustrious godparents.
sisters,
Among them
born in Rome, had no
less
were Filippo Bernini the son
of the architect, Cardinal Pamphili, Flaminia Pamphili e Palla1 In February 1699, Alessandro Scarlatti was domiciled in the house of Baron Pannone in the Strada di Toledo, now the Via Roma. (Prota-Giurleo, pp. 8-10.) 2 Where not indicated by footnotes, all sources for biographical information concerning Domenico Scarlatti and the Scarlatti family may be traced to the documents listed, reproduced, or summarized in Appendices I and II. 3 Dent, pp. 25, 34} Tiby, p. 276; Fienga, in Revue Musicale, X.
•
4
'
THE FLEDGLING vicini,
and Queen Cristina
by their
4
Yet, though well insulated from the swarming Neapolitan
herself.
aristocratic connections
populace, the Scarlatti family, or rather the Scarlatti clan, had not
emerged from the
yet fully
obscurity of
sandro did not yet enjoy his
Domenico
won
also
in later life.
its Sicilian
of Cavalier e,
title
The
5
century or
origins. Ales-
an honor which
more
of aristo-
enjoyed by Domenico and his descendants had
cratic pretensions
not yet opened. All the Scarlattis, even Alessandro and Domenico
were dependent on the patronage of which they gained admission
at the height of their glory,
their superiors. Despite the ease with into the highest social
Domenico's Trapani.
and
they were hired musicians.
artistic circles,
Sicilian grandfather, Pietro Scarlatti,
On May
was born
in
5, 1658, he was married in Palermo to Eleonora
may have been
d'Amato. Possibly he himself
a musician, for five
of his six surviving children were musicians or associated with music.
We
know nothing about him
or his wife after the Scarlatti
household in Palermo was broken up in 1672. Nor do we know
when
the
first
settled in
Scarlattis
Tommaso, both
Francesco and
Rome
Naples. Domenico's uncles,
them
musicians,
had lived there
Melchiorra and Anna Maria, had
since infancy, but his aunts,
rived from
of
only a few years before.
6
ar-
Anna Maria was
a
singer.
Alessandro
Scarlatti's
own
establishment in Naples was for a
time slightly clouded by scandal. Unfavorable rumors appear to
have been
afloat at the
to the Viceroy
native
time he was appointed maestro di cappella
on February
Neapolitan
17, 1684,
over the heads of several
including
musicians,
the
eminent Francesco
Provenzale. At the same time, his brother Francesco Scarlatti was
given a post as
first violinist.
7
A
contemporary
diarist reports that:
"In the early part of November, the Viceroy discharged and graced the Secretary of Justice, the Governor of Pozzuoli
maintaining close and
whom
of
;
.
.
the
Major
Domo who
was
dis-
also
and a favorite Page, because they were
illicit
was called the
.
relations with several actresses, one
Scarlati,
and whose brother
4
this viceroy
Fienga, "La veritable patrie et la famille d'Alessandro Scarlatti," pp. 230-235. References to Alessandro Scarlatti as Caval'tere appear to date from 1716 and afterwards. (Dent, pp. 132-133.) See Chapter VII, note 85. 5
6 7
Prota-Giurleo, pp. Dent, p. 34.
9,
18, 21-225 Dent, p. 35.
*
5
'
THE FLEDGLING had appointed Maestro
Cappella at the Palace in competition
di
They had formed
with other native virtuosi.
a Triumvirate to
dispose as they pleased of offices and responsibilities, giving positions to those
who
offered and gave the best price, and performing
make money and to please their Whoring Actresses, all of this without the knowledge of the Viceroy, who when informed of everything, as was mentioned before, removed them from their positions and disgraced them. To other
illicit
actions in order to
the Scarlati and her companions he gave orders that they should leave this city or shut themselves up in a convent. In conformity
with this order, they retired to the convent of the Vicaria."
8
Burney some years
S.
Antoniello, near
actress
and opera singer," writes Dr.
later, "is a still
more uncommon phenomenon
"But a chaste
Great Britain." 9
in Italy, than in
This was not the only skeleton sandro's debut in
Rome
in the
family closet, for Ales-
1679 had been marked by a burst of 10 of his. But skeletons in Mediterranean
in
scandal concerning a sister
countries are neither closely concealed nor assiduously
and both of Domenico
Scarlatti's aunts
remembered,
appear to have attained
well-married respectability by the time he was growing up. In
1688 Melchiorra married Nicolo Pagano, a double-bass player the viceregal chapel. piccola, a
11
Anna Maria,
in
in
marrying Niccola Barba-
wealthy Neapolitan shipowner and occasional opera im-
presario, in
1699, found
it
advisable to be inaccurate about her
age and vague about her past. 12
Young Domenico
found himself
Scarlatti
growing family
clan,
known whether
his
now
in
the center of a
firmly established in Naples. It
is
not
Neapolitan family background extended back
beyond his father's first professional appearance in 1680, 13 or beyond the arrival in Naples of his uncles Francesco and Tommaso, then mere children. At the time the Palermo establishment was 8 Prota-Giurleo, pp. 7-8, from the diary of Domenico Conforto, Naples, Bibl. Naz. Walker (pp. 190-191) thinks the sister in question was Melchiorra, not Anna Maria, as hitherto supposed. 9 Burney, Memoirs of Metastasio, Vol. I, p. 101. 10 Ademollo, pp. 157-158; Dent, pp. 23-24. Neither of these reports specifi.
.
.
cally identifies the Scarlatti sister in question. 12 Prota-Giurleo, p. 18. ibid., pp. 8-10, 16. Alessandro's Gli Equivoci was performed in Naples in 1680. (Dent, p. 34; Croce, / Teatri di Na-poli, Anno XV, p. 179.) 11
13
•
6
•
THE FLEDGLING broken up in 1672 there
may have been
Scarlatti relatives already
living in Naples. Domenico's mother, Antonia Anzalone, although
the daughter of a native of
Rome, 14 bore
the same
name
as a
Neapolitan family in which musicians were as plentiful as in the
(During the
Scarlatti dynasty.
first
half of the seventeenth cen-
by the name of Anzalone were active 15 It is conceivable that Domenico's Neapolitan backin Naples.) ground and musical ancestry were more extended than at present tury, at least ten musicians
they are
We
known
to be.
have said that
as a child
Domenico can hardly have known
solitude.
Neither as an incipient musician can he have known
isolation.
He
cesco
was a
was surrounded by musical
violinist
and
a
relatives.
His uncle Fran-
composer of considerable accomplish16
Uncle Tommaso became a popular comic tenor on the Neapolitan of era bujja 17 stage. His aunt Anna Maria had been a singer, and Nicolo ment, although drearily unsuccessful in later
life.
Pagano, his uncle by marriage to Melchiorra
Almost
musician.
music.
Of
his
all
own
Scarlatti,
was a
of his father's generation was associated with
generation, his elder brother Pietro, like him-
become a composer, 18 and his sister Flaminia is known to have sung. But the entire family was dwarfed by the overwhelming musical activity of Alessandro Scarlatti himself. By the time Domenico was eleven years old, his father had composed some 19 sixty works for the stage, as well as innumerable serenades, cantatas, and church pieces. The house of a successful and prolific composer like Alessandro Scarlatti must certainly have swarmed with rehearsing singers and instrumentalists, consulting librettists and scene designers, and visiting poets and painters. Since his youth in Rome, Alessandro had been accustomed to the society of eminent and cultivated men. Among the visitors to the Scarlatti household was the great painter, Francesco Solimena. His grandiloquent frescoes, some now
self,
14
15
was
to
Fienga, "La veritable patrie et la famille d'Alessandro Scarlatti," p. 229. // Conservatorio dei Poverty p. 167, and // Conservatorio di
Giacomo,
M.
S.
delta Pieta dei Turc/iini, pp. 299, 311. Dent, p. 34. 17 Croce, "I Teatri di Napoli," Anno XV, p. 285; Prota-Giurleo, p. 23. 18 Florimo, Vol. IV, p. 22. The Bibliotheque Nationale in Paris has three can16
tas ascribed to Pietro 18 Lorenz, Vol. I, p.
(Vi 16.
THE FLEDGLING sadly cracked by bombings,
cover vast areas of Neapolitan
still
churches. Solimena, "being a lover of music, used frequently to
go
in the
evening to the house of Cavaliere Alessandro
an admirable musician
who
by few
will be excelled
Scarlatti,
in the
world
composing operas with expression and melody more transporting to the heart and moving to the passions. At Scarlatti's house then he took pleasure in hearing Flaminia, the daughter of that for
great virtuoso,
who sang
One however he
was
divinely. So cordial
and of
that he wished to paint a portrait of her
by
mented by it."
20
her father.
did make, showing her looking into a mirror, in
such a composition and so beautifully painted that of praise
their friendship
Scarlatti
all.
I
was once present when
several foreign experts
it
was the object
it
was much compli-
who never
tired of looking at
Flaminia's portrait has unfortunately disappeared. Flaminia
Scarlatti
seems never to have sung in public, but
at
home
she must
have performed many of the chamber cantatas of Alessandro Scar-
and perhaps some of Domenico's doubtful that young Mimo,
latti
It is
called, could ever
remember
music, or recollect the
first
earliest compositions.
Domenico was familiarly when he was not hearing
as
a time
occasion on which he himself began
There is no evidence to show that Alessandro Scarlatti launched Domenico on his musical profession with any of the elaborate care that Sebastian Bach devoted to the first instruction of Friedemann and Emmanuel. Most of Alessandro's surviving pedagogical work dates from later life, as does his reputo play or sing.
tation as a teacher.
The
family
life
of the Scarlattis must have been
very different from that of the Bachs.
J.
S.
Bach maintained
relatively steady routine of church duties, teaching
He
traveled
little
and lived
in relative quiet
anyone associated with the theater,
and
as
a
and performing.
and
security.
But
to
Alessandro was, regularity,
unknown. Alessandro was conbetween Naples and Rome, interviewing libretaccommodating his princely patrons, rehearsing and cajoling
quiet,
security are proverbially
stantly traveling tists,
opera singers. Hardly ever did a predictable month
lie
before him.
Probably Domenico learned the rudiments of music from some other 20
member
of the family or simply imitated
Prota-Giurleo, p. 32, quoted from ed architelti nafoletani y Vol. IV, p. 471.
De Dominici,
V'tte
what he heard de f fittort, scultori,
THE FLEDGLING around him. Even before he learned to read he was doubtless singing as a choirboy.
From some
source, however, he surely re-
ceived early instruction in singing, thoroughbass, keyboard playing,
and counterpoint. Later he was most forming
certainly put to
work
per-
musical tasks for his father, arranging and
all sorts of
copying music, tuning instruments, accompanying at rehearsals, participating in the innumerable duties in which a busy composer and conductor requires assistance. He must have absorbed much from the surrounding musical activity as naturally as he breathed.
There tion in
is
no record that Domenico ever received formal
instruc-
any of the conservatories. The conservatories of Naples
achieved their greatest fame in the generation after Domenico's, but contemporary accounts of these veritable music factories reflect
some of the
frenetic activity that
rounded Domenico
in his
on a smaller
scale
must have
sur-
youth. These institutions were crowded
and had not outlived their origin as charitable institutions. They were four in number the Poveri di Gesu Cristo, Santa Maria di Loreto, S. Onofrio, and Santa Maria della Pieta dei Turchini. Dr. Burney visited them many years later when they were in full swing. " October 31. [1770] This morning I went with young Oliver to his Conservatorio of St. Onofrio, and visited all the rooms where :
On
the boys practise, sleep, and eat.
the
first flight
trumpeter, screaming upon his instrument
till
of stairs was a
he was ready to
same
burst ; on the second was a French horn, bellowing in the
manner. In the cert, consisting
violins,
common
practising
room
there was a
of seven or eight harpsichords,
and several
voices, all
Dutch
more than
as
con-
many
performing different things, and
in
same rooms; but it being holiday time, many were absent who usually study and practise in this room. The jumbling them all together in this manner may be convenient for the house, and may teach the boys different keys: other boys
to attend to their
going forward
own
at the
were writing
may
parts with firmness, whatever else
same time;
by obliging them to play loud in
in the
it
in
may
likewise give
them
be
force,
order to hear themselves; but
the midst of such jargon, and continued dissonance,
it is
wholly
impossible to give any kind of polish or finishing to their per-
formance; hence the slovenly coarseness so remarkable public exhibitions;
and the
total
want of
taste, neatness,
in
their
and
ex-
THE FLEDGLING pression in all these
young musicians,
till
they have acquired them
elsewhere.
"The
beds, which are in the
same room, serve
harpsichords and other instruments.
who were
in
to
have a great deal
another room; and the
for seats to the
of thirty or forty boys
two that were playing
practising, I could discover but
the same piece: some of those
seemed
Out
who were practising on the violin of hand. The violoncellos practise and other wind
flutes, hautbois,
instru-
ments, in a third, except the trumpets and horns, which are obliged to fag, either
on the
stairs,
or on the top of the house.
"There are in this college sixteen young castrati, and these lye up stairs, by themselves, in warmer apartments than the other boys, for fear of colds, which might not only render their delicate voices unfit for exercise at present but hazard the entire loss of
them
for ever.
"The only
vacation in these schools, in the whole year,
is
in
autumn, and that for a few days only: during the winter, the boys
two hours before
rise
it
is
from which time they continue
light,
hour and a half at dinner excepted, till eight and this constant perseverance, for a number of with genius and good teaching, must produce great mu-
their exercise, an
o'clock at night; years,
sicians."
21
Most
of Alessandro's reputation as a teacher
founded on the
is
legendary fame of the school of Neapolitan composers that sprang
up early tells
in the eighteenth century.
With doubtful
accuracy Burney
us that: "About 1720, the scholars of Alexander Scarlatti and
Gaetano Greco, who presided over the conservatories of Naples, began to distinguish themselves j among these Leo, Porpora, Domenico Pergolesi,
Burney
may
Scarlatti, Vinci, Sarro,
be enumerated
Hasse, Feo, Abos,
and many other great and celebrated musicians.
also refers to
Geminiani
with Alessandro Scarlatti. 22 It
is
as
.
.
."
having studied counterpoint
questionable
how many
21
of these
Burney, The Present State of Music in France and Italy pp. 324-327. Burney, A General History of Music, Vol. II, pp. 914, 991. On November 4, 1770, Burney visited "Don Carlo Cotumacci, master to the Conservatorio of St. Onofrio, whom I heard play on the harpsichord and who gave me a great number of anecdotes concerning the music of old times. He was scholar to the Cavalier Scarlatti, in the year 1719; and shewed me the lessons he received from that great master, in his own hand writing. He also gave me a very particular account of Scarlatti and his family." {The Present State of Music in France ',
22
;
and
Italy, p. 334.) •
IO
'
THE FLEDGLING reputed disciples of Alessandro Scarlatti ever studied with him.
For a brief period, from February 13 to July 16, 1689, Alessandro was enrolled as a teacher in the Conservatory of S. M. di Loreto, 23 but he can hardly have been active there, for he was in Rome for 24 This appears to have been the entire exat least half that time. tent of Alessandro's official connection with any of the Neapolitan schools of music.
When
Alessandro did teach he was doubtless exacting enough
more than
with his pupils. Far
was to him
still
most rigorous
to his Neapolitan successors music
a science, a craft to be learned only through the
discipline.
No mere
ornament
language was his reference to music matics."
25
From him Domenico
doubtless
for the old church counterpoint which
deed up
to the
end of
in his usual flowery
"the daughter of mathe-
as
first
acquired that respect
he expressed
in
Severe though Alessandro
his life.
word and
may have
been, he was also capable of great devotion to his pupils. Hasse told
Burney "that the
first
time Scarlatti saw him, he luckily con-
ceived such an affection for him, that he ever after treated
with the kindness of a father."
There musical dents,
every reason to believe that Domenico
is
Scarlatti's early
although quieter than that of the conservatory
life,
was
at least
had reached
him
26
stu-
equally industrious. Certainly before Domenico
his early teens
and was beginning
to
compose, Ales-
sandro Scarlatti had given serious attention to his son's musical education.
The few
surviving records of Alessandro's relations
with his sons show an anxious and almost overwhelming solicitude. I
have alluded
to certain external aspects of
the stranger or the newcomer. It the background of
Naples and
to those
which are immediately apparent to
characteristics of Neapolitans
Domenico
would be
a mistake to interpret
Scarlatti's first
seventeen years en-
We
must not overlook the predominantly Roman culture of his parents, and we must remember that the Spanish domination of Naples in the seventeenth century brought
tirely in this
manner.
to the fore, at least for the inhabitant of Naples, the
of the Neapolitan tradition. 23 2
Giacomo,
//
Then
Conservatorio dei Poveri
.
*ibid., pp. 237-238. In a letter to Ferdinando de' Medici,
25
26
.
graver aspects
now, behind the ebullience
as .
e quello di
Loreto, pp. 202-204.
May 1, 1706. (Dent, p. 204.) Burney, The Present State of Music in Germany, Vol. I, pp. 343-344. •
II
*
THE FLEDGLING of the Neapolitan folk lay a gravity
whether
of intellect or of passion, that
whelming measure
to be
is
found
and an intense
seriousness,
resemble what in such over-
in Spain.
It is noteworthy that some of the greatest Italian philosophers, poets, and thinkers, from St. Thomas Aquinas down through San-
nazaro, Vico,
De
Sanctis,
The
Bay young man, and the of Naples.
the
and Croce originated near the shores of descriptions of
believe that for all his vigor
and
Scarlatti as a
capacity for high spirits he too
and decorum
possessed a dark-eyed Latin gravity
Mediterranean basin
Domenico
character of his early music prepare us to
as native to the
as its sunlit laughter.
Shortly before his sixteenth birthday, Domenico Scarlatti received his
employment
first
On
as a professional musician.
tember 13, 1 701, he was appointed organist and composer royal chapel.
27
The
royal palace of Naples,
despite
Sep-
in the
successive
remodelings, bombings, and occupation by troops, has not appreciably changed
its
character since the time of the Scarlattis. Its
red stucco mass, framed in gray stone, dominates a portion of the waterfront as
it
did then. But in the chapel, half burned out and
covered with a temporary roof elaborate baroque altar, with its
its
at the
time of
my
visit,
only the
precious lapis, agates, and marbles,
bronzes slightly twisted by bombs, survives from the days when
Domenico or
his father
conducted musical services from what was
doubtless a small portable organ.
Domenico in However, royal chapel,
his capacity as
just as it
1,
cession, with
the music furnished by
Domenico assumed
became
young
The
his official duties in the
Naples offered him and
clear that
father an uncertain future.
November
Of
composer, none seems to have survived.
1700, had precipitated the
War
of the Spanish Suc-
French Bourbons and Austrian Hapsburgs hotly
puting the Spanish crown and
its
his
death of Carlos II of Spain on
dominions, Naples
dis-
among them.
In the same month as Domenico's appointment to the royal chapel the Congiura di Macchia launched an attempt by a group of
noblemen
to assassinate the Viceroy as
he was going
to a nocturnal
rendezvous with one of the singers from the opera. 28 stigators 27
28
The
in-
were ruthlessly punished, but unrest and counterplotting
Prota-Giurleo, p. 33, from Arch. Stat. Nap. Mandatorum, Vol. 317, p. 4. Croce, "I Teatri di Napoli," Anno XV, p. 259^ •
12
•
THE FLEDGLING continued. For several years Alessandro Scarlatti had been dis-
contented with the Neapolitan court. There had been
difficulties
with rival musicians, and in 1688 he had been obliged for two 29 to yield his post in the viceregal chapel to Provenzale.
months
Irregularities in the payment of his stipend from the court had moreover brought Alessandro into such financial straits that he was obliged in February 1699 t0 submit a formal petition for payment of arrears. 30 Now he wanted if possible to leave Naples. Alessandro pinned his hopes for Domenico, as well as for himself,
on the eldest son of the Grand Duke of Tuscany, Ferdinando
de' Medici, with years.
31
At
whom
he had been
in
correspondence for several
he had installed
his villa of Pratolino, outside Florence,
a theater, with scenery designed by one of the Bibbienas, for the
performance of operas. 32 There several works of Alessandro's had already been performed.
coming production of
With
the intention of supervising a forth-
his Flavio
Cuniberto™ and
at the
same time
of strengthening his relations with the Prince, Alessandro unsuccessfully applied
on January
1702, for ten months' leave of
2,
absence from Naples, with full pay, for
But he was not permitted
Domenico and
himself.
34
to depart until after the state visit of the
new Bourbon king of Spain, Felipe V, at whose court Domenico was later to spend many years. After Alessandro had provided two serenades and an opera for the festivities attendant upon the
Domenico were granted four make their delayed visit
King's sojourn in Naples, he and
months' leave on June to
Florence.
He
journey.
On
their
35
14, in
order to
This was presumably Domenico's
was now sixteen and a half years
way
to Florence,
extended
first
old.
Domenico and Alessandro doubtless
stopped in Rome, long enough perhaps for Domenico to make first
acquaintance with
29
Giacomo,
30
Dent,
p.
//
some of those
Comervatorio dei Poveri
.
.
.
associates
of
his
e quello di Loreto, pp.
his
father's 237-238.
69.
81 Dent quotes several passages from the correspondence now preserved in the Archivio Mediceo in Florence. 82 Conti, p. 106; Streatfeild, p. 27. The villa was demolished in 1822. (Lustig, Per la cronistoria dell'antico teatro mus'rcale. II Teatro della Villa Medicea di.
Pratolino.) 88 34
Dent, p. 72. Dent, p. 71, from Naples, R. Archivio di Stato, Mandati dei
Lustig, ibid.
3 17, fol.
;
8ov.
**ibid. t Vol. 318, fol. 60. *
13
*
Viceri-,
Vol.
THE FLEDGLING whose friendship and patronage he was later to inherit. But in the oresence of his elders, Domenico was doubtless respectful, reserved, itself
and
even
The
shy. Probably his true character
to his family
initial
and
impact of
had
scarcely revealed
friends.
Rome
on Domenico was probably quite
undramatic. He must have been impressed by the grandeur of the recently completed works of the great baroque architects, and
by the lavishness of the palaces and churches tion, but
he probably found
Rome
still
under construc-
some
quieter, in
respects less
a capital, than Naples. Although the streets were overrun with
clergy and hangers-on of the church, there was hardly any inde-
pendent secular
some
life,
except of course for the flamboyant worldli-
Church scarcely bothered to However, strangers from all Germans, Englishparts of the world were to be seen in Rome men, Frenchmen, Negroes, and even Chinese. And Domenico must have felt the enormous power that symbolized itself, as if
ness that
of the princes of the
conceal under a cloak of hypocrisy.
—
at the
magnetic pole of the Catholic world,
in the
proud inscription
on the vanquished pagan obelisk that faced every believer who entered the Piazza San Pietro: "Ecce Crux Domini, fuggite, partes adversae ..."
But much of
Rome
minders of a greater
was shabby and
past.
full of silent, deserted re-
Cows wandered
yards covered the Palatine.
Many
in the
Forum and
vine-
of the patchwork churches of
the early Christians had not yet been clothed in the sumptuous
baroque that later gave them the appearance of archaic, austere saints'
images dressed up for
The wonder and
days in jewels and brocades.
feast
reverence that filled visitors from the North
upon encountering the remnants of classical civilization would hardly have been shared by Domenico Scarlatti, whose existence was already rooted in the plains of classic mythology and bathed in the seas of
Homeric legend. His
have extended beyond opera
During
classical
their visit to the court of Tuscany,
much time Domenico and Alessandro Pratolino.
in
may
not
it
is
not clear
how
spent in Florence or at
At the beginning of August the
performance
interests
librettos.
Scarlattis assisted at the
Florence of Alessandro's motets for the birthdays '
14
'
THE FLEDGLING Cosimo III and Prince Ferdinando. 36 Prince Ferdinando was 37 It would appear that a generally at Leghorn in the summer. cantata of Domenico's was written there a manuscript copy, in any of
;
case,
is
inscribed "fatta in Livorno."
38
Two
other cantatas,
now
in
Munster, are definitely dated July 1702. These are probably the earliest works of Domenico's now known to us. They give little intimation of his later style.
Prince Ferdinando was not only an accomplished amateur of
and painting, but
architecture, drawing,
also reputed to
is
have
played the harpsichord well. 39 Whether at his winter residence in the Palazzo Pitti in Florence, or in the spring and early at Pratolino,
autumn
he kept himself well supplied with harpsichords,
as
can be seen from surviving accounts submitted by his keeper of instruments. Since 1690, at least, this had been none other than
Bartolomeo
Cristofori, the reputed inventor of the pianoforte.
With him Domenico
doubtless came in some sort of contact.
1709 Cristofori had built his
Many fori's
first
"cembalo
40
By
col piano e forte."
41
years later, whether or not he had witnessed any of Cristo-
preliminary experiments, Domenico became well acquainted
with their results.
The
patroness of his later
Barbara of Spain, owned
was constructed
in
1
five
Queen Maria
42 73 1 by Ferrini, a pupil of Cristofori.
no way
as revolutionary as his
Like those which had been made
in Italy for centuries,
were
Cristofori's harpsichords
pianos.
life,
Florentine pianofortes, one of which
in
they were of cypress wood, with two or three registers, more often than not with only one keyboard, of boxwood, sometimes decorated with ivory. These harpsichords fitted into painted and
gilded outer cases that were often ornamented with elaborately
moulded
gesso.
Their
wiry tone had
rich
little
of the delicacy of
the Flemish-French Ruckers, or the mellowness of the later English
Kirkmans and Tschudis, but rather seemed
36 Alessandro at least. Secondo Libro di Toccate, 37
(Claudio
Sartori,
in
Alessandro
to retain Scarlatti,
some
Pr'imo
e
p. 136.)
Streatfeild, p. 28.
38
Parma, Biblioteca Palatina, Sezione Musicale. Source reference? for all manuscript and printed compositions by Domenico Scarlatti are to be found in Appendices V and VI. 19 Conti, pp. 41
Harding,
102, 104.
40
Casaglia, pp. 4-5.
The Piano-Forte, quoting Scipione Maffei
Letterati d'llalia, Vol. V, p. 42 See Chapter IX.
144.
•
15
•
in
the
Giornale dei
THE FLEDGLING of the pungency of the cedar
and cypress from which they were
made. Alessandro
Scarlatti's
Ferdinando were
hopes for steady employment by Prince
Although he composed an
to be disappointed.
opera for the theater at Pratolino every year until 1706, and during these years carried on an elaborate correspondence with the Prince, in which detailed directions for the performance of his
works were mixed with the most bombastic succeeded in gaining any certain
official
flattery,
he never
appointment. 43 In view of the un-
outcome of the dispute over Spanish and Austrian sov-
ereignty of Naples, Alessandro was apparently unwilling to return there, for he overstayed his four months' leave and finally
accepted a patently inferior position in
Rome
as assistant to
Antonio
Foggia, maestro di caffella at Santa Maria Maggiore, on December 31, 1703.
44
clared vacant.
45
On
October 25, 1704, his post
Naples was de-
in
However, Domenico braved the increasing instabilities of Naples and seems to have returned within the period of his leave, in other words by November 1702. During the following year his first two operas were produced in Naples: Ottavia Restitutio, al Trono; and 77 Giustino, performed on December 19, 1703, at the royal palace to celebrate the twentieth birthday of Felipe
The
had been performed
zi's arias
Little
Venice with music by Legrenzi in
in
in 1684.
47
Domenico retained
and composed new music for the is
Giustino
known about was
44 45
eight of Legren-
rest of the opera.
the production of Ottavia, but that of
distinctly
a
Scarlatti
family
probably three of Domenico's uncles had a hand 43
46
were prepared by the Abbate Giulio was a revision of a drama by Beregani
II Giustino
1683 an d in Naples
II
of Spain.
librettos for both operas
Convo. That of that
V
affair.
in
48 it.
Two, and
Tommaso
Dent, Chapters III, IV. Dent, p. 72, from the archives of Sta. Maria Maggiore. Dent, p. 73, from Naples, R. Archivio di Stato, Mandati dei Vicere, Vol. 319,
fol. 20. 48
Information not otherwise accredited, concerning operas and their performances, is drawn from manuscript or printed music, or from the original
printed librettos. Indications of all such sources will be found in Appendix VI. 47 Beregani's drama was later set by Albinoni (Bologna, 171 1) ; Vivaldi (Rome,
1724); and, with modifications, by Handel (London, 1736). Wolff, Die Venezianische Ofer, p. 84. 48 Sartori, Gli Scarlatti a
Nafoli, pp. 374-379. •
16
'
THE FLEDGLING Scarlatti
sang the part of Amantio, and Nicola Barbapiccola, the
husband of Anna Maria was thrown over Scarlatti's
most family
was the impresario. (A cloud
Domenico's
A
unless
uncle,
Giuseppe in
that
Scarlatti,
prodigious
could have been his fourteen-year-old brother, was the
and
scene-painter in
Scarlatti,
performance however by Anna Maria
death, only five days before.)
probably it
this
technician.
Decidedly the young eagle was
still
the family nest.
The
surviving arias from both operas are on the whole rather
conventional, and suffer
from
and square-cut rhythms and
flat
phrase structure. Domenico's rather dry music seems hardly to
correspond with the grandiose opening scene of Ottavia, in which
Nero and Poppea
are witnessing the destruction of the statue of
Roman
capitol and its replacement by one of PopHis further music uses such stock-in-trade devices as majestic dotted rhythms "alia Francese," full strings in unison with the basses, duets for soprano and alto with much motion in thirds, and
Ottavia in the
pea.
the customary aria of tragic indignation for soprano with tremo-
lando strings. But a few Scarlattian vocal intervals and the rudi-
ments of internal pedal points show some connection with the style of his later operas.
The
librettos of these operas are
no
less
conventional than the
music. In opening the yellowed pages of the few copies surviving
from those which, according
to eighteenth-century custom,
were
distributed to opera-goers, along with candles to permit reading
them during the performance, one cannot help smiling at the recollection of Benedetto Marcello's comments on these literary fabrications. fact
They
are often no less flimsy than their scenery ; in
they often qualify as the accredited ancestors of the modern
cinema scenario. Conventional,
as
in
the prefatory remarks to
Ottavia, was the librettist's apology for haste
Marcello suggests useful to the
in his
Teatro alia
modern foet
Moda
and lack of time. most
that "it will be
to protest to the readers that
he has
composed the opera in younger years, and if he can add that he wrote it in a few days (although he may have worked on it for ." 49 years) this will be exactly in the manner of a true modern. Such remarks were generally accompanied, as in Ottavia by the .
49
Marcello,
p.
7.
.
THE FLEDGLING not always convincing assurance that although he
in-
dulges liberties of poetic sentiment he nevertheless lives in
ac-
librettist's
cordance with Christian morals.
Marcello singles out for special with which Ottavia
is
satire the
kind of dedication
prefaced (in this case to the "Signora D.
Catarina de Moscosa, Ossorio, Urtado de Mendoza, Sandoval, y Rocas, Contessa di San Stefano de Gormas, &c"). He says that the poet "in dedicating the libretto to some grand personage will see to
it
that he [or she, Marcello's
pronoun leaves the question open]
be rich rather than learned, will share a third of the dedication with
some good mediator, be
He
of the dedicatee.
it
then even the cook or the housemaster
quality of the titles with which he should adorn his frontispiece,
augmenting the
and the
exalt the family
Not
name on
the
He
will
said titles with &c. &c. &c. &c.
glories of the ancestors, using frequently
in the dedicatory epistle the
&c.
terms Liberality, Generous Nature,
finding in the personage motives for praise
happens), he will say that he
modesty, but that will spread the
Fame
is
silent in
(as often
order not to offend his
with her hundred Sonorous Trumpets
immortal name from one pole
will close finally
and
will seek in the first place the quantity
by saying that
in
to the other.
He
token of the most profound
veneration he kisses the leaps of the fleas on the feet of the dogs of his excel] ence."
50
But
in
no age
is
patronage necessarily gained by
sincerity!
In 1704 Domenico remodeled Pollaroli's Irene, contributing and one duet. This produc-
thirty-three out of the fifty-five arias tion also involved
Tommaso who was
Scarlatti, in the part of
Hali, and
Domeniseem rather forced and uninspired, though some of them present interesting features. There is a very florid aria for tenor, "Voler cedere il suo bene"; a soprano aria, "Chi tanto Palma Nicola Barbapiccola,
the impresario. In general,
co's airs
brama," with an obbligato part for violoncello; another dividere
il
mio
aria,
affetto," with the inscription in the first violin
"Vo*
and
"Per lei caro m'e ogni duol," has a bass marked "Violoncello, e Leuto soli," and another, "Dimmi se avra mai fin," is notable for changes of tempo from a sad adagio to a furious presto. The aria, "Si viva si muora,"
bass parts, "alia Francese." Still another aria,
18
THE FLEDGLING bears a curious resemblance to J. S. Bach's setting of the words,
"Ich hatte viel Bekummerniss," and another, "Perche sprezzar,"
makes use of the same rhythm
G
fugues in
as the subject of
dated compositions, he, Handel, and in the
one of Bach's organ
major. 51 In 1704, the year of Bach's earliest surviving
same
were
year,
least in their vocal compositions. It
Scarlatti,
who were
born
all
very close to one another,
stylistically
was
later that they
went
at
their
separate ways.
A
passage that
ventionality of
Domenico
its
music in Irene, despite the con-
set to
sentiment, leads us to
wonder
if its
motto had
not perhaps already acquired significance for the young Domenico.
"Ogni amante ha un bel momento Se nol coglie e per sua colpa"
(Every lover has Left unseized by
his special
moment
his fault only)
young Domenico already discovered this? We have no Domenico Scarlatti's private sentiments, other than those expressed in his music, remain completely unknown to
Had
the
way
of knowing.
us throughout his entire
life.
No
letters or anecdotes
have
sur-
vived to give us more than a pale indication of his personality,
and the years of
his
youth and early manhood pass with a par-
ticularly
mysterious anonymity.
tractions,
and involvements
Of Domenico's
adventures,
at-
in the forty-two years preceding his
know absolutely nothing. From Rome, meanwhile, Alessandro
marriage we tion in
Scarlatti
observed the
situa-
Naples with pessimism. Patronage by the Spanish viceroys
of Naples was
most uncertain
in
view of the imminent
possibility
of their being replaced by an Austrian government. If, on abandon-
ing his post as viceregal chapelmaster, Alessandro thought that
Domenico might obtain it despite his youth, he gave up all hopes when Gaetano Veneziano was appointed to the post on October 25, 1704.
52
Thenceforth Alessandro did
his best to place his sons
elsewhere. In February 1705 he succeeded through Cardinal Albani in having his eldest son Pietro appointed as chapelmaster in 51
52
319,
Bach, Werke, xv,
J. S.
Dent, fol.
p.
p. 172. 116, from Naples, R. Archivio di Stato, Mandati dci Vicere, Vol.
20. •
19
'
THE FLEDGLING the cathedral at Urbino.
parental
of
authority,
Naples and sent him
53
In the Spring, exercising the full weight
Alessandro off
to
summoned Domenico from
Venice in the company of Nicolo
Grimaldi, one of the most accomplished castrato singers of his
and a celebrated interpreter of some of Alessandro's leading Domenico, who had not yet reached his twentieth birthday, was never again to return to Naples except as a visitor. 54 His time,
roles.
musical future lay elsewhere. 53
Ligi, pp. 133-134.
54
Cristoforo Caresana temporarily took over
Domenico
obtained permission to leave Naples in 1705. (Giacomo, OnofriO) p. 145.)
20
//
when he Conservatorio di Sant y
Scarlatti's post
II
THE YOUNG EAGLE
•
CONSERVATORIES GASPARINI THE VENETIAN OPERA FIRST ACCOUNT OF DOMENICO'S HARPSICHORD PLAYING ROSEINGRAVE FRIENDSHIP WITH HANDEL •
•
•
lessandro sent Domenico to Venice by way of Florence and gave him a letter for Ferdinando Medici.
,de'
"Royal Highness," he wrote,
"My Son Domenico brings himself humbly my heart to the feet of your Royal High-
with
and my debt of profound consideration and most humble obedience. I have detached him by force from Naples, where although there was room for his talent, his talent was not for such a place. I am removing him also from Rome, ness, in observation of his
Rome
because
has no shelter for Music, which here lives in beg-
mine
gary. This son of
must not remain
"On
is
an eagle whose wings are grown.
idle in the nest,
and
must not hinder
the occasion that the virtuoso, Nicolino of Naples,
through here on the way to Venice, with him, escorted only by his
much
I
since
I
own
he was able to be with
me
have thought ability.
He
to
He
his flight. is
passing
send him
has advanced
in a position to
enjoy the
honor of serving personally Your Highness, three years ago.
He
meet whatever opportunity may present become known, and which is awaited in vain in
goes, like a wayfarer, to itself for
Rome
him
today.
to I
intend, before he proceeds on his journey to seek
he show himself at the feet of Your Royal Highand execute the high and most revered orders of his most great and exalted Lord, most clement Patron and
his fortune, that
ness to take
and
my
Benefactor. It
world know us
is
his
as
and
This reflection consoles
happy outcome
him
to
my
glory, honor and advantage that the
most humble servants of Your Royal Highness.
my
spirit,
to the pilgrimage of
Providence and
immediately then
I
and makes me hope
my
son.
for every
Having recommended
divine" Protection, as the source of all
offer
my
most humble supplications •
21
•
good,
to the high
THE YOUNG EAGLE and most powerful patronage of Your Royal Highness, to whom I the humble servant bow with the most profound respect and obedience, as for all the course of
my
life.
Rome, May
Of Your Royal Highness
30,
1
705
the most humble, devoted and obliged servant
Alessandro Scarlatti" 1 Alessandro implies in his letter to Prince Ferdinando that he saw little possibility
Nor was he object of
of satisfactory patronage for
The
content there himself.
Domenico
in
Rome.
public theater, long the
numerous persecutions by the Pope, had
2 been almost entirely suppressed. With
the
for the
moment
exception
of
the
operas he was composing for Pratolino, Alessandro was confined
Rome
in
largely to church and chamber music, and he patently
considered clerical patronage inferior to that of royal highnesses.
He
cherished hopes for an appointment from the Prince not only
for himself but for Domenico as well.
But
in the event of these
hopes not materializing, as indeed they
did not, Alessandro considered Venice a most likely spot for the
young eagle
With
to spread his wings.
unlimited musical
its
activities
and
its
its
numerous opera houses,
extravagance,
it
offered the
broadest scope of any city in Italy.
When Domenico what seemed then
and Nicolino arrived as
now
hardly changed since their day.
and
palaces,
and the
intrusion of steamers its
theatrical
setting,
life
in
Venice they found
the carrousel of Europe. Venice has
of
Its light,
its
and motor
the color of
its
churches
waterways, despite the modern
boats, are all
much
the same. But
which often seems so unreal today, was
animated by a population clothed
in full
accordance with the color
and variety of the city itself. The grand final climax of Venetian splendor and gaiety was just preparing itself. The world of Canaand Guardi and Longhi, of Casanova and Goldoni was just into being. The Piazza San Marco served visitors and Venetians of all classes as a huge drawing room, with the Grand letto
coming
1
in
Florence, Archivio Mediceo, Filza 5891, No. 502. Reproduced Accademia Musicale Chigiana, Gli Scarlatti, pp. 51-52. 2 Ademollo, pp. 195, 207; Dent, p. 75. *
22
'
in
facsimile
THE YOUNG EAGLE Canal and the great lagoon as alleys as
its
backstairs. I
what can be seen
in
its
garden, or park, and the Venetian
have only once witnessed the rebirth of
every eighteenth-century Venetian painting.
This was a performance of a Goldoni comedy
The
in
one of the public
more from the surrounding town than the Venetian dialect of the actors from the chatter of the populace. Afterwards women in evening dress sauntered through the narrow alleys leading away from the square, suddenly bringing them to life with the color of their gowns in silk or brocade. There lacked only masks (never in Venice to be satisfactorily replaced by their lineal descendants the dark glasses) and male clothing more brilliant than squares.
painted back drops of the stage were hardly
distinguishable
dinner jackets.
In Domenico Scarlatti's time that
"Masquerades are more
Masks
in
it
was always remarked by
and Balls; and
ple
go
'tis
the favourite Pleasure both of the Grandees and the
alty.
in
This gives
to take the Air, as well as to Plays
rise to
Acquaintance under a
visitors
Fashion here than elsewhere. Peo-
Commonmany Adventures, and sometimes one makes Mask which would be impracticable perhaps,
were not such Disguises
in
Fashion." 3 History
is
silent
on Domenico
Scarlatti's adventures.
The of the
Venetians were steeped in music from the polite Accademie
noblemen and the
rich to the
popular songs of the gondoliers,
and the antiphonal chanting of Tasso and Ariosto by the men. 4 At
least four
were giving performances formances
was
to be
fisher-
opera houses, in addition to numerous theaters, in
1705.
5
Besides the numerous per-
and churches, convents and palaces, music Venice at all hours of the day, on the canals, in
in theaters
heard
in
the piazzas and alleyways.
A
traveler
who
few years before remarks on
visited Venice a
the "extraordinary fine Concerts of Musick, which the Gallants of the City have in Boats to Serenade the Ladies
much pleased with 3
4
and Nuns who are
these Diversions. ... the liberty of the Night,
P6llnitz, Vol. I, p. 4x1. Goethe, Italienische Reise, Vol.
I,
pp. 82-83
(October
7,
1786). Baretti,
An
Account of the Manners and Customs of Italy, Vol. II, pp. 153-154, gives an annotation by Giardini of the fishermen's tune; Burney, A General History of Music, Vol. II, pp. 452-453, one by Tartini. 5
Wiel, pp. 8-1
1.
'
23
'
THE YOUNG EAGLE and sweetness of the Air equally inspires with desire both Sexes to pass away en deshabille the Evenings upon the Water: everyone endeavours to avoid being known, so you find a mighty silence in the midst of this great concourse, fully and quietly enjoying the pleasure of the Musick, and the most agreeable Delights of the cool Breezes."
6
Baron Pollnitz writes that
".
.
Few
.
Nations observe the Ex-
ternals of Religion better than the Italians in general
whom
Venetians in particular, of
one half of their time
in
it
may
committing
and the
be said that they spend
Sin,
and the other half
in
begging God's Pardon." 7
The
externals of religion in Venice were copiously accompanied
with music, especially in the convent churches associated with conservatories or Osfedali.
(Characteristically enough, even the
opera houses in Venice bore the names of
saints, in
accordance with
Among
the parishes in which they were located.) 8
the Venetian
churches "frequented more to please the Ear, than for real De-
votion" the Baron Pollnitz gives Pieta which belongs to the
Love.
.
.
,"
Church of
place to "the
first
Nuns who know no
la
other Father but
more soberly described by Dr. Burney
as "a
kind of
Foundling Hospital for natural children, under the protection of several nobles, citizens
and merchants, who, though the revenue
very great, yet contribute annually to Pollnitz:
"The Concourse
and Holidays
is
of People to this
extraordinary. 'Tis the
is
support." 9 Says Baron
its
Church on Sundays
Rendezvous of
all
the
Coquettes in Venice, and such as are fond of Intrigues have here
Hands and Hearts
both their
full."
10
This statement has been
eloquently amplified by certain passages in Casanova's memoirs. 11
In an enthusiasm for the girls of the Pieta that does not exclude double-entendre, the President de Brosses exclaims: like
angels,
and play
violin,
bassoon j in short there
is
flute,
"They
sing
organ, hautboy, violoncello,
no instrument so large
as to frighten
6
Limojon de
7
Pollnitz, Vol.
8
Goethe, Italienische Reise, Vol. I, p. 73 (October 3, 1786). Pollnitz, Vol. I, pp. 414-41 5 j Burney, The Present State of Music in France
9
and 10 11
Italy, p.
St. I,
Didier, p.
The
First Part, pp. 71-72.
411.
139.
Pollnitz, Vol.
I, pp. 414-415. Casanova, Memoires (ed. Gamier), Vols.
•
24
•
II-III.
THE YOUNG EAGLE I swear to you that there is nothing so agreeable as to young and pretty nun, in white robes with a bouquet of pomegranate flowers behind her ear, conduct the orchestra and 12 beat time with all grace and precision imaginable." William Beck-
them. ...
see a
many
ford
years later describes the music at the Pieta with ex-
aggerated irony:
You know,
"The
suppose,
I
sight of the orchestra it
is
still
makes me
smile.
entirely of the feminine gender,
and
more common than to see a delicate white hand journeying across an enormous double-bass, or a pair of roseate that nothing
is
cheeks puffing, with
all their efforts, at a
French horn. Some that
grown old and Amazonian, who have abandoned
are
and
limping lady,
who had been
crossed in love,
mirable figure on the bassoon."
Domenico
Scarlatti
their fiddles
and one poor now makes an ad-
their lovers, take vigorously to the kettle-drum
;
13
must have much frequented the
Pieta.
An-
tonio Vivaldi was functioning there for the larger part of his career,
14
and there
in the years just before Sebastian
though Vivaldi's music style than in
Bach was
Domenico was hearing them. Al-
transcribing Vivaldi's concertos,
conspicuous imprint on Scarlatti's
left a less
on Bach's, reminiscences of
his concertos are to be
found
(See for example Sonata 37.) Domenico's principal reason for frequenting the Pieta however
some of
Scarlatti's early sonatas.
would have been the presence there as choirmaster of his father's 15 then at the height of friend and colleague, Francesco Gasparini, fame. In 1705 no fewer than five of his operas were produced
his at
the Teatro San Cassiano in Venice.
Ambleto by Zeno and set to
music ten years
later.
early
won
Born
Rome
One
of these was the
which Domenico himself was to
Pariati,
Gasparini had studied in
16
at
Camajore near Lucca
in 1668,
with Corelli and Pasquini, and had
the friendship of Alessandro Scarlatti.
17
Dr. Burney
reports:
"During the residence of
Scarlatti at Naples,
he had so high an
opinion of Francesco Gasparini, then a composer and a harpsichord 12
De
Brosses, Vol.
I,
p.
238.
"Beckford, The Travel-Diaries, Vol. 14
Pincherle, Antonio Vivaldi, Vol.
16
Celani, // frimo
ie
Wiel, pp. 8-10.
1T
Celani, // frimo
I,
pp.
108-109.
amore
pp. 1--27. di Pietro Metastasio, p. 243.
amore
di Pietro Metastasio, p. 243.
I,
.
25
.
THE YOUNG EAGLE master of great eminence at Rome, that he placed his son Domenico, while a youth, to study under him in that city. This testimony of confidence in his probity
and
abilities
gave birth
to a singular
correspondence between these two great musicians. Gasparini com-
posed a cantata
in a curious
such a master, and sent
"To
it
and
worthy the notice of
artful style,
as a present to Scarlatti.
this musical epistle Scarlatti not
replied by another cantata of a
more
still
.
.
.
only added an subtil
and
air,
.
artificial
.
.
but
kind,
This reply produced a remaking use of the same words. joinder from Gasparini, ... in which the modulation of the recitative is very learned and abstruse. "Scarlatti seemingly determined to have the last word in this cantata correspondence, sent him a second composition to the same words, in which the modulation is the most extraneous, and the notation the most equivocal and perplexing perhaps that were ever committed to paper." 18 (Burney has evidently telescoped several facts without regard .
to date.
The exchange
.
.
of cantatas took place
much
Unless Alessandro actually sent Domenico to the principal association with Gasparini
when
is
later, in 1712.
Rome
likely to
19
before 1701,
have taken
Domenico were both in Venice.) At the age of twenty, however, Domenico had long put behind him the need for technical instruction. More likely he received criticism on his compositions and served with Gasparini a kind of apprenticeship in theater and church music, which broadened and developed the training he had already been given by his father. place only
One
Gasparini and
of Gasparini's pupils in later years was Johann Joachim
Quantz, the
flute
player and teacher of Frederick the Great. In
his
autobiography Quantz recalls with affection the teaching of
this
"amiable and honorable
with him in
Rome
in offering to
in
724.
1
examine and
20
man" during
He
the six months he spent
also recalls Gasparini's generosity
criticize
any of
his compositions without
any recompense whatever: "An extraordinary example," he claims, "for an Italian " !
Among
ex-
Gasparini's pupils in Venice were
Benedetto Marcello and the great singer Faustina Bordoni, later 18 19
20
Burney, A General History of Music, Vol. Dent, pp. i4off.
Marpurg,
Historisch-kritische Beitrage, Vol. •
26
'
II, p.
I,
635.
pp. 223-225.
the wife of Hasse. in
Rome
in
21
THE YOUNG EAGLE A handsome sonnet was addressed to
1 719 by Metastasio, who almost married
Doubtless Domenico
Scarlatti also in later years in
Gasparini
his daughter.
Rome
22
enjoyed
company of his old friend and master. During the time when Domenico was in Venice, Gasparini was preparing a little manual of thoroughbass playing, UArmonico Pratico al Cimbalo. It was first published in 1708, went through several editions, and for half a century remained a model of pedagogical clarity. It is possible that Domenico may have discussed this work with Gasparini or that he may even have assisted in the
preparing it for the press. A few things in it, though common enough in Italian music of the time, remind us of Domenico. There is mention of certain liberties that may be taken with the resolutions
of
dissonances,
sevenths as
of
harpsichord
doublings,
of
"much used by modern composers." But
diminished
especially the
chapter on Acciaccature, widely imitated in later treatises, acquaints us with one of the
most striking
characteristics of
Domenico's
later
keyboard music. In his introduction to this book, Gasparini sums up his require-
ments for a good organist: "It is quite true that to become a real and practically experienced organist, it is necessary to make a parstudy of scores, and especially of the Toccatas, Fugues,
ticular
and of other excellent men to have from good and learned masters and finally, for accompanying, it is necessary not only to master all the good rules of counterpoint, but also good taste, naturalness and freedom Ricercares, etc. of Frescobaldi
;
instruction
;
[franchezza] to recognize immediately the quality of a composition, in
order to be able, besides playing in concert to accompany
the singer with justness [aggiustatezza] and discretion, to animate, satisfy
To
and support him rather than
to
confound him."
we can imagine Domenico Scarlatti reverently saying "Amen." Of especial interest to us is the mention of Frescobaldi. Despite differences of style, Frescobaldi is in many senses all
of this
a true spiritual ancestor of Scarlatti. Both
counterpoint j
both
maticism and with 21
22
Celani, // frimo ibid., p.
were
tireless
new harmonic amore
in
respected the ancient
experimenting
relationships
;
di P'tetro Metastasio, p. 243.
246. .
27
.
with
chro-
both had a passion
THE YOUNG EAGLE was tempered by an unfailing sense
for bizarre declamation that
of fundamental sobriety and justness in form.
In the autumn of
1
705 Domenico's distinguished traveling com-
panion Nicolo Grimaldi was appearing tioco.
23
Domenico, who on account of
in Gasparini's
opera An-
his friendship with Gasparini
and Nicolino, must have frequented the rehearsals, would have had an opportunity at this time to admire the acting for which Nicolino was renowned.
On
his first appearance in
years later Sir Richard Steele wrote of actor,
who, by the grace and propriety of
does honour to the
human
figure.
bears in an opera by his action, as
by
his voice.
he
sets,
sense of
it.
There
is
.
England three Tatler
his action
as,
finger contributes to the part
along with him in the
scarce a beautiful posture in an old statue
story give occasion for
He
it.
"an
and gesture,
.
man may go
in, as
manner
The
in
who sets off the character he much as he does the words of it
.
Every limb and every
insomuch that a deaf
he does not plant himself
in a
him
which
the different circumstances of the
performs the most ordinary action
suitable to the greatness of his character,
and shews
the prince even in the giving of a letter, or dispatching of a mes-
senger."
24
In contrast to Sir Richard Steele's report of Nicolino's dignity an account by Limojon de
St.
is
Didier of the Venetian audiences
before which he performed. Its apparent exaggerations are repeated
other contemporary
in
accounts.
Italian opera audiences in our
Indeed anyone familiar with
own time
will be prepared to believe
the extravagances of the eighteenth-century public.
"They
that
compose the Musick of the Opera, endeavour
conclude the Scenes of the Principal Actors with Airs that
and Elevate,
that so they
may
to
Charm
acquire the Applause of the Audi-
ence, which succeeds so well to their intentions, that one hears
nothing but a Thousand Benissimo's together
remarkable
as the pleasant Benedictions
;
yet nothing
of the Gondoliers in the Pit to the Women-Singers, to
them, Sia tu benedetta y benedetto
it
is
so
and the Ridiculous Wishes
who
cry aloud
fadre che te genet0. But
these Acclamations are not always within the bounds of Modesty, 23
24
Wiel, pp. 8-9. Quoted in Burney,
A General
History of Music, Vol. •
28
•
II,
pp. 661-662.
THE YOUNG EAGLE impudent Fellows say whatever they please as being the Assembly rather Laugh than Angry. "Some Gentlemen have shewn themselves so Transported and out of all bounds by the charming Voices of these Girls, as to bend for those
assur'd to
j
make
themselves out of their Boxes, crying, expressing after this
Two more
for
mi But to, mi But to,
car a!
manner the Raptures of Pleasure which these One pays Four Livers at the Door, a Chair in the Pitt, which amounts to Three
divine Voices cause to them.
and
Ah
.
.
.
and Six-Pence English, without reckoning the Opera-
Shillings
Book and the Wax-Candle, every one buys; for without them even those of the Country would hardly comprehend any thing of the History, or the subject matter of the Composition.
.
.
.
"Nevertheless," remarks our author, "all things pass with more
decency at the Opera than at the Comedy.
"The young
Nobility do not go so
."
.
to the
Comedy
to
Buffoonry of the Actors, as to play their own ridiculous
laugh
at the
Parts:
They commonly
where there
.
much
is
bring Courtesans with them to their Boxes,
such a confusion and sometimes such surprizing
Accidents, so contrary to the Rules of Decency, which are at least
due
one must indeed see these Transac-
in all Publick Places, that
tions before
versions
is
he can believe them.
Snuffs and ends of Candles, and clad, or with a
Feather
liberty
which they
ample of the Nobility, do's
The Gondoliers
height.
some
to
of their most ordinary Di-
if
they perceive any one decently
Hat, they are sure
in his
the best of their endeavours.
"The
One
not only to spit in the Pit, but likewise to pelt them with
.
.
finally raise the
according to the Ex-
do give
Confusion to
is it
py
utmost
would be tolerated
in
seldom that the whole House makes
such terrible Exclamations against the Actors, as to please, that
its
their impertinent Applauses
certain Actions of the Buffoons, that
no other Place ; neither
him with
.
in the Pit take,
chiefly
to ply
who
are not so hap-
they are forced to retire to be succeeded by
others j for the continual cry
is,
fuora buffoni.
.
.
." 25
"But," says
Dr. Burney, "in justice to the taste and discernment of the Italians, it
must be allowed, that when they do admire,
cellent
n
;
and then, they never 'damn with
Liiriojon de St. Didier,
The Third •
Part, pp. 63-67.
29
'
it is
something ex-
faint praise,' but express
THE YOUNG EAGLE rapture in a
manner
peculiar to themselves ; they
with pleasure too great for the aching sense."
seem
to agonize
26
Domenico Scarlatti never braved the operatic public, except some ten years later, in Rome. All his other productions were
twice,
private affairs. tiring,
of
him
He
seems
in daily life to
have been quiet and
re-
given even to avoiding attention, so few are the accounts left
by contemporaries. Probably he never performed on the
harpsichord in public ; even the most brilliant virtuoso pieces of his
were intended for private audiences. We do not know what kind of keyboard music Domenico was composing at the time of his stay in Venice, but his playing was already startling. The later years
we have
of his playing during his entire life, beyond from this time. Burney obtained one, possibly colored in retrospect, from Thomas Roseingrave, an eccentric Irish musician who was later the chief instigator of the Scarlatti cult that flourished in mid- and late-eighteenth-century England. The young Irishman, says Burney, "being regarded as a young man of uncommon dispositions for the study of his art, was honoured by the chapter of St. Patrick's with a pension, to enable him 27 to travel for improvement Being arrived at Venice in his way to Rome, as he himself told me, he was invited, as a stranger and a virtuoso, to an academia [sic] at the house of a nobleman, where, among others, he was requested to sit down to the harpsichord and favour the company with a toccata, as a specimen delta sua virtu. And, says he, 'finding myself rather better in courage and finger than usual, I exerted myself, my dear friend, and fancied, by the applause I received, that my performance had made some impression on the company.' After a cantata had been sung by a scholar of Fr. Gasparini, who was there to accompany her, a grave young man dressed in black and in a black wig, who had stood in one corner of the room, very quiet and attentive while Roseingrave
only accounts
brief mention, date
j
played, being asked to
sit
.
.
down
.
to the harpsichord,
26
when he began
Burney, The Present State of Music in France and Italy, p. 144. Burney, A General History of Music, Vol. II, pp. 703-704. Here Burney says: "and about the year 1710 he set off for Italy." Unless Domenico made later visits to Venice, this date is probably incorrect, because at that time he was already employed in Rome. We have no exact dates for Domenico's sojourn or sojourns in Venice, between May 30, 1705, the date of the letter Alessandro gave Domenico on his departure from Rome, and Lent of 1709, when Domenico was already maestro di caf fella to the Queen of Poland in Rome. 27
*
30
*
THE YOUNG EAGLE Rosy
he thought ten hundred d
Is had been at had heard such passages of execution and before. The performance so far surpassed his own, and every
to play
said,
the instrument ; he never effect
degree of perfection to which he thought arrive, that, if
he had been
have done the deed, he should have cut
to
enquiring the that
it
name
possible he should ever
off his
own
fingers.
Upon
of this extraordinary performer, he was told
was Domenico
sandro
it
any instrument with which
in sight of
Scarlatti,
son of the celebrated Cavalier Ales-
Roseingrave declared he did not touch an
Scarlatti.
strument himself for a month j after
this rencontre,
in-
however, he
became very intimate with the young Scarlatti, followed him to Rome and Naples, and hardly ever quitted him while he remained in Italy,
which was not
till
after the peace of Utrecht.
Roseingrave never forgot
this encounter,
and
it
.
.
," 28
was he who
supervised the production of Scarlatti's opera Narciso at the
market Theatre
in
London
in 1720,
Hay-
and who published English
editions of the harpsichord sonatas.
•
After becoming organist in St. George's church, Hanover Square, London, Roseingrave came to an unhappy end. "Having a few years after this election fixed his affections on a lady of no dovelike constancy," as Burney says, he "was rejected by her at the time he thought himself most secure of being united to her for ever. This disappointment was so severely felt by the unfortunate lover, as to occasion a temporary and whimsical insanity. He used to say that the lady's cruelty had so literally and completely broken his heart, that he heard the strings of it crack at the time he received his sentence; and on that account ever after called the disorder of his intellects his crepation, from the Italian verb crefare, to crack. After this misfortune poor Roseingrave was never able to bear any kind of noise, without great emotion. If, during his
performance on the organ
at church,
any one near him coughed,
sneezed, or blew his nose with violence, he would instantly quit the instrument and run out of church, seemingly in the greatest
pain and terror, crying out that
him and played on 28
By
it
was old scratch who tormented
his cremation.
at least, Roseingrave seems to have been spreading his England. (Walker, p. 19s.) Vocal works of "the famous Domenico Scarlatti" were performed in London on March 26, along with a cantata by Roseingrave. (The Daily Courant, March 25, 1718.)
In
1
7 14.
1
71 8
friend's reputation in
THE YOUNG EAGLE "About the year 1737, on account of his occasional insanity he at St. George's church by the late Mr. Keeble, who, during the life of Roseingrave, divided with him the salary. was superseded
I
prevailed on
.
him once
builder, but his nerves
an organ
to touch
at Byfield's the
.
.
organ-
were then so unstrung that he could execute
but few of the learned ideas which his mental disorder had left
him.
.
.
The
.
instrument on which he had exercised himself in the
most enthusiastic part of of
his life, bore
very
uncommon marks
of
and perseverance, for he had worn the ivory covering
diligence
of the keys quite through to the wood." 29
many
But the most important friendship that Domenico Scarlatti formed during these years was that with Handel, the "caro Sassone" who was sweeping all musical Italy before him. It will be recalled that Handel was exactly the same age. He had met Gian
Hamburg
Gastone, the brother of Ferdinando de' Medici in 1
703-1 704 and was persuaded by
Mainwaring, Handel's first visit to
first
Venice "he was
him
come
to
in
to Italy in 1706.
80
HandePs
biographer, tells us that on
discovered there at a Masquerade,
first
while he was playing on a harpsichord in his visor. Scarlatti hap-
pened
to be there,
and affirmed that
it
could be no one but the
famous Saxon, or the devil." 31 Mainwaring's story about "the famous Saxon, or the devil,"
is
with well-known musicians, and as
context
is
notably inaccurate.
probable, this meeting took place in Venice,
is
sometime during the winter of season.
32
Scarlatti
Mainwaring
tells
1
it
"When
he came
were Alessandro
707-1 708, probably in the Carnival
another story of a meeting between
Burney,
first
An
Streatfeild,
1
709,
when
into Italy, the masters in greatest esteem
Scarlatti, Gasparini,
A General
in
Rome.
he became acquainted with 80 Streatfeild, pp. 32 account of
If,
must have been
and Handel. This probably took place early
they were both in
29
a perennial legend in connection
its
and
Lotti.
The
Cardinal Ottoboni's.
at
History of Music, Vol.
II,
first
Here
of these also
he
pp. 705-706.
31
Mainwaring, pp. 51-52. Handel's movements in Italy may be summarized here from pp. 28-49: Florence, autumn of 1706; Rome before April 4, 1707; 24, 26.
departure for Venice after September 24, arrival before the end of November 1707} Rome before March 3, 1708; Naples, beginning of July Rome, spring of 1709; Venice by December 1709} Hannover in the spring of 1710. How 5
much
of this time Scarlatti spent in Handel's *
32
'
company
is
not definitely known.
THE YOUNG EAGLE became known
to
Dominico
now
Scarlatti,
living in Spain,
and
author of the celebrated lessons. As he was an exquisite player on the harpsichord, the Cardinal was resolved to bring
Handel together
for a trial of skill.
The
him and on the
issue of the trial
harpsichord hath been differently reported. It has been said that
some gave the preference to Scarlatti. However, when they came to the Organ there was not the least pretence for doubting to which of them it belonged. Scarlatti himself declared the superiority of his antagonist, and owned ingenuously, that till he had heard him upon this instrument, he had no conception of its powers. So greatly was he struck with his peculiar method of playing, that he followed him all over Italy, and was never so happy as when he was with him.
"Handel used often
to speak of this person with great satisfac-
and indeed there was reason for it for besides his great talents as an artist, he had the sweetest temper, and the genteelest behaviour. On the other hand, it was mentioned but lately by the two Plas [the famous Hautbois] who came from Madrid, that Scarlatti, as oft as he was admired for his great execution, would mention Handel, and cross himself in token of veneration. tion j
j
"Though no two persons ever respective instruments, yet difference in their latti
is
it
arrived at such perfection on their
remarkable that there was a
manner. The
seems to have consisted
total
characteristic excellence of Scar-
and delicacy
in a certain elegance
Handel had an uncommon brilliancy and command but what distinguished him from all other players who
of expression. of finger:
possessed these same qualities, was that amazing fulness, force, and
energy, which he joined with them." 33
Handel and Domenico's Later,
Scarlatti, as
earliest operas,
we have remarked were
in connection
remarkably close
when Domenico had developed remained
in his harpsichord pieces, little
ful
still
his in
own
more on account
of
with style.
individual style
common. Only
of pieces, obviously relatively early, are at all
of Handel, and then
in
common
a hand-
reminiscent
characteristics
than of any possible influence. (See Sonatas 35, 63, $5, for example.) But we have no way of dating Scarlatti's earliest pieces, consequently no definite knowledge of the 38
Mainwaring, pp. 59-62. ' '
33
way he was
actually
THE YOUNG EAGLE writing for the harpsichord during his residence in
manner
of the
in
which he and Handel
Italy,
may have exchanged
nor in-
fluence.
In the spring of 1708 Handel was in
Rome
composing
Resurrezione on a text by Carlo Sigismondo Capeci.
A
his
year later
La Consame librettist. By the autumn of 1 709, however, Handel went away to Venice and the North, never again to meet his friendly competitor. Domenico Scarlatti too had completed his Flegeljahre. Domenico was
also
verstone di Clodoveo
in
Rome, preparing
Re
his
oratorio,
di Francia, to a text by the
34
*
Ill
•
ROMAN PATRIMONY
QUEEN CRISTINA AND HER CIRCLE
CARDINAL OTTOBONI PASARCADIA MARIA CASIMIRA OF POLAND CORELLI CAPECI, JUVARRA, AND DOMENICO's OPERAS QUINI
•
•
•
•omen ico Scarlatti's entire years in Rome were Ipassed under the influence of a realmless sovereign whom he never knew but who left an enduring legacy to every branch of
and
letters
Queen
when she died
Cristina
of
in
Sweden,
patron, the sponsor of his earliest successes,
every important aspect of Domenico's
father's
his
and the
Roman
Roman
arts
1689. This was first
inspiration of
patrimony.
Her
and admirers were still numerous in the society frequented by Domenico, and his own first Roman patroness spent her entire friends
sojourn in
Rome
in unsuccessful
emulation of her brilliant prede-
cessor.
Cristina of
eight and,
Sweden abdicated her throne
much
at the
age of twenty-
to the consternation of the Protestants her father
Gustavus Adolphus had championed, formally announced her conversion to Catholicism. 1
To
the animated salons of the Palazzo
Queen had been established since 659/ flocked poets, scholars, diplomats, prelates, visiting men of letters, and the leaders of the Arcadian academy later initiated in her memory. Bernardo Pasquini furnished music for her for many 3 years, and Arcangelo Corelli dedicated to her his first book of trio sonatas. Into this illustrious company Alessandro Scarlatti was admitted before he was twenty, as chapelmaster to the Queen. 4 Riario in Trastevere, where the 1
Of
the great Pallas Nordica y that paragon of
Roman
bluestock-
and their unapproachable model ever since, a visiting traveler drew this portrait: "Her is above sixty Years of Age, of a very low Stature, extream fat, and thick. Her Complexion, Voice, and Countenance are very masculine: her Nose is great, her Eyes are large and blue, and her Eye-brows yellow. She has a double Chin strew'd with some long Hairs of Beard; and her under Lip ings
M
1
Bain, Chapters VI and VII.
2
Pincherle, Corelli, p. 15.
8
Cametti, Cristina di Svezia.
*
Dent, p. 25.
*
35
'
ROMAN TATRIMONY sticks
out a
Her Hair
little.
of a bright Chesnut colour, about a
is
bristl'd up, without any Headand obliging Manners. As for her
Hand-breadth long, powder'd and dress ; she has a smiling Air,
Habit, imagine a Man's Justaucor of black Sattin, reaching to the
Knee, and button'd quite down; a very short black Coat, which
Man's Shooe; a great Knot of black Ribbon instead of and a Girdle above the Justaucor, which keeps up her 5 Belly, and makes its Roundness fully appear." Queen Cristina was an ardent protectress of the theater. Her secretary, Count d'Alibert, was in charge of the principal public opera house in Rome, the Tor di Nona, which had been rebuilt on the banks of the Tiber in 1671, but which was to be demolished by discovers a a Cravat,
papal order in 1697.
6
The
Rome
theater in
pursued an uncertain
destiny, periodically subject to the attacks of prudish prelates.
Queen hated
the
clergy.
More
stuffiness
it
But
vigorously in the
than once she chose to ignore the clouds of scandal
around certain
that gathered
tervened in their behalf. first
and combatted
opera production
On
at the
theatrical personages,
and even
in-
the occasion of Alessandro Scarlatti's
Collegio Clementino in 1679 she lent
who was
her protection to the young composer
"in notable dis-
favor with the Court of the Vicar because of a clandestine marriage of his sister with a cleric. But the
Queen
sent her carriage to fetch
him, that he might play in the orchestra, even when the Cardinal Vicar was himself in attendance on her Majesty."
The music
of
Roman
operas, in this
7
and the next century, was
quite incidental to the success of the singers, the vanity of the librettist,
and the glory accruing
to the stage designers.
Lasses records the dazzling impression curious art,
and
Of era,
or musical
set forth
ing can be
more
Drammata,
Richard
made on him by "the
recited with such admirable
with such wonderful changes of Scenes, that nothsurprizing.
Here
I
have seen upon their Stages,
Rivers swelling, and Boats rowing upon them; Waters overflowing their Banks and Stage;
Men
flying in the Air, Serpents crawling
upon the Stage, Houses falling on the suddain, Temples and Boscos appearing, whole Towns, known Towns, starting up on the suddain with Men walking in the Streets; the Sun appearing and 5
Misson, Vol.
II,
Part
I,
p. 35.
•Ademollo, Chapter XV.
7
This portrait was drawn ca. 1688. Dent, pp. 23-24; Ademollo, pp. 157-158. •
36-
ROMAN TATRIMONY chasing away darkness, Sugar
heads like Hail, Rubans
Plumbs
flash in the
fall
upon the Spectators
Ladies faces like lightning,
with a Thousand such like representations." 8
The
public theaters of
Rome had
enjoyed a brief period of en-
couragement under Pope Clement IX, who had himself been a
XI, not entirely without provocation, did The charging of admission was forbidden; women were not allowed to appear on the stage; and opera singers were not permitted to sing in church. These measures were only moderately successful. When the grilles were removed from the boxes in one of the smaller theaters, the sources of scandal were not removed with them, but remained perfectly visible to the audience. Papa Minga or "he who says no," as Innocent XI was called in the dialect of his native Milan, attempted to extend to the uncertain domain of female clothing such reforms dramatist, but Innocent his best to discourage
as
them.
could be enforced only by sending the police to the laundries to
confiscate all dresses with short sleeves
Queen
and low
Thereupon
necks.
Cristina led her court in a call at the Vatican
gowned
in
utterly ridiculous parodies of the papal prescriptions for dress,
known
as Innocentianes.
9
But by the time of Domenico
Scarlatti's
was anything but puritanical and the
sojourn
restrictions
Roman
society
on public theaters
and opera performances had considerably relaxed, owing in part to the influence of his theatrically-minded royal and ecclesiastical patrons.
When Queen
Cristina died in 1689 she left behind her a circle
who kept her memory Her function as a center
of friends century.
and
arbiter of the arts
was taken
Rome for another half Roman society and a patron over by Cardinal Ottoboni. Her alive in
of
legacy of wit and belles-lettres was administered by the Arcadian
academy, founded the year after her death by the group that had frequented her salons at the Palazzo Riario.
Her
was Queen Maria Casimira of Poland, who was
royal successor as eager as she
was unsuited to carry on the tradition of the inimitable Alessandro Scarlatti was closely associated with tina's successors, as 8
Lasses, Part II, pp.
9
The information
in
all
of
Cristina.
Queen
Cris-
he had been with the Queen herself. These 152-153. this
paragraph
is
drawn from Ademollo, Chapters VIII
and XVII. *
37
*
ROMAN TATRIMONY Domenico
associations
inherited
when he supplanted
father
his
Rome.
in
Pietro Ottoboni, the son of a noble Venetian family, was cardinal on
November
made
a
1689, f° ur weeks after the accession to
7,
would be
the papacy of his cousin, Alexander VIII (1 689-1691). It
hard to find a more striking example of eighteenth-century urbanity than Ottoboni. So
many prebends and
clerical
sources of income
from church lands had been diverted in his direction during the VIII that he became immensely wealthy, though his extravagances continually placed him in debt. Installed after 1693 m tne Cancelleria Palace under the same roof short pontificate of Alexander
as his church of
San Lorenzo
in
The
Damaso, he kept a
many
entertained liberally, and gave
and Conca were paid
painters Trevisani
order to ensure the Cardinal
first
a regular salary in
choice of all their works. Arc-
angelo Corelli occupied an apartment in his palace. 10 that at the papal conclave of
The
story goes
69 1 the young Cardinal, bored with
1
own
the lengthy proceedings, employed his
him
lavish table,
private musical performances.
orchestra to play for
outside his cell, to the great disturbance and annoyance of
neighbor cardinals. According to Roman gossip of the time, he was by no means an earnest adherent of the clerical vows of celibacy. His mistresses were painted as saints, and in this guise their his
portraits
adorned
bedroom. 11 Montesquieu
his
sixty or seventy bastards.
12
Blainville describes
obliging, well-behaved to every body,
whom
he receives
... As to his
Mind
j
in the
is
it
him
him with
as:
"liberal,
affable to Strangers,
most complaisant Manner
at his
House.
may venture to say, it is as amiable as no Wonder if Cardinal Ottoboni has an
one
his Person,
so that
and very
credits
extraordinary Value and Affection for him." 13
At the time of
his death in
1
740 he was described by de Brosses mine, amateur des arts,
as "sans moeurs, sans credit, debauche,
grand musicien." 14
Simon
St.
calls
him "un panier
perce."
15
It is
true that his brilliance seems to have faded with his youth and his 10 11
Burney, A General History of Music, Vol. The information in this paragraph thus
qualified by footnote 10, 12 Montesquieu, Vol.
is
I,
14
De
15
Saint-Simon, Vol.
Brosses, Vol.
I,
438. with the exception derived from Ranft, Vol. II, pp. 268-271. II, p.
13 Blainville,
p. 701.
p. 489. See also p. 124.
XIX,
far,
p. 21.
•
38
•
Vol.
II, p.
394.
of
that
ROMAN TATRIMONY revenues, but then the French always spoke harshly of him.
however, knew him
Scarlattis,
he was a tion
is
man
The
at his best. All accounts indicate that
of extraordinarily cultivated taste, and this reputa-
substantiated by the
of artists
list
whom
he had under
his
Few eminent musicians who came to Rome seem to have escaped him. The Cardinal was closely associated with every patronage.
operatic undertaking in
Rome. At
at Santa
was
Maria Maggiore. appointment
latti his
serving as
at
the same time he was protector 16
and concerned with the music was he who procured Alessandro Scarthat church in 1703, and for him Alessandro
of the Papal Chapel (after 1700) It
maestro di caffella
in
1707.
17
The
terest in the theater did not stop with patronage,
18
More
own
rooms of the Cancel-
private theater, which he built into one of the leria.
Cardinal's in-
nor with his
than once he supplied composers with opera librettos
(Alessandro Scarlatti with
La
on one unfortunate occasion
Statira in 1690,
( 1
19
for example),
and
69 1 ) he wrote both text and music
Colombo a resounding failure. 20 "Never was there subject more ridiculous or worse conceived," exclaims a French spectator. for
,
"It concerned Christopher Columbus, who, in traversing the seas, falls passionately in
The weekly
love with his
recitals of
own
wife."
21
chamber music, or Accademie Poetko-
Musicali, at Cardinal Ottoboni's were famous all over Europe.
Here
Corelli led the performances of sonatas
and here many of Alessandro the
first
time.
"The
so excellent, that
and concerted music, 22
Scarlatti's cantatas
violoncello parts of
whoever was able
to
many
were sung for
of these cantatas were
do them
justice
was thought
a supernatural being. Geminiani used to relate that Franceschilli
[Franceschiello], a celebrated performer on the violoncello at the
beginning of
Rome
this century,
accompanied one of these cantatas
so admirably, while Scarlatti
the company, being
was
good Catholics and
living in a country
where
miraculous powers have not yet ceased, were firmly persuaded
was not Franceschelli 16 18
20
berg
[sic]
at
at the harpsichord, that
who had played
it
the violoncello, but
17 Dent, pp. 72, 74. Bolsena. Filiffo Juvarra, Volume Primo, p. 50.
Adami da
Ademollo, Chapter as
XX. Dent
(p.
19 Dent, p. 74. 74) gives the date as 1692, and Loevven-
1690.
21
Ademollo, pp. 179-180, quoting Coulanges, Memoires (Paris, 1820).
22
Streatfeild, p. 345 Pincherle, Corelli, p. 15. '
39
*
ROMAN TATRIMONY 23 an angel that had descended and assumed his shape." Doubtless
it
was an angel painted
Carlo Maratta.
in the silvery tones of
on
Blainville describes one of the Cardinal's concerts
1707: "His Eminence
.
.
in Rome, and amongst and young Paolucci, who
Performers Corelli,
Europe
so that every
j
and we
his Palace,
reckoned the
Wednesday he has an
very Day.
assisted there this
finest
other.
But the greatest Inconveniency
Visits,
is,
who come
is
thither
pestered with
on purpose
We
and
-,
were there is
likewise
visit
one an-
this
in all these Concerts
Swarms
to
Voice in
excellent Concert in
Custom when the Cardinals or Roman Princes that one
14,
famous Archangelo
others, the is
served with iced and other delicate Liquors the
May
keeps in his Pay, the best Musicians and
.
their
fill
and
of trifling little Abbes, Bellies
with
those
Liquors, and to carry off the Crystal Bottles, with the Napkins into the Bargain."
was
It
at
24
one of these Accademie that the famous contest be-
tween Domenico
The
Scarlatti
and Handel
instrument at which Handel
is
won
have taken
said to
place.
25
over Scarlatti
his victory
appears to have been the handsome one-manual choir organ with a
number
of stops, which
described in the inventory of the
is
Cardinal's instruments prepared after his death in
harpsichord at which Scarlatti held his
one of a dozen or so
own
1740.
26
The
Handel was These were of
against
in the Cardinal's possession.
the traditional Italian construction, either with two registers sound-
ing at normal pitch, or with a third register sounding an octave higher, the instruments themselves being placed in elaborately
decorated outer cases.
One
of these harpsichords with a case painted
by Gaspard Dughet Poussin probably resembled an instrument now in the
Metropolitan
Museum
of Art (Fig. 3). Another item in the
Ottoboni catalogue was "a harpsichord with full compass and three registers with a
spective
removable case with a folding
by Gio. Paolo Panini
chiaroscuro and gilded with festoons and cupids.
.
.
."
lid
[sic], said case
fine
gold, with
One wonders
if
23
Burney,
Blainville, Vol. II, p. 394.
25
Mainwaring, pp. 59-62. Cembali del Cardinale Ottoboni. Appendix
General History of Music, Vol.
26 Cametti, /
•
40
•
II, p.
legs
carved with
by any chance
24
A
painted in per-
painted outside in
629.
III
A.
it
was
ROMAN TATRIMONY who
Pannini
many
Handel and
Besides
Rome
painted the two views of
house in Madrid
may have performed
years later.
hung
that
the two Scarlattis another great musician
frequently on the Cardinal's instruments.
Bernardo Pasquini was now the beloved patriarch of Gasparini says of him: to study
in Scarlatti's
27
"Whoever
Roman
has had the fortune to
under the tutelage of the most famous
Sig.
music.
work or
Bernardo Pas-
Rome, or who at least has seen or heard him play, will have made the acquaintance of the truest, most beautiful and most quini in
noble style of playing and accompanying, so full will he have heard his
Harpsichord of a perfection of marvelous Harmony." 28 Do-
menico
Scarlatti
his earliest
had
days in
this
Rome
good fortune, and at the court of
so
had
Queen
his father
Cristina.
from
Some
of
the best musicians of the day were proud to call themselves Pas-
most notably Gasparini himself, as did also Giovanni and from beyond the Alps, Georg Muffat and J. P. Krieger. Pasquini was born in Tuscany in 1637, studied in Rome with Lorenzo Vittori, later with Marcantonio Cesti, served as maestro di caffella to Queen Cristina, and as organist to the City of Rome at the Ara Coeli from 1 664 and also at Santa Maria Mag29 giore. He died on November 21, 1710. Pasquini was a man of a singular charm that shines even through the dust of memoirs and epitaphs. Although his remarkably fresh keyboard music is genquini's pupils,
Maria
Casini,
erally cast in the
furnishes the
first
solemn forms of the seventeenth century, evidences in Italy of a
However, only Domenico's
earliest
new
it
gallantry of style.
keyboard music shows
his
relationship with Pasquini. Later he developed a completely dif-
and cultivated developments in form from those conceived by Pasquini. In Pasquini all
ferent technique of playing,
quite different is
dolcezza, all
is
ineffable blandness, as in the delicious Toccata
con lo Scherzo del Cuccu. There satire
and
is
humor, but not the mordant
brittle sparkle so typical of Scarlatti.
Pasquini shared Gasparini's reverence for Frescobaldi and for 27
Inventory of that portion of Domenico Scarlatti's estate which was allotted Maria, in September 1757. Appendix II.
to his daughter, 28
Gasparini, p. 60 (edition of 1745). The foregoing biographical information concerning Pasquini is drawn from Bonaventura, pp. 27, 31-33, 42-47, 64. Crescimbeni, Nolizie istoriche dr%U Arcadi morti, Vol. II, p. 330, includes a biography of Pasquini. 29
'
41
*
ROMAN PATRIMONY own
the music of an earlier day. Domenico's
lifelong respect for
sixteenth-century church music was founded ^m the impressions of his
youth and on the teachings of the elder
None
Gasparini, and Bernardo Pasquini.
doned
even
in theory,
if
Scarlatti,
Francesco
them had
yet aban-
they had in practice, the rigors of the old
Bernardo Pasquini
Italian counterpoint. his
of
direct
left
evidence of
devotion to Palestrina in a volume of his motets that he had
put into score
in
1690:
and does not
organist,
"Whoever pretends to be who does
milk of these divine compositions of Palestrina,
and always
is
not drink the
without doubt,
Bernardo
will be, a miserable wretch. Sentiment of
Pasquini, pitiful ignoramus."
The
a musician, or
taste the nectar,
30
greatest Italian musician
whom Domenico and
at Ottoboni's palace, after Pasquini
his
own
Scarlatti
father,
heard
was Arc-
angelo Corelli. Universally admired throughout Europe and even
beyond the
works have outlived those of most of
his
sea,
With
his
and concertos Corelli laid the very foundations of eighteenth-century chamber music. Unlike the contemporaries.
his sonatas
violinists of the next generation
he always subordinated virtuosity
of execution to purity of musical expression. In another of his flights of
enthusiasm, Gasparini calls him the "true Orpheus of
who
our time
with such
lates his Basses
lated that
with
.
and resolved and it
.
artifice, skill .
and grace moves and modu-
bindings and Dissonances so well regu-
interwoven with variety of Themes,
so well
can well be said that he has discovered the perfection of
Harmony." 31 later years Domenico
ravishing If in
most unheard of
licenses,
Scarlatti could
permit himself the
was because he had mastered the
it
teachings of Gasparini, Pasquini, Corelli, and his father, each of
whom composed
in his
own way with
the greatest refinement of
and the most completely disciplined command of every artifice known to music. Their example gave him the same power to tame style
the luxuriance of his fancy and to direct his wealth of sentiment as the paternal discipline of a
Salzburg
violinist
gave
to
Wolfgang
Mozart. In the academy of Arcadia Domenico Scarlatti found the literary legacy of that 30
Bonaventura,
Roman p. 32.
culture in which his father 31
had come
Gasparini, p. 44 (edition of 1745). •
42
'
to
ROMAN TATRIMONY maturity, and with which he had never lost contact. In Arcadian
groves the
memory
of
Queen
Cristina
was frequently and
cere-
moniously invoked. Assuming fanciful names (Ottoboni was known as Crateo and Queen Maria Casimira as Amirisca Telea), the nymphs and shepherds of Arcadia met in various Roman palaces,
which they called huts, and
in the
formal gardens that they desig-
nated as pastures. Instead of sheep they tended delicately per-
fumed memories
of
Greek and Roman
Laura, and of Sannazaro.
The
poets,
of Petrarch and
insigne of the society was a syrinx.
In 1726, through the munificence of Domenico Scarlatti's later V of Portugal, they opened their own Bosco Parhasio
patron Joao
on the slopes of the Gianiculum. 32 This Arcadian grove, one of the most enchanting of eighteenth-century gardens, with
amphitheater and intricately curving shaded paths,
still
its
tiny
exists as
an utterly captivating oasis where the sound of quietly trickling fountains drifts
is
still
hardly drowned out by the racket that often
up from the nearby teeming alleys of Trastevere.
Most
Roman society among which Domenico moved had found its way into Arcadia. 33
of the cultivated
and Alessandro
Scarlatti
The Arcadian shepherds Martelli, Rolli, Zeno, and
included the
many
poets
other opera
Capeci,
Frugoni,
librettists of the time.
Giambattista Vico was an Arcadian, and later so was Metastasio. Secretary to the
academy was Giovanni Mario Crescimbeni, whose
florid accounts of
Arcadian pastimes rival
nazaro and Sir Philip Sidney.
members
Among
in preciosity
even San-
the shepherds were two
of the Florentine Scarlatti family, the Abate Alessandro
and Canon Giulio Alessandro Scarlatti. 34 Despite the 35 efforts of Domenico's descendants, no kinship between the aristocratic Tuscan Scarlatti family and the relatively obscure Sicilian family of musicians seems to have been definitely established. Although Alessandro Scarlatti, Arcangelo Corelli, and Bernardo Scarlatti,
Pasquini had frequently participated in Arcadian "academies of
music" and were intimates of the principal shepherds, the original 32
V
A
marble tablet with an inscription commemorating this gift bottom of the garden. 33 Accounts of the Arcadia and its members may be found in Crescimbeni, Arcadia, and Notizie istoriche degli Arcadi morti; Carini; and also Vernon Lee. 34 Crescimbeni, Arcadia, pp. 350, 363, and Notizie istoriclu degli Arcadi
still
Morei,
p. 67.
faces the gate at the
V
morti, pp. 252-254. 35 See Chapter VII. •
43
*
ROMAN TATRIMONY had admitted only poets and noblemen. In
rules of the society
1706 a special revision was made in the constitution, and on April 26 the three musicians were received into Arcadia under the names ZQ TerfandrOy Arcomelo and Protico.
On
and Corelli offered to pronymphs and shepherds at the hut [i.e. palace] of Metauro [the Abate Rivera]. With flowery 37 reports that Arcomelo [Corelli] first led the praises Crescimbeni orchestra in one of the symphonies he had composed at the hut of the famed Crateo [the palace of Cardinal Ottoboni]. Then Terpandro [Scarlatti] drew from his "knapsack" some canzoni of Tirsi one occasion
Scarlatti, Pasquini,
vide an evening's entertainment for the
[Giambattista Zappi]. Tirsi protested that they were not worthy of
company, having been written only
so distinguished a to
to be set
music and that he was accustomed to improvise them hastily,
who was to set them, Terpandro would have observed while they were together in
generally at the very table of the composer as
the delicious Parthenopian countryside
pandro replied that
it
was
the
all
To
[Naples].
more admirable
this
Ter-
in Tirsi that
he
should possess the talent to improvise what others even with effort
could not produce at
all.
After cantatas had been performed to these same verses with Protico [Pasquini] and Terpandro alternating at the harpsichord,
and additional instrumental pieces had been played, Terpandro observed from his harpsichord that Tirsi appeared preoccupied. "If I guess, oh Tirsi, the reason of your deep thought, what will
you give me?"
Tirsi replied: "I will give
but on condition that you immediately
noble company."
The outcome was
you what
make
I
am
a present of
that Tirsi recited the
thinking, it
to this
new poem
he had inwardly been composing and Terpandro immediately it
to music
and had
it
sung.
The evening ended
Tirsi improvising so rapidly that hardly
set
with Terpandro and
had one
finished the last
line of a poem before the other had completed the music for it. Overwhelming Tirsi and Terpandro and his companions with applause, the company disbanded to prepare for an early departure
the next day for "Elysium." 86
Dent, p. 89; Bonaventura, pp. 30-31. This entire account is paraphrased from Crescimbeni, timo, Prosa IV and Prosa V. 87
*
44
'
U Arcadia,
Libro Set-
ROMAN TATRIMONY Domenico though
was never made a shepherd of Arcadia,
Scarlatti
music was performed
his
there..
Nor was Handel,
al-
al-
though a frequent guest. Yet most of the personages prominent during Domenico's Roman sojourn were Arcadians. At first the
names and sider,
attitudes of this
company seem
ridiculous to an out-
but as one unbinds the sheaves of pastoral poetry and rolls
over the tongue the mellifluous names of the shepherds, unconsciously
he begins to share the innocent pleasures of an Arcadian
pasture.
Domenico
most direct legacy from the world of his and from Queen Cristina, was the patronage of her not altogether successful imitator, Queen Maria Casimira of PoScarlatti's
father's youth,
land. In fact his connection with her seems to have been directly
passed on to
him by
his father.
Maria Casimira was not
a personage of
whom
have
historians
spoken with unmixed admiration. She seems to have possessed
even
in
her old age a somewhat troublesome disposition. Said to
have been extremely beautiful centered,
her youth, she was jealous,
in
and inordinately fond of petty
intrigue.
Born
in
self-
France
La Grange d'Arquien, she had first gone to maid of honor to Queen Maria Luisa Gonzaga. Her second husband was Jan Sobieski, with whom she quarreled passionately and incessantly. He became King of Poland in 1674.
in
1
641 as Marie
Poland
as a
Their eldest son, when he succeeded caution of exiling his in
to the throne, took the pre-
mother from Poland. She arrived
in
Rome
April 1699 eager to set up a court that would be as brilliant
as that of
Queen
Cristina.
As the widow
of a distinguished de-
fender of Christendom against the Turks, Maria Casimira obviously considered herself as
warmly
much
of an asset to the
Church and
who although
welcome as had been she was the daughter of a defender of Protestantism, was one of the Church's most conspicuous and most highly prized converts. Although Maria Casimira had little
as
Cristina,
entitled to
(or perhaps because)
of the dignity, less of the charm,
and none of the
intellect of
her
predecessor, she was well received, and on October 5, 1699, was
welcomed 88
The
into the Arcadian
information
in this
academy. 38
paragraph *
is
45
derived from Waliszewski. *
ROMAN PATRIMONY The Romans however were
quick to notice the difference be-
tween the two queens, and not long after Maria Casimira's arrival 39 a pasquinade was making the rounds.
"Sired by a Gallic cock, the simple hen Lived 'mongst the Poles, and thence a Queen
To Rome Her
Christian than Christine"
and ostentatious piety was punctuated by
of extravagance
life
more
she came,
petty quarrels with the clergy over questions of protocol and by
the scandals raised by her two sons.
40
They might have been
said
SPQR
was
to give foreign support to the current assertion that
an abbreviation not for Senatus fopulusque Romanus but for
Sanno futtare, queste Romane. 41
Domenico
Scarlatti appears to
have entered Maria Casimira's
service as a direct substitute for his father.
By
the
summer
of
1
708
Alessandro was serving as her maestro di caf fella, and producing a serenade,
La
Vittoria della
Fede, for performance
at the
Queen's
commemoration of Jan Sobieski's vic42 the siege of Vienna. But shortly thereafter
palace on September 12 in
tory over the
Turks
at
Alessandro decided to return to Naples in the service of Cardinal
Grimani, then viceroy for the Austrian rulers of Naples. (Cardinal
Grimani had written the sandro for
summoned
him a supernumerary
Naples,
43
Handel's Agriffina.) Alesfrom Urbino and obtained
post as organist in the royal chapel at
himself took a provisional position as deputy
on December January
libretto for
his eldest son Pietro
9,
Casimira to sojourn in
1,
first
organist
regained his old post as maestro di caf fella on 44
and turned over his position with Queen Maria Domenico, who remained with her for the rest of her
1709,
Rome.
When Domenico she was in her late
Scarlatti sixties.
entered Maria Casimira's service 45
More through
the attractions of ex-
travagance and prestige than through those of wit or amiability 39
Waliszewski, p. 273 [his spelling]:
"Naqui da un Gallo semplice Vissi tra
li
gallina,
Polastri, e poi regina,
Venni a Roma, Christiana
e
non Christina."
41 Montesquieu, Vol. I, p. 671. Waliszewski, Chapter XI. 43 42 Cametti, Carlo Sigismondo Ligi, p. 136; Prota-Giurleo, Cafeci. 44 Dent, pp. 113, 116. 45 By Lent of 1709, the time of the performance of CloJoveo.
40
46
•
p.
26.
ROMAN TATRIMONY she had collected around her the survivors of the old circle of Cristina, the
nymphs and shepherds
of Arcadia, and the frequenters
had leased a palace on the formed by the meet46 ing of the Via Gregoriana and the Via Sistina. It had been built of the Ottoboni salon. In 1702 she
Piazza della Trinita de Monti,
at the triangle
by the sixteenth-century painter Federigo Zuccari, who designed the strange grotesques that
manded
adorn
still
it.
The upper floors comRome, past San
a superb view across the rooftops of
dome
Carlo al Corso to the
of St. Peter's in the west. Since
Maria Casimira's day the palace has sheltered a variety of distinguished occupants, among them the antiquarian Winckelmann and the painters Reynolds and David. 47 It also served d'Annunzio as the scene for
some of the luxuriously perfumed episodes
in his
novel II Piacere.
In the same year that she had
moved
into the
Maria Casimira had petitioned the Pope
"decent comedies" performed in her house. theatrical
Palazzo Zuccari,
for permission to have 48
Her
performances began to realize themselves
ambitions for in
1704 when
she engaged as her secretary Carlo Sigismondo Capeci, poet and dramatist, onetime jurist
educated in since
and diplomat. 49 Born
Rome and Madrid,
he had been a
in
Rome
member
in 1652,
of Arcadia
1692 under the name of Metisto Olbiano. Capeci wrote the
librettos for all the
performances that thereafter took place
the Queen's Palace.
The
first
of these were
two or three singers and prologues
little
to ballets. In the
1708 Maria Casimira built a small private theater
in
serenades for
summer
in the
Zuccari, doubtless in imitation of Cardinal Ottoboni's.
of
Palazzo
The
first
opera produced in her newly constructed theater was Alessandro Scarlatti's // Figlio delle Selve,
performed on January
17, 1709.
This was based on an old and successful drama of Capeci's, remodeled on this occasion to serve as the introduction and accom-
paniment
to a ballet.
Either this production had been planned
before Domenico's appointment or there had not been time for
him
to
compose
a
new work. Subsequently Domenico annually
48 Waliszewski, ^ ibid., pp. 53-56. p. 274. "Korte, pp. 48-52. The remaining facts in this paragraph are drawn from Cametti, Carlo Sigismondo Capeci. The performance on January 17, 1709, appears to have been
48
directed by
Domenico,
since Alessandro
•
was already back
47
'
in
Naples.
ROMAN TATRIMONY composed an opera of his own on a the Queen remained in Rome.
When
libretto of Capeci's as
long as
perused for their subject matter these librettos make un-
satisfactory reading, but the
language has a
vitality, a suavity,
and
an expressiveness that seem immediately to invoke music. Addison
might have been describing Capeci's
librettos
when he commented "The Italian Poets,
a few years before on the texts of Italian opera:
Tongue, have a
besides the celebrated Smoothness of their
partic-
ular Advantage, above the Writers of other Nations, in the difference of their Poetical and Prose Language.
There are indeed
Sets of Phrases that in all Countries are peculiar to the Poets, but
among
the Italians there are not only Sentences, but a Multitude of
particular
Words
that never enter into
common
Discourse.
They
have such a different Turn and Polishing for Poetical Use, that they drop several of their Letters, and appear in another Form,
when they come
to be ranged in Verse. For this Reason the Italian Opera seldom sinks into a Poorness of Language, but, amidst all the Meanness and Familiarity of the Thoughts, has something beautiful and sonorous in the Expression. Without this natural Advantage of the Tongue, their present Poetry would appear wretchedly low and vulgar, notwithstanding the many strained
Allegories that are so
much
in use
among
the Writers of this
Nation." 50
Domenico
Scarlatti's first
composition for Maria Casimira was
La Conversione
di Clodoveo Re di Francia, probably performed during Lent of 1709. An example such as Addison might have had in mind of a commonplace and even ludicrous
an oratorio,
thought ennobled by the elegance of Capeci's language text for this little aria:
"Rasserenatevi
Care Pupille; Ch'io vado a spargere
Di sangue
i
fiumi
Perche compensino
De
vostri
Le vaghe
lumi stille.
Rasserenatevi. 50
Addison,
p. 66.
48
.
.
."
is
the
ROMAN PATRIMONY An
artist of
Domenico
much more
Scarlatti at this
conspicuous talent than either Capeci or
time was the architect and scene designer
of the Queen's theater, Filippo Juvarra.
51
His scenery lent
real
glory to Maria Casimira's opera productions, for the numerous sketches with which his surviving notebooks are filled
show an
He
was born
unparalleled grandeur and richness of imagination. at
Messina
in 1678,
and had been
in
Rome
for several years work-
ing with Carlo Fontana. Although his powers of fantasy were considered unusual, and his speed and expressiveness in drawing were
marveled
at,
he had not yet been entrusted with any permanent
constructions of his own.
But
like
every architect of the time he
was continually occupied with designs for fireworks, processions, triumphal arches, and
—above
all
—scenery
for the
1708 he entered the service of Cardinal Ottoboni,
In
theater.
who charged
him with designing furniture, gateways, trionfi, silverware, chanand decorations for celebrations and religious observances.
deliers,
Juvarra also designed for Ottoboni a small theater for the per-
formance of chamber operas. the
Queen
all trace
ings for Ottoboni's theater
The
its size.
Of
this theater as well as of that of
has disappeared, but some of Juvarra's drawstill
exist to give us
an indication of
stage was no larger than a very small room, but the
designs Juvarra
made
for
it
betray such a sense of space and such
an eloquence of perspective that
it is
difficult to
imagine them
re-
duced to the actual dimensions of Ottoboni's diminutive theater. Vast
baroque vaults rear themselves with
garden perspectives open up
fantastic
vistas of infinite distance ;
audacity j
and
ship-
wreck scenes and tempests strike awe into the beholder. Indeed
must have been a challenge for singers and
it
actors to maintain their
parts against competition as formidable as this.
The
theater of
Maria Casimira was probably even smaller than
Ottoboni's, for there was no available space at the Palazzo Zuccari to
compare with the vast reaches of the Cancelleria. There marked "Regina di Pol-
survive eleven of Juvarra's drawings Ionia."
52
These were undoubtedly designed for the operas of
61 The information in this paragraph is derived from Filiffo Juvarra, Volume Primo. 82 Turin, Biblioteca Nazionale, Ris. 59-4. (Figs. 9-14.) Two more are reproduced in Filiffo Juvarra, Volume Primo, Plates 221, 222.
*
49
*
ROMAN TATRIMONY Scarlatti
and Capeci. Some of them show that ideas already
de-
veloped for Ottoboni were transferred with slight modifications
Queen 's
to the
productions ; in fact on one of
name
written Ottoboni's
and
at the top,
at the
them Juvarra has
bottom, "Regina di
Pollonia." This sketch would appear to have been executed on the stage, since
it
bears numberings for the three sets of
that
flats
would have been used. (It might represent either the "Park, or open Garden" in Tetide in Sciro n, 7; or the "Grove near the Temple of Diana" in Ifigenia in Tauri, Act 1. See Fig. 11.) y
made for the Queen are less more lyric than the majority of the Ottoboni drawings. more with natural scenery than with architectural fanta-
In general, the surviving drawings grandiose,
They sy.
deal
A
confrontation of these drawings with the scene directions
of the original librettos does not permit of their identification be-
yond
a doubt, except for the three representing tents.
Encampment on
probably the "General in Aulide, Act
111
One
is
the beaches" of Ifigenia
and another undoubtedly represents Pavillion" from Act 1 of the
(Fig. 13)}
Agamemnon's
the "Countryside with
same opera. 53
La Silvia, a pastorale in three acts, and the first opera of his own that Domenico produced for the Queen, was performed on January 27, 1710. Capeci's dedication of the apologies for the haste of
its
The
with
mind Benedetto Marcello's
flattering epithets, calls again to
recommendations
libretto,
composition and discreet choice of
its its
ironic
to opera poets.
next year Domenico composed two operas for the Queen's
theater.
One was UOrlando
ing Carnival of 171
overo la Gelosa Pazzia, produced dur-
In his preface to the libretto Capeci men-
1.
tions his indebtedness to Ariosto tain modifications
he has made
and
to Boiardo
and
justifies cer-
in the story as necessary to establish
the "unities of time and action that are required
more
strictly in
the tragic than in the epic."
Domenico's Tolomeo ed Alessandro overo zata was
first
performed
la
Corona Disfrez-
Queen's palace on January
at the
19, 171 1.
Capeci designed the text as a rather far-fetched compliment to
Maria Casimira's 53
A
son, Prince Alessandro Sobieski,
variant of this
Plate 221, along with
quite
is reproduced in Fili-pfo Juvarra, Volume Primo, another variant inscribed with Ottoboni's name (Plate
last
still
who had
220). •
50
'
ROMAN TATRIMONY naturally seen himself obliged to yield the throne of Poland to his
A
elder brother.
distant
commentator might remark that
in the
opera Alessandro yields his throne to Tolomeo with what appears
more grace than
to be considerably
The drama
Sobieski. tions
and disguised
that displayed
by Alessandro
complicated tangle of impersona-
itself is a
identities that Capeci outlines as follows:
"Tolomeo banished by
mother Cleopatra dwells secretly in name of Osmino. Seleuce his wife, taken from him and sent by Cleopatra to Trifone tyrant of Syria suffers shipwreck and is believed by everyone to have been drowned in the sea. But actually rescuing herself and knowing that her husband is in Cyprus, disguised also in shepherd's garb under the pretended name of Delia, she betakes herself there in search of him. Alessandro likewise is sent by his mother to Cyprus with a powerful army to lay hands on Tolomeo, although he inwardly intends to save his brother and restore the crown to him. Reigning in Cyprus at the time is Araspe, who lives with his sister Cyprus
his
as a simple shepherd under the
Elisa in a delightful villa situated on the seacoast of that island.
He is
in love
Elisa
is
is
who
with the shepherdess Delia
in love with
also Dorisbe the
Osmino who
is
really
and
really Seleuce,
is
Tolomeo. Here
lastly
daughter of Isauro Prince of Tyre, formerly be-
loved by Araspe and then abandoned. She
gardener under the name of Clori.
is
Among
impersonating a female these six persons arise
various occurrences not contrary to historical truth."
The complete
score for the
inscriptions
"Dominicus Capece" and "Ad usu
probably that is
of Tolomeo turned up reRome. It bears the puzzling
first act
cently in an antiquarian bookshop in
this
C
S," indicating
was a copy prepared for Capeci's own
use.
This
the only full score, complete with recitatives, of an entire act
known
of any of Domenico's operas score calls for four sopranos,
continuo. earliest
The
third
two
to be
still
The
in existence.
contraltos, flute, oboe, strings,
movement
of the
example of Domenico's writing
and
Overture furnishes our
in the
to adopt in nearly all his harpsichord sonatas.
binary form he was
The
first
two
arias
worthy of Juvarra's scenery. Prince Alessandro Sobieski arranged another performance of
are in a fine grand tragic style quite
Tolomeo
for the
nymphs and shepherds
of Arcadia in a specially
constructed and covered outdoor theater. '
51
*
With sugared
praises
ROMAN PATRIMONY Crescimbeni reports this performance in his Arcadia: "Most beautiful
was the
more
theater, nor could
be desired better proportioned or
it
suitable to the occasion: agreeable the voices: pleasing the
action:
most charming the costumes and wrought on a wonderful
design: excellent the music: distinguished the orchestra, and above all
worthy of esteem was the poetic composition:
that everyone
deemed
this
genius which had contrived account of this opera there latti,
though
manner
in such
entertainment well worthy of the royal it.
.
," 54
not one
is
In
all of
Crescimbeni's long
word about Domenico
Scar-
he was conducting the performance
in all probability
from the harpsichord. Nor
.
is
he mentioned
in
volume of
the
complimentary verses that the Arcadians prepared afterwards for the Queen. Its seventeen sonnets and a madrigal by Renda, telli,
Mar-
Buonacorsi, and other Arcadians praise the Queen, Prince
Alessandro, Capeci the
Maria
Giusti,
curious that
librettist,
the two singers Paola Alari and
and other performers
in
this opera.
It
doubly
is
Domenico should have been ignored not only
composer of the music but
as the son of
as the
an esteemed Arcadian
shepherd.
Tetide in Sciro was performed on January 10, 171 2. In account-
made
ing for certain changes
made
in the story, Capeci explains that
come in search of Achilles not as a peddlar but as an ambassador from Agamemnon in order that he may be rendered a more decorous personage. Of Domenico's music Ulysses has been
to
for Tetide in Sciro ten pieces are in existence in vocal score, with
the orchestra represented only by the continue Noteworthy are
"Amando,
the two ensemble pieces, especially the delicious terzet
tacendo."
In this same year Capeci and Scarlatti celebrated the anniversary
Devoto
of Sobieski's liberation of Vienna with an Afplauso
Nome
di
Maria
tagonists,
Time, Sleep, and Eternity, dole out quite
magniloquent
at
Santissima. In this piece the three allegorical pro-
flattery to
Maria Casimira herself
much memory
as
as to the
of her husband. 54
Crescimbeni,
V Arcadia,
Libro Settimo, Prosa XIV.
The Queen annually
in-
vited the Arcadians to a performance (Morei, p. 238). So did Cardinal Ottoboni and Prince Ruspoli (Rome, Biblioteca Angelica, archives of the Arcadia, ms. of
Crescimbeni,
//
Secondo Volume del Racconto de •
52
•
fatti deg/i
Arcadi
.
.
.).
ROMAN PATRIMONY In latti
1
713 the tragedies of Euripides furnished Capeci and ScarOn January 11 Ifigenia in Aulide was
with a pair of operas.
produced, based on Scamacca's translation, and in February Ifigenia in Tauri, drawn, except for the interpolation of additional episodes,
from the version of Pier Jacopo Martelli. 55
The
Amor 1
opera commissioned by the
last
Queen from
d'urfombra e Gelosia d'urtaura, performed
Scarlatti
in
was
January of
714. Capeci based his libretto on a combination of the two fables
Echo and Narcissus and of Cephalus and Procris, from Ovid's Metamorphoses. He remarks in his preface: "I will excuse myof
self
only for having somewhat changed the ending, as in making
Narcissus fall in love not with himself but with Echo, and in mak-
ing Cephalus not this
manner
than a tragic
remainder
I
kill
but only lightly
wound
Procris, because in
end the opera with a happy rather event, according to modern taste and custom. In the have sought not to depart from what was written
I
have thought
by that inimitable pen.
.
.
."
to
Quite content with having utterly de-
stroyed the fundamental meaning of Ovid's allegories in a
manner
among
writers,
that has
become
classic
librettists
and
scenario
Capeci adds a protest designed for the eyes of the ecclesiastical censor.
"The words
Fate, Divinity, Destiny, Adore, and like are to
be recognized as conceits of him
who
writes as a poet, not as senti-
ments of him who professes himself Similar notes had been appended to
a
true
Roman
Tolomeo and
ScirOj to the effect that the believing heart of the
compromised by the
Of
to
Catholic."
Tetide in
author was not
poetic licenses of his pen.
Domenico Scarlatti for Queen Maria Casimira there survive only the complete first act of Tolomeo, ten vocal pieces from Tetide in Sciro with the omission of all instrumental parts except the continuo, and the Overture and vocal pieces of Amor d'utfombra without the recitatives and with some of the instrumental parts suppressed to permit publication in short score. It was Domenico's friend Roseingrave who produced and published Amor d'un'ombra in London in 1720 under the title of Narciso. Apart from a few charming passages, all
the music composed by
especially the serenade with pizzicato violin imitating a mandolin,
reminiscent of Mozart's 55
Don
Giovanni, Narciso leaves us with
Capeci mentions these authors in his prefaces to the respective librettos. *
53
*
ROMAN TATR/MONY but
regret for that dramatic music of Domenico's which
little
has been
lost.
Burney remarks on
many new and
it
with some justice that "though there were
pleasing passages and effects, yet those acquainted
with the original and happy freaks of this composer in his harpsi-
chord
pieces,
would be surprised
at the sobriety
and almost dulness
of his songs. His genius was not yet expanded, and he was not so
much used
to write for the voice as his father,
who was
the greatest
vocal composer of his time, as the son afterwards became the most original
and wonderful performer on the harpsichord,
composer for that instrument. But
it
as well as
seems impossible for any
individual to be equally great in any two things of difficult
at-
tainment!" 56
Notwithstanding the magnificence of her opera productions, or
more properly perhaps because ning short of money. conferring on too
Scarlatti
way
No
of them,
them questionable
may have
Maria Casimira was run-
longer could she satisfy her creditors by titles
of nobility.
57
Domenico
noticed that her payments were in no
as regular as her extravagances.
The Queen was
obliged to
abandon all hopes of ending her days in an atmosphere of theatrical sanctity.
Although she was welcome
in
few countries of Europe,
she needed to reestablish herself near a secure source of revenue. In
permitting her to return to France, Louis
XIV
offered her a choice
of the royal chateaux on the Loire on condition that she stay
from
Versailles.
58
away
Bidding farewell to Pope and Cardinals, to
embarked from Civitavecchia
court and opera, in June 1714 she
in
a papal galley decorated with gilded sculptures, red damask, and
gold
lace.
Villars
59
saw her
"She was
at Blois in 1715.
at a
very advanced
much rouge, having age, but nevertheless wore many for her person the attentions which queens who have been gallant patches and
56
Burney, A General History of Music, Vol. II, p. 706. She solemnly named her landlord, Giacomo Zuccari, "uno dei nobili Famigliari attuale della Nostra Corte" on July 1, 1709. (Korte, pp. 50, 86.) In this patent she styled herself: "Maria Casimira, per grazia di Dio, Regina di Polonia, Granduchessa di Lithuania, Russia, Prussia, Moscovia, Semogizia, Kiovia, Vol57
hinia, Podolia, Podlachia, Livonia, Severia, Smolensckia, Cirnicovia, etc." 58 Saint-Simon, Vol. XXIV, p. 320.
"Labat, Vol. VII, pp. 29-31. *
54
*
ROMAN TATRIMONY [galantes]
preserve
longer
than other
women." 60 Saint-Simon
paints an unflattering picture of her last days.* 1
1
On
January 30,
715, she died at Blois. Alessandro Sobieski had died in
shortly after her departure.
returned to
Rome
as the wife of the
in Saint-Simon, Vol. XXIV, p. Saint-Simon, Vol. XXIV, p. 320. 62 Waliszewski, pp. 282-283.
Quoted
324^
61
*
55
'
later
English Pretender to carry
on the tradition of realmless Queens/ 2 60
Rome
Her granddaughter Clementina
IV
CHURCH AND THEATER
•
THE PORTUGUESE EMBASSY ROMAN THEATERS AND DOMENICO's LAST OPERAS EMANCIPATION THE MYTHICAL LONDON VOYAGE DEPARTURE THE VATICAN
•
•
•
uring the
year of his employment with
last
Queen Maria
Domenico had
Casimira,
lished connections with the Vatican.
clined to suspect that he as
he had
went frequently
Rome;
to
performed there and he never friends and patrons. During his years
stantly
have moved
to
father.
From
in
Alessandro
music was con-
his
Roman Rome Domenico seems
lost
;
in-
is
these to his father,
previous posts.
his
all
owed
estab-
One
touch with his
under the shadow of
in relative obscurity,
Handel
the time of his competition with
his
at Cardinal
Ottoboni's, probably in 1709, until his departure ten years later,
not one single anecdote or direct
Only the dry opera librettos, and an to light.
on
his activities j
comment concerning him has come employment at the Vatican,
records of his occasional
document throw any
light at all
they throw none whatever on his private
life.
Paolo Lorenzani, the old maestro di caffella of the Basilica Giulia,
had died
member
the senior
October 1713. 1 In November,
in
was declared maestro di assistant.
2
many
of the chapel and for
On December
cap-pella,
Tommaso
Bai,
years a tenor there,
with Domenico Scarlatti as his
22 of the next year Bai died and Scarlatti
succeeded him. 3 Evidently Bai was incapacitated before his death,
Domenico had already prepared
for
the Vatican on Christmas Eve. 4
The
performed
a cantata to be libretto
at
composed by one of
the Arcadians, Francesco Maria Gasparri, provided roles for the allegorical
and
and not altogether Roman
figures of Charity, Faith,
Virginity, for the archangel Gabriel,
In previous years Alessandro Scarlatti 1
2
4
no
— —
— 30— 1658-1726.
Appendix II. ibid., p. 307. Appendix II. Cantata da Red tarsi nel Palazzo Afostolico
MDCCXIV
.
.
.
•
56
'
la
a choir of angels.
had written music
Baini, Vol. II, p. 280. From Colignani's diary. Arch. Cap. S. Petri in Vat. Diari 33 1 700-1 714,
Diari 3
and for
p.
298,
original
Notte del SS m0 Nat ale .
for
in
NeW An-
CHURCH AND THEATER these ceremonies,
5
and
was probably for such an occasion that
it
Corelli wrote his beautiful Christmas Concerto.
The
President de Brosses paints an amusing picture of one of
these Christmas
Eve ceremonies
After a concert and Pope offered a magnificent supper to the Cardinals. "We were making conversation, Lord Stafford and I, with Cardinal Acquaviva and Cardinal Tencin. This latter, seeing near him the cardinal-vicar Guadagni, a good monk, at the Vatican.
the performance of an oratorio, the
bigoted Carmelite, archetype of Sulpician, in the process of devouring a sturgeon in
humility and of drinking like a Templar,
all
turned in his direction, and contemplating his pale
face, said to him and hypocritical tone: 'La sua Eminenza sta poco bene, e mi par che non mangia [Your Eminence is not well, and seems not to eat].' After supper the cardinals, having resumed their church vestments, went to the Sistine Chapel. ... As for poor
in a tender
Guadagni, he had fasted to such a degree that he was taken with a fainting spell during matins, and had to be carried out.
people behind
me
and penances have brought him
Domenico
heard
I
saying: 'Alas, look at this holy man, his austerities to this state.'
"6
name does not appear on
Scarlatti's
the payrolls of
Tom-
the Cappella Giulia at any time during his assistantship to
maso
Bai.
He
7
1715, and on
was
ordered put on the payroll on February 28,
first
March
he was paid thirty scudi for the preceding
1
8
two months. Thereafter he received cessor
and
fifteen scudi
This was the same salary
rest of his tenure.
The
his successor.
monthly for the
as that of his prede-
musical complement of the Cappella
Giulia proper at the time of Scarlatti's appointment consisted, besides himself, of sixteen singers, four
a maestro d'organi.
The
other singers seven, the organist
and the chaplains the Vatican, the
four.
By
number
5
Dent, pp. 99-102,
6
De
on each part, an organist and
sopranos were paid five scudi a month, the six,
the maestro d'organi two,
the time of Domenico's departure
of sopranos had been
augmented
from
to six.
in.
Brosses, Vol. II, pp. 152-154.
7 Biblioteca Vaticana, Archivio di S. Pietro, Cappella Giulia 203, Del Registro dal 1713 a tt°. VAnn 1750, Filza 14. 8 Biblioteca Vaticana, Archivio di S. Pietro, Capella Giulia 174, Registro de Mandati della Caffella Giulia E 1713 a tutto 1744. From this source is drawn .
——
the remaining information in this paragraph. .
5y
.
Appendix
II.
CHURCH AND THEATER For the larger functions upon, especially during
at St. Peter's, other choirs
were drawn
annual vespers
Scarlatti's tenure, for the
of SS. Peter and Paul on June 30, for the Sacra di San Pietro on
November body of
18,
On
9
zations.
St.
and
and canoni-
for special ceremonies, beatifications,
the occasion of the feast and the translation of the
Leo on April
11, 1715, the
whole chapter of
St. Peter's,
with a large number of singers, went through the streets in procession with lighted torches, singing the is
hymn
Iste Confessor.
10
It
not unlikely that the plain and sober setting by Scarlatti of this
hymn,
still
in the archives of the
made
Cappella Giulia, was
for
this occasion.
The
traditions
Scarlatti's
and functions of the papal choir
day were outlined by an old friend of
fellow Arcadian, Andrea
Adami da
Bolsena, in a
in
Domenico
his father's little
and
book pub-
1. It was entitled Osservazioni fer ben regolare il Coro dei Cantori delta Caf fella Pontificia. and embellished
lished in 171
.
.
,
with a portrait of Cardinal Ottoboni, the protector of the Chapel,
and with etchings by none other than Filippo Juvarra. It may be difficult to imagine Domenico of the harpsichord sonatas conducting the music of the Cappella Giulia or officiating at the
organ behind the enormous altar of Bernini
employment
of St. Peter's. Yet during his
was composing music quite
in the basilica
at the Vatican,
Domeni-
though overwhelming than the Last Judgment of Michelangelo and considerably more churchly than the swooning saints of Bernini. There still exist in the archives of the Capella Giulia two Misereres composed by Domenico in the severe a caffella style of an earlier co
as stately as his surroundings,
less
The
day.
separate vocal parts of the Miserere in
G
minor are
in
known musical autograph (Fig. 21 ). More imposing is a Stabat Mater in ten a cappella parts, which was probably written when Domenico was still at the Vatican. It is a genuine masterpiece, perhaps the first really great work we Domenico's handwriting,
his
only
have seen from Domenico's hand. Large tion,
and of a lordly ease
in scope, rich in imagina-
in the conduct of the counterpoint,
does justice in every way to the eloquence of
The ''
absence of music by
Domenico
Biblioteca Vaticana, Archivio di
jatti 10
daW
Esattor
Pma P
c .
Colignani. Arch. Cap.
dal.
171$. a
gbre, 1729.
tt°.
S. Petri in Vat.,
•
in the Vatican library, other
Pietro, Cappella Giulia 203,
S.
58
Diari •
it
its text.
-
Appendix
34, p. 10.
II.
/>
fagam xi
.
CHURCH AND THEATER than the Iste Confessor and the two Misereres, explained by
its
is
probably not to be
disappearance from the archives (for unauthor-
ized borrowing of music brought the threat of excommunication),
but by the fact that the music written for the functions of the chapel frequently remained the personal property of the composer.
Perhaps Domenico took most of
where he
to Portugal,
of 1755, or took lost.
left
with
it
his Italian
him
to Spain,
where
church music
Lisbon earthquake
to perish in the
it
it
was subsequently
11
In the meantime, just as Maria Casimira was leaving Rome, Domenico had found employment as maestro di caffella to the Portuguese ambassador, the Marques de Fontes. To celebrate the birth of the Crown Prince of Portugal on June 6, 1714, Domenico composed an Afflauso Genetliaco del Signor Infante di Porto gallo. This piece was the first of a long series that Domenico was to set to music in honor of Portuguese royalty. Little did Domenico know that fifteen years later he would be furnishing music for that same prince's wedding in a specially constructed palace on the Spanish-Portuguese border.
The magniloquence flattery
court
was quite
and
in
of this obsequious piece of mythological
keeping with the way of
ambassadors.
its
No
life
less pretentious
of the Portuguese
than that of
Queen
Maria Casimira, but considerably more solvent, thanks to gold from Brazil, the establishment of the Marques de Fontes presented a show hardly to be outdone by any other embassy in
Rome. The splendor 1
that surrounded his mission to the
Pope
in
71 6 in connection with the elevation of Lisbon into a patriarchy
is
commemorated by
three enormous gilded coaches especially con-
structed for the occasion.
earthquake, they are
still
Having miraculously survived to be seen in the carriage
the great
museum
in
Lisbon. Grandiose sculptured figures surmount the shafts and serve as
allegorical
footmen, gesticulating with
all
the eloquence of
operatic characters or of fountain figures in the Piazza
would seem
that they
might have reduced
Navona.
It
to insignificance the
important personages they were intended to conduct. 11
The music Scarlatti left behind at the Vatican was not entirely forgotten. The Confessor is a copy made many years later, and the Miserere in E minor shows evidence of having been altered for a performance long after Scarlatti's deIste
parture. '
59
*
CHURCH AND THEATER Montesquieu observed that "tout ce qui est spectacle charme les 12 This love of spectacle might well be attributed to Italiens."
yeux
Romans
the Mediterranean countries in general, to the ticular,
tions.
and equally divided between churchly and
In
Rome
one almost suspects the periodic
clergy to the theater as
stemming from
lamation
street
may
and the
there
The
theater.
hostility of the
a desire to discourage the
Rome
competition of rival spectacles. In
between the
in par-
theatrical func-
is little
demarcation
theater's passionate dec-
be heard on every corner, the attitudes of
its
actors
indistinguishably duplicated by the fountain figures of the public
The
squares and by the activities of the populace around them.
imposing perspectives of tragical scenery and the intimate courtyards and balconies of comedy are to be found on every hand,
ready peopled with born secular
Nor
actors.
is
al-
the separation between
world and church appreciably greater than that between
The
proscenium and public.
same poses
saints strike the
as the
allegorical fountain figures ; music, candles, incense, costume
of the faithful
is
no
less
engrossing within a
and
and the behavior
color heighten the baroque of the architecture;
Roman
church than
without.
Under
relaxation of ecclesiastical restraint the
had taken on a new
eenth century. As in Naples or in Venice, a said of the theater in
theology
.
.
.
Rome: "Thence
last
theater
little later it
could be
the abbes go to study their
even the shoemaker or the
First in importance for this public
and
Roman
lease of life in the second decade of the eight-
tailor
were the
is
texts,
a connoisseur."
13
next the scenery,
the music, except of course for the tyrannical supremacy
accorded the singers.
A
text in Italian opera of the eighteenth
century could be old and could have already been used times, but the music
was generally expected
to be
many
new, largely
out of compliance with the special demands and capacities of the
performers. In Italy an old and successful libretto was cherished (witness the works of Metastasio in a later day), but old music
was seldom revived.
"There
is
another mark of character in which the Italians, with-
out the exception of a single state, or that of any rank, or class of 12
Montesquieu, Vol.
I,
p.
13
681. •
ibid., p.
60
'
680.
CHURCH AND THEATER people, universally partake ; tacles,
and indeed every
mean
I
their rage for theatrical spec-
species of public exhibition, or entertain-
ment. This passion they seem to inherit from the antient Romans,
and the bequest has world, the morning
lost is
nothing in their hands. In the fashionable
spent in a slovenly dishabille, that prevents
their
going out, or receiving frequent
work
takes
home. Reading, or
visits at
it
up a very small portion of this part of the day; so that passes away in a yawning sort of nonchalance. People are scarcely
wide awake,
about dinner-time. But, a few hours after, the
till
important business of the toilette puts them gently into motion;
them completely
and, at length, the opera calls
into existence.
But
must be understood, that the drama, or the music, do not form principal object of theatrical amusement. Every lady's box is the
it
a
scene of tea, cards, cavaliers, servants, lap-dogs, abbes, scandal,
and assignations attention to the action of the piece, to the or even to the actors, male, or female, is but a secondary j
If there be
some
actor, or actress,
scenes, affair.
whose merit, or good fortune,
happens to demand the universal homage of fashion, there are pauses of silence, and the favourite airs this cause, or the
confusion, in an Italian audience.
with
all its
may
presence of the sovereign,
mobbing and
The hour
disturbance,
is
be heard. But without
all is noise,
hubbub, and
of the theatre, however,
the happiest part of the
day, to every Italian, of whatever station ; and the least affluent will sacrifice some portion of his daily bread, rather than not enjoy it. Those who have not one sous [sic] that can possibly be spared (for life is found preferable to theatric diversions) are however not so y
forlorn as to be cut off
never rites
fail to
attend the
from
all opportunities of spectacle.
pompous ceremonies
and mummeries of the
and
saints,
to swell the
sequence of every farthing-candle procession.
Such
of the church, the
shabby con-
,m .
.
.
was with an old and established drama that Domenico made appearance before the spoiled and capricious Roman operagoers. Thitherto he had composed operas only for private performances. For his public debut he was given a text that had 15 already been set by Gasparini in Venice in 1705, the Ambleto of It
his first
who was living when Domenico's
Apostolo Zeno and Pietro Pariati. But Gasparini, in
Rome 14
at
this
Beckford, Vol.
I,
time, was probably present pp. 251-253. Written in •
6l
'
1781.
15
Wicl, p.
9.
CHURCH AND THEATER version was performed in the Capranica theater during the carnival
season of 1715. theater a
Two
years earlier Juvarra
new proscenium. 16 Of
trace remains in the building
eighteenth century.
The
text
film
it
dramas are presented
and extravagant
that are quite as improbable
for this
standing today. At present
still
Cinema Capranica, where
serves as the
had designed
function as an opera house no
its
as the operas of the
17
Ambleto had
of Scarlatti's
Shakespeare's Hamlet.
The
librettist's
little
common
in
with
preface refers to the ancient
sources of the story, but betrays no acquaintance whatever with
Th€ drama
avoids any form of King of Denmark, has been murdered by a usurper who has forced Hamlet's mother to marry him. Hamlet, not knowing how to escape the death being prepared for him, pretends a madness the reality of which his the English poet.
itself strictly
psychological ambiguity. Hamlet's father,
stepfather proceeds to test in three principal ways. successful test
who
is
a confrontation of
Hamlet by
his
The
un-
first
former betrothed,
has been captured and brought to court as the mistress of the
The second confrontation is with his mother Queen in the concealed presence of a supposed agent of the tyrant who is really his enemy. Not knowing this, Hamlet searches him out and kills him, but then at last speaks freely with his General of Denmark.
the
mother
in a conversation utterly
devoid of any of the overtones
with which Shakespeare has endowed the parallel scene. test of
Hamlet's madness
is
even more commonplace.
The
final
It consists
simply of an attempt on the part of the tyrant to make Hamlet disclose himself a banquet.
under the influence of wine, during the gaiety of
However
it
the tyrant himself
is
a beverage especially prepared for
orders he
The
is
who
is
overcome by
him by Hamlet. On Hamlet's
taken off to be executed and the opera ends happily.
Ambleto were Domenico Tempesti (Ambleto), Domenico Genovesi (Veremonda), Giovanni Paita (Gedone), Insingers in
nocenzo Baldini (Gerilda), Antonio Natilii (Ildegarde), Giovanni
Antonio Archi, known Vitali (Siffrido), all 16 17
as
Cortoncina (Valdentaro), and Francesco
male or
castrati, of course.
Filiffo Juvarra, Volume Primo, pp. 54, 143. At the time these lines were written, the Capranica was presenting a drama
entitled
"La Famiglia
Sullivan." •
62
'
CHURCH AND THEATER Of
Scarlatti's
music for Ambleto only one
an adagio with
aria,
Despite an expressive chromatic passage in the
strings, survives.
middle, this aria scarcely arouses regret for the rest of the opera.
Domenico
Scarlatti
music of the
lost
never again composed an
would appear that his first and only attempt for the public theater was none too successful. Perhaps Domenico would have had better luck with ha Dirindina, the Intermezzo that was to have been performed with Ambleto, but which seems to have been withdrawn at the last moment, and replaced by Intermedj Pastorali. La Dirindina was a satire by Girolamo Gigli on the nature and habits of opera singers, entire opera for public performance. It
Moda.
a delicious pendant to Benedetto Marcello's Teatro alia
Don
Its three characters are
Carissimo, an old singing teacher ; his
The
pupil the singer Dirindina j and Liscione, a castrate
first
scene
opens at the harpsichord with the coughing, vocalizing, and complaints of catarrh that
form the timeless heritage of
Carissimo's penchant for Dirindina
is
sanely jealous even of the castrato Liscione, entirely to disrupt the singing lesson
The
operatic contract in Milan. satirical allusions to
of
memory,
singers.
so hopeless that he
who
is
by offering to Dirindina an
poet omits few of the customary
the mothers of virtuose, to protectors, to lapses
to singing out of tune, to inability to act,
allowed to speak of "amor
acteristics of his
ing review.
The
forgiveness is
to the
castrato
Platone," and the char-
probably caused the piece to be taken
Rome, and
replaced at the
was the development
simo's jealous credulity
scione
di
and
stand and profession are subjected to a fairly search-
What
boards in clerical interludes,"
in-
arrives in time
dubious respectability of opera singers in general. Liscione
Don is
when he
is
last
off the
minute by "pastoral
in the second scene.
Don
Caris-
strained even to the point of pity and
misinterprets a rehearsal during which Li-
putting Dirindina through her rather faltering paces in
preparation for Milan. Poor
Don
Carissimo
is
led to believe on
hearing the words of despairing Dido rehearsed that Dirindina
is
with child by Liscione and
is
in
high tragedy
about to take her
life with an operatic sword. The Intermezzo ends with Dirindina and Liscione nearly dying of suppressed laughter, and the excel-
lent
Don
Carissimo endeavoring to unite the two
marriage! •
63
•
in a
legitimizing
CHURCH AND THEATER Whether Dirindina was actually prohibited or only withdrawn out of discretion, we do not know, but it was performed at Lucca in the
same
year,
and a note
in the printed libretto
public that "the excellent music of this farce Scarlatti,
who
will gladly place
exists.
by
informed the
Sig.
Domenico 18 Un-
at the disposal of all."
it
fortunately Domenico's music has been
by Padre Martini
is
lost.
Only
a later setting
19
Throughout the eighteenth century, the unfortunate castrati of the operatic stage were the butt of satire or the unwilling participants in awkward situations such as are related in the memoirs of Casanova. Montesquieu remarks: "At Rome, women do not appear on the stage, but castrati dressed as women. That makes a very bad
more
effect
in the
on morals: for nothing,
Romans
philosophical love.
know, inspires There were in Rome
as far as I .
.
.
my time, at the Capranica theater, two little castrati, Mariotti and Chiostra, dressed as women, who were the most beautiful creatures I have ever seen in my life, and who would have inspired the tastes of Gomorrah in people whose taste is least depraved in this respect. A young Englishman, believing that one of them was a woman, fell madly in love, and was kept in that passion for more 20 than a month." in
In collaboration with Nicolo Porpora, Domenico Scarlatti com-
posed what
as far as
for Berenice, it
we know was
his last
Regina d'Egitto, on
was produced
at the
music for the theater,
a libretto
Capranica in 171 8.
by Antonio Salvij
The
architect of the
scenery was Antonio Canavarij the designer of the "machines and transfigurations"
was the Cavalier Lorenzo Marianij
Among
painter Giovanni Battista Bernabo.
menico Gizii and Annibale Pio Fabri, who
and the
the singers were later
appeared
at
Dothe
21 Spanish court during Domenico's residence there.
On at
January 28, 171 7, a curious legal document was drawn up
Naples, in which Alessandro Scarlatti accorded to Domenico full
emancipation from paternal rights and Neapolitan citizenship. 18 19 p.
22
Luciani, Postilla Scarlattiana, p. 201. Gaspari, Catalogo della Biblioteca del Liceo Musicale di Bologna, Vol. Ill,
315. 20
21 Montesquieu, Vol. I, p. 679. See Carmena y Millan and Cotarelo. Arch. Not. Nap. Prot. N.r Gio. Tufarelli. Ann. 171 7, fols. 45-46. ProtaGiurleo, pp. 34-36, quotes it in full.
22
•
64
•
CHURCH AND THEATER Domenico's brother Raimondo was named ever
may have been
as
proxy
Notwithstanding legal
certain symbolism.
in
Rome. What-
the purpose of this document,
it
presents a
Domenico still needed many years complete independence from his father. the age of thirty-two
On
even
attestations,
at
to achieve
October 18, 171 7, Alessandro obtained leave to return from in 171 8, just as Domenico was
Naples to Rome. 23 At carnival time
making his last appearance in the theater,- Alessandro produced his Telemaco at the Capranica, on a libretto by none other than 24 Capeci. Four more productions for the Capranica, including his 25 last opera Griselda y which was performed in 1721, brought the number of stage pieces composed by Alessandro Scarlatti to the 26 impressive total of one hundred and fourteen. Domenico may well have abandoned any ambition to emulate his father in the realm of the theater.
In August
719 Domenico quit
1
An
his post at the Vatican.
entry
of September 3, 1719, in the manuscript diary of Francesco Coli-
gnani states that "Sig. Scarlatti having
who was at From this time,
tavio Pitoni,
Master." 27 actual date
in 1828, is
now
No
England
in
Scarlatti
itself.
London on September
a concert in
Domenico. Probably
on September
6,
Queen Marianna
24
it
Scar-
[sic]
1720 was
1,
was Francesco. 29 Moreover,
1720, Domenico's Serenade for the birthday of of Portugal was being performed in Lisbon, al-
most certainly under Domenico's
336,
his notes
evidence that he went to that country has yet
("brother to the famous Allessandro
who gave
certainly not
23
are impossible
the only authority for assuming that Scarlatti ever visited
been found
latti")
Ot-
Sig.
and on which he and subsequent writers have improvised,
Great Britain.
The
movements
remark, on which Baini published
to trace. Colignani's 28
England,
until after his arrival in Portugal (the
uncertain), Domenico's
is
left for
Giovanni in Laterano, was made
S.
direction.
Dent, p. 156, from Naples, R. Archivio di Stato, Mandati dei Viccre, Vol. fol.
44.
Lorenz, Vol.
"Appendix
I,
p.
25
36.
Dent,
p.
164.
26
Lorenz, Vol.
I,
p.
Baini, Vol. II, p. 280, footnote 623. 29 Dent, pp. 34-35. Utterly unjustified by any evidence is the fanciful
W. H.
Grattan
Flood's
1741." See Appendix
16.
28
II.
I
A.
article,
The
"Domenico
Scarlatti's
Scarlatti concerned
•
65
Visit
to
title
Dublin,
was probably Francesco.
of
1740-
CHURCH AND THEATER Unlikely, but not entirely controverted by the Lisbon dates,
Domenico was in London the Haymarket Theatre on
is
the hypothesis that
for the performance
of his Narciso at
May
30, 1720. This
performance was conducted by Thomas Roseingrave, Domenico's devoted friend and protagonist, who had composed for
and two d un ombra e arias
y
duets. Narciso
two
it
was none other than a revival of
Amor
Domenico had comFor the London revival modifications of Capeci's original libretto had been supplied by Paolo Rolli. There is no record of any participation by Domenico y
gelosia d'urfaura, the last opera
posed for the Queen of Poland
in this
in 1714.
performance, either in conducting or in composing new
music.
Roseingrave's production of Narciso was the
last definitely
appearance on the stage of any work by Domenico his edition of the overture
and the
arias
known
Scarlatti,
and
was the only vocal music
The report that arias London opera productions with Giuseppe Scarlatti, who was their real
of Domenico's ever printed in his lifetime.
by Domenico were inserted rests
on a confusion
in
later
composer. 30
By
1
72
1,
Domenico
Scarlatti
seventy-two years of his
life.
had lived exactly one half of the
In his music thus far there was
little
would serve to raise him above the more competent of his contemporaries. His enduring contribution was made toward the end of that half of his life which was spent away from Italy, parted from his loving but overwhelming father. that
30
Appendix VII.
66
V
LISBON PATRIARCHY
•
ROYAL CHAPEL MARIA BARBARA DON ANTONIO SEIXAS ALESSANDRO's DEATH DOMENICO's MARRIAGE ROYAL WEDDINGS LISBON
•
JOAO V
•
•
•
•
•
n first venturing beyond the cules,
Domenico
Scarlatti
Pillars of
Her-
found himself
redis-
covering certain eastern strains of his Sicilian ancestry
mained
and the Saracen
traces that
had
re-
in the surroundings of his early child-
hood. In Portugal the singing was even more extravagant and raucous, and tinged with a strange melancholy. It
resembled more closely the long outmoded plain chants of
his
had been
ac-
which
ancestors,
customed
as
chapelmaster of
to reclothe in the suave
day. Also the
more
violent
St.
Peter's he
baroque investitures of
rhythms of
this Iberian
his
music were
with a savage continuity whose full impact he was later to
own felt
know
in Spain.
Many liant
aspects of Lisbon
light,
were familiar enough
to
him: the
bril-
the luminous materials of the houses in stone and
and the enormous distance separating the and magnificent nobles from the ragged populace or the suntanned and filthy beggars asleep at noon on palace steps. Some of the precipitous descents and ascents and the amphitheater-like shape of Lisbon he had known in Naples, but not quite the openness of the Atlantic light, and the large flat squares giving onto a broad river estuary instead of a bay. The ships came not merely from Mediterranean ports, but also from America and the far Orient,
plaster, the noisy streets,
richly clad
often bringing exotic Indians in their native costumes, half-naked 1
and gold from Brazil Colonial treasure was helping
Africans,
in limitless profusion.
to maintain
one of the most lavish
"King of Portugal and of the Algarves, in Africa hither and beyond the seas, Lord of Guinea, of navi2 gation, conquest and commerce of Ethiopia, Persia and the Indies." courts in Europe, that of Joao V,
1
2
Almeida, Vol. IV, p. 279. This title is taken from one of the
(May
15,
certificates
1738, Scarlatti family papers). •
67
•
of
Domenico'i knighthood
LISBON PATRIARCHY Flamboyant, but cultivated his ancestors,
V
Joao
in his taste,
and learned
like
oriental sultan with the ostentatious devoutness of a ate.
8
Not without
remarked that
many
of
combined the luxurious sensuality of an
Roman
prel-
malice, his contemporary Frederick the Great
fame was "his strange passion
his chief claim to
He
churchly ceremonies.
for
had obtained the pope's permission
establish a patriarchy, another authorizing
him
to say the
to
Mass,
and became practically a consecrated priest. Priestly functions were his amusements, convents his buildings, monks his armies, and nuns 4 his mistresses." Few traces of Joao's court have survived the earthquake of 1755, but some fragments of the unparalleled prodigality
may
of his establishments
still
be seen in the royal coaches, in the
furnishings of the chapel of St. John in the church of Sao in Lisbon,
and above
all in
Roque
the gigantic monastery, church, and
palace overlooking the Atlantic at Mafra.
(When
Baretti visited
Mafra in 1760, he found his Majesty's bell-ringer playing Handel and the "most difficult lessons of Scarlatti" on a kind of xylophone of his
own
Joao
invention.)
5
V had persuaded the Pope to
elevate Lisbon to a patriarchy,
in return heavily subsidizing a crusade against the
Turks
in 1716.
6
Thenceforth the church functions were more magnificent than ever,
and
special attention
was paid
to the music.
The
king had gone to
prodigious expense in obtaining copies of the choirbooks used at the Vatican, and special schools had been established for plain chant.
7
The
so-called a cappella style of composition
8 here as in the Papal chapels.
A
number of the
Vatican had been lured to Portugal,
garded
as
from the
and doubtless the King
re-
one of his principal triumphs the acquisition of the
chapelmaster of Scarlatti
9
was cultivated
singers
St.
Peter's in the person of
had under
Domenico
Scarlatti.
his direction thirty or forty singers,
•Almeida, Vol. IV, pp. 278-289. CEuvres de Frederic le Grand, Vol. II, p. 13. 6 Baretti, A Journey from London to Genoa, Vol.
and
4
I,
pp. 254-255. September 13,
1760. 6 7
8
Almeida, Vol. IV, p. 268; Lambertini, p. 2421. Lambertini, p. 2421. ibid.
9
Celani, / Cantori della Caf fella Pontificia nei secoli XVI-XVIII, P- 69. In 71 7 three singers left the papal chapel to enter the service of the King of Portugal, and on June 13, 1719, another. 1
•
68
•
LISBON TATRIARCHY nearly as
many
instrumentalists,
church functions here as in
most of them
Rome, Domenico continued
music in pseudo-contrapuntal
10
For the
to
compose
Italians.
style, a cappella or
with organ
ac-
companiment, with alternating solo and choral passages, often with double choirs, music such as Alessandro Scarlatti had composed
in
quantity. Little of this music remains in Portugal other than an
eight-part
Te Deum and
Te
a four-part
Gloriosus, copied out for
the Patriarchal of Lisboa Occidental after the earthquake, and a
few other compositions that are extant Portuguese
"On
in
of
libraries
other
cities.
the last day of the year 1721," reports the Gazeta de Lisboa,
"there was sung in the Church of Saint Roch in this city in celebra-
God
our Lord
inhabitants, the
hymn Te
tion of thanks for all the benefits accorded
during the year to
this
realm and
its
by
Deum
Laudamusy elegantly composed
among
various choirs of musicians by the famous
latti,
to
music and distributed
Dionisio Carneiro de Sousa, Archdeacon of the
Church, assisted by
The an
Domingos
Scar-
the function being administered by the illustrious D. Joseph
entire
infinite
all
Holy
the ministers and masters of ceremonies.
Church was magnificently decorated and
number
Patriarchal
filled
with
of lights, and the musicians arranged in
angular tribunes especially constructed and adorned with
tri-
rich
hatchments, all at the order and expense of the Senhor Patriarch, whose generosity most demonstrates itself in the functions of the Divine Service arranging everything with the same magnificence ;
and solemnity
as has
been practiced
in
preceding years. All the
Nobility of the Court was present and the concourse of the people
was innumerable." 11
Whether or not identical with the surviving one, the music of Te Deum doubtless exhibited a similarly excellent workman-
this
ship, but scarcely intimated the fantasy Scarlatti's later ficial
and bizarre inventions of
keyboard sonatas. Like the elaborate and super-
frescoes of the late baroque, music of this nature, magnificent-
ly executed, lent splendor to the religious ceremonies
scarcely noticed
by or for
itself.
10 Walther, Musicalisches Lexicon, p. 489, gives a Portuguese royal chapel in 1728. See Appendix II. 11 Gazeta de Lisboa, January 1, 1722.
•
and was
Likewise the snarling organs of
69
•
list
of musicians
in
the
"
LISBON TATRIARCHY Spain and Portugal, with ranks of pipes pointing out horizontally
formed
like trumpets,
part, as they still do, of a sensuous
whole
with the reedy chanting of boys and priests, the rustle of fans, the jangling of sanctus bells, and the smell of incense and garlic.
But the musicians of the Royal Chapel were not occupied exAs in other countries, they supplied
clusively with church music.
music for the
and functions of the
festivities
court,
more
especially
the royal birthdays and the name-days of saints.
With tions
the importation of musicians from Italy the musical func-
and serenades held
Royal Palace became more frequent.
at the
On
September 24, 1719, there was a serenade in the apartment of the King, "sung by the new and excellent musicians which His
Majesty
.
had brought from Rome, in the presence of Their 12 There is a very strong probability was among them. 13 A month later, for the King's
.-.
Majesties and Highnesses." that Scarlatti
birthday on October 22, there occurred a performance of the
serenade "Triunfos de Ulysses, Italian text.
14
The composer
is
&
glorias de Portugal" with an
not named.
The Gazeta de
Lisboa
reports other musical functions during the next year, without ever
mentioning
Nor in the
Scarlatti.
he mentioned
is
Italian
composer of "an excellent Serenade
as the
language intitled 'The Contest of the Seasons'
which was performed
in the
Royal Palace on September
6,
1720,
Queen Marianna. 15 This piece however Serenata of Domenico Scarlatti now in the
to celebrate the birthday of is
none other than the
Biblioteca I
am
Marciana
in Venice.
16
Barring evidence to the contrary,
Domenico arrived in Lisbon in Sepwithout going to England. At the very latest, if
inclined to believe that
tember,
1
71 9,
he ever went
to
England, he was certainly
in
Portugal by August
of 1720, in other words, in time for rehearsals of the Serenata for
Queen Marianna's birthday. The Contesa delle Stagioni part of the music are extant)
any of the surviving operas
(of which only the libretto and a
Poland. All trace of dryness has disappeared. 12 ibid. , 13
14
It
shows a constant
September 28, 17 19. Unless he really went to England. See Chapter IV and Appendix II. 15 Gazeta de Lisboa., October 26, 1 7 1 9. ibid., September 12, 1720.
"Appendix VI B
first
much more mature work than written in Rome for the Queen of is
5. •
70
'
LISBON TATRIARCHY and vocal
sense of instrumental
effectiveness
and a mastery of
broad dramatic contrasts. Especially handsome are the trumpet fanfares alternating with the strings, the antiphonal choruses, the flute solos to
one of the
arias,
and the vocal and instrumental
Most
acterization of the seasons.
accompanied only by the continuo, but
Queen,
at the central point of
a gloreole of
accompanying
char-
of the recitatives are sober and at the reference
the piece, the voice
is
to the
illuminated by
strings, a secular version of a device
we know so well in connection with the words of Christ in the Matthew Passion of Bach. At the end of the year, the King's name-day, the day of St. John
St.
the Evangelist, was celebrated in the Palace with "an Italian Sere-
nade entitled, Cantata Pastorale; the discreet and harmonious work of the composer Scarlatti, performed in the apartment of the Queen. .
.
." 17
Henceforth the Gazeta de Lisboa reports serenades, mostly
on the birth or name-days of the King and Queen, but seldom with mention of composer or of
title.
The Queen's
and for subsequent years, was celebrated
birthday in 1722,
in inimitable bluestock-
ing style by a meeting of the Academia Real da Historia Portuguesa. "In the evening there
Palace,
the
"Abbade
was an excellent Serenade
music composed by the Aboade
Scarlatti"
a Serenade for
is
27,
in
The earthquake
the presence of their
19
After 1722, the reports about Scarlatti's
Mediterranean
the
The
1722, the name-day of the King,
by the musicians
Majesties and Highnesses."
are few.
at 18
reported also to have been the composer of
December
"felicitously executed
Scarlatti."
activities in
Portugal
of 1755, combined with the habits of
archivists, has eliminated
most of the records of
the court of Joao V, and of his musicians as well.
In addition to his duties as chapelmaster, Domenico had charge of the musical instruction of
Don
Antonio, the younger brother of
the King, and of the King's daughter, Maria Barbara, later of Spain.
20
The
musical ancestry, and later reports 17
Queen
Infanta Maria Barbara came of a distinguished all
agree on the exceptional
Gazeta de Lisboa, January 2, 1721. 19 ibid., December 31, 1722. September 10, 1722. Vieira, Vol. II, p. 286; Lambertini, p. 2421; Scarlatti, dedication of the
18 ibid., 20
Essercizi. *
71
'
LISBON TATRIARCHY quality of her
own accomplishments. Her great-grandfather was IV of Portugal, who accumu-
the famous musical polemicist, Joao
lated a fabulous musical library, of which only the catalogue sur21 Her maternal grandfather Leovived the earthquake of 1755. pold I of Austria had composed some really distinguished music. 22
All sources
—except
portraits
official
—agree
that
Maria Barbara
was no beauty, but she had an equable temper, and a capacity arouse affection in all those
who knew
If she really did justice to the harpsichord sonatas, she
is
was not confined
to
must have
Her
musical
mere harpsichord playing,
for she
been, for her time, an extraordinary player indeed. instruction
to
her well. 23
24 reputed also to have been a competent composer. With more
cases, Padre Martini, in volume of his Storia delta Musica in 1757, praises her as having learned from the "Cavaliere D. Domenico Scarlatti the most intimate knowledge of music and its profoundest artifices." In later life music seems to have been
sincerity
perhaps than was usual in such
dedicating to Maria Barbara the
first
the central focus of her existence, the one revivifying force in the
deadly round of ceremonies and spectacles. Scarlatti apparently
remained always
in a personal contact
exempted from the
Her
official
gratitude for this lifelong association found expression
years later in her will,
sand doubloons to "dn. has followed Scarlatti's
me
when Domingo
she bequeathed a ring Escarlati,
my
other royal pupil was 26
He
Don
who
25
Antonio, the younger
was only ten years younger than
himself, and passionately fond of music.
Giustini da Pistoia dedicated in 1732 the
many
and two thou-
music-master,
with great diligence and loyalty."
brother of the King. latti
with her which was often
formalities of her other relationships.
first
To him
Scar-
Lodovico
sonatas ever pub-
21
Lambertini, pp. 2418-2419. Musikalische Werke der Kaiser Ferdinand III, Leo fold I, und Josef A I [Edited by Guido Adler], Vienna [1892]. 23 For accounts of Maria Barbara, see Ballesteros, Coxe, Danvila, Florez, and Keene. 24 Lambertini, p. 2421, without locating the work or indicating- a source for his reference, states that she composed a Salve with orchestra for the Salesas 22
.
Madrid. Testament of Maria Barbara of Braganza, Palace, VII E 4 305. 26 See the dedication of Domenico's Essercizi.
.
.
in
25
•
72
'
Madrid,
Library
of
Royal
LISBON TATRIARCHY 27
lished for pianoforte.
Mater
of the Stabat
A setting by Don
is
the Patriarchal chapel in Lisbon.
A
Don
protege of
Portuguese musical
28
Antonio, and Domenico's most eminent
was Carlos
associate,
He
Patriarchal chapel.
Antonio of several stanzas
reported to have existed in the archives of
was born
in
Seixas, organist of the
Coimbra on June
II, 1704. Be-
fore his fourteenth birthday he succeeded his father as organist in
the cathedral there.
He
arrived in Lisbon, hardly sixteen years old,
1720, at about the same time as Scarlatti, with a talent so
in
conspicuous that he was almost immediately appointed organist of the Basilica.
A
29
[Scarlatti], lessons,
who was
guided
remarks
later eighteenth-century writer
Most Serene Senhor Infante D. Antonio asked as
in
Lisbon
that,
"the
the great Escarlate
at the time, to give Seixas
some
he was by the erroneous idea that whatever the
Portuguese do they cannot equal foreigners, and sent him to Scarlatti.
Hardly did
Scarlatti see Seixas put his
hands to the keyboard
but he recognized the giant by the finger [so to speak], and said are the one who could give me lessons.' Upon enDon Antonio, Scarlatti told him, 'Your Highness commanded me to examine him. But I must tell you that he is one of
him,
to
c
You
countering
30 the best musicians I have ever heard.' "
The keyboard lel
sonatas of Seixas present a most interesting paral-
with those of Scarlatti. 31 For the most part the best of them
date from after Scarlatti's departure from Portugal, but Seixas died in 1742,
long before Scarlatti attained his full development.
Some
form in the pieces of Seixas seem to antedate those of Scarlatti. One might be tempted to think that their influence was mutual. But by comparison with Scarlatti Seixas remains a provincial composer. His music is full of lyricism, brilliant ideas, and many of the same Iberian characteristics that appear in Scarlatti, but it never achieves Scarlatti's unified consistency. Only
developments
in
27 edited in facsimile Giustini di Pistoja, L., Twelve Piano-Forte Sonatas by Rosamond E. M. Harding, Cambridge, 1933. The dedication is signed by D. Giovanni de Seixas. It mentions D. Antonio's skill as a player. .
28
Mazza,
p.
.
.
18.
29
This biographical information concerning Seixas is drawn from Kastner, Carlos de Seixas. 80 Mazza, p. 32. My translation substitutes proper names for the ambiguous personal pronouns of the original. Italics are mine. 31 See M. S. Kastner, Cravistas Portugt/ezes, I and II (Main/: Srhott, [1935, i95o]). *
73
*
LISBON TATRIARCHY rarely does Seixas achieve the perfection of
form and the balance
of tonal scheme which seldom fail in the sonatas of Scarlatti.
In 1724 Scarlatti returned to Italy. Quantz, the
remembered having met him
in
flute player,
Rome, where he was then
study-
ing with Gasparini, Domenico's old friend and adviser. 32 There
was doubtless a most cordial reunion between the master and
his
former apprentice. At the same time Domenico must have encountered the singer who was later to enjoy his friendship for so
many
known
as
an opera of Gasparini 's
at
years at the Spanish court. Carlo Broschi, better
was performing
Farinelli,
the Portuguese
Embassy
just then in
in
He
Rome. 33
was
still
at the
very be-
ginning of the career that was to bring him far greater fame and
power than Domenico ever achieved or presumably cared to possess. Here also or in Naples Scarlatti may have met the poet Metasta3 sio, * the idol of the eighteenth-century operatic theater and later the author of
many
librettos for Farinelli's lavish productions at
the court of Spain.
Most important This
composer had written
prolific
nade
of all was Domenico's visit to his aging father.
did not long precede Alessandro Scarlatti's death. This
visit
He
Naples. 35
opera in 1721, his
his last
1723, and had settled
in
down
had lived long enough
in
last sere-
relative retirement
to be looked
in
on with the
greatest respect as the patriarch of Neapolitan music, but also long
enough
to
have become somewhat old-fashioned.
ing the harpsichord, and Quantz, 82
He
who heard him
was
still
play-
in the winter
in his autobiography in Marpurg, Historisch-kritische Beitrage, 223-226, says that he was first in Rome from June II, 1724, to January 13, 1725. He remarks: "Mimo Scarlatti, the son of the old Neapolitan, Alessandro Scarlatti, an elegant keyboard player in the style of that time, who was in Portuguese service, but who later entered that of Spain, where he still
Vol.
is,
Quantz, I,
pp.
was then in Rome." Mendel & Reissmann, Erganzungsband, p. 522. 34 For accounts of Metastasio's presence in Naples see Croce,
83
Anno XV,
p.
Domenico may Naples
in
May
/
Teatri di Nafoli,
Metastasio, Vol. 1, pp. 193-194. Burney, Memoirs of have met Metastasio in Rome before Metastasio's departure for 1719. Metastasio was for a time betrothed to Gasparini's daughter,
341
;
also
.
.
.
February 6, 1719. (Celani, // frimo amore di Pietro Metastasio, p. 246.) The earliest mention I can find of an almost certainly apocryphal performance in Rome in 1724 of Metastasio's Didone Abbandonata with music by "Scarlatti" appears in Clement & Larousse, Dictionnaire Lyrique, p. 214. Riemann, OfernHandbuch, attributes it to Alessandro; and Brunelli, Tutte le of ere di Pietro Metastasio, Vol. I, p. 1384, to Domenico. after
35
Dent, pp. 191-192. •
74
*
:
LISBON TATRIARCHY of 1725, mentions his "learned style of playing, although he did
much
not have as
performance
as did his son."
36
Johann Adolf Hasse was studying with Alessandro in Naples at the same time. Hasse was to become the glory of his age, the only opera facility in
composer whose fame almost rivaled that achieved by Metastasio
Many years later in Vienna, when talking with Dr. recalled hearing the Scarlattis play, and spoke of Hasse Burney, "wonderful hand, as well as fecundity of invention." 37 Domenico's Alessandro Scarlatti died on October 24, 1725. At the foot of
as librettist.
the altar of Saint Cecilia in the church of Montesanto slab
on which
is
is
a marble
the following epitaph, written perhaps by Cardinal
Ottoboni
"Here
lies
the Cavalier Alessandro Scarlatti, a
and
for moderation, beneficence
man
distinguished
piety, the greatest of all restorers
of music, who, having softened the solid measures of the ancients
with a
new and wonderful
posterity of
he died
hope of
suavity, deprived antiquity of glory
Dear above
imitation.
in the sixty-sixth
all to
and
nobles and kings,
year of his age on October 24, 1725, to
Death knows no mode of appeasement." 38 Alessandro's death closed for Domenico an adolescence that had protracted itself for exactly twenty years since he had left Naples in 1705. Outwardly he was perfectly grown, as might naturally be expected, for he was now forty years old. Moreover there had Italy's
utmost
grief.
been nothing tentative even
in his earliest music. It
was balanced
and complete, but for the most part it was utterly lacking in personality other than an anonymous reflection of the musical styles of the time, and
more
particularly of that of his father.
was there a hint of that inner
we
force that to
call genius,
every production.
It
is
intensity, fecundity,
which lends
my
the
The first
rarely
and driving
own independent
life
conviction that nearly every artist
undergoes a second adolescence, first.
its
Only
twenty years after the
fifteen or
flowering of talent, accomplishment, or precocity between
and second adolescence seldom
indicates the true span
•Marpurg,
Historisch-kritische Beitrdge, Vol. I, pp. 228-229. Burney, The Present State of Music in Germany, Vol. I, p. 347. "Dent, p. 192. A drawing of the coat of arms on Alessandro Scarlatti's tombstone is to be found in Madrid, Archivo Historico Nacional, Carlos III, No. 1799, fol. 66r. This coat of arms is now concealed by the altar step which has been ,T
laid over the
upper part of the tombstone. See *
75
*
p.
326.
LISBON TATRIARCHY and capacity of the
artist.
the nourishment and digestion of
It is
experience during this time that determines the ability of an
life
remain fully alive and growing, and later to impose
artist to
own
vitality in greater or less
This becomes fully clear only
his
measure on every work he produces. at the
end of the second adolescence.
In the years immediately following Alessandro's death Domenico Scarlatti
had completed
promising, adolescence.
his first satisfactory, but not
He
was
extremely
to wait another ten years before
reaching his early maturity, in other words until the extraordinarily late age of
The tion in
by
fifty.
mysteries of Domenico's early
life
and
his obvious
domina-
and musical, tempt interpretation
his father, both personal
terms of modern psychology.
Suffice
however
it
an outward indication of a complete change
to say that
Domenico's
in
On May
occurred three years after his father's death.
15,
life
1728,
before the altar of the Blessed Virgin of the Assumption in the
church of San Pancrazio on the outskirts of Rome, he was married to
Maria Catalina
and Margarita
Gentili, the daughter of Francesco
Romans. 39 Domenico
Rossetti, both
Maria Gentili Scarlatti
was
nearly forty-three years old, and his bride was sixteen. (She was
born on November 13, 1712.)
Of
the circumstances of this marriage
more than
It is
tom the match was an vision, it
and
we know almost
cus-
one, arranged under family super-
official
no sense the result of a love
in
was arranged
nothing.
Mediterranean
likely that in accordance with
affair.
in advance, the bride appears to
Whether
have had
or not
as little
say in the matter as a royal princess. Like royal marriages, the
whole bride
affair
may have been
would have been but
last in
Rome
in
to
me
sold in 39
in
when Domenico was
1725. Reports agree that she was very beautiful.
She had chestnut hair and posed her portrait by a
by correspondence, for the
settled
thirteen years old
now unknown
in a
dark red decollete gown for
painter.
This picture was described
by those of her descendants who had seen
March
it
before
it
was
19 12, along with that of Domenico by another un-
For the marriage record,
see
Appendix
II.
Italian sources, I have retained the Spanish
although she was probably originally
known
76
as
Not having found her mentioned form of Maria Catalina's name, Maria Caterina.
LISBON TATR1ARCHY 40
(Both portraits have disappeared, by way of a known artist. Madrid dealer to whom they were sold by the Scarlatti family, and reputedly thence to Lisbon and afterwards to London. Today they probably repose unrecognized in the garret of an English
country house.)
The
Gentili family lived in the Palazzo Costacuti on the Piazza
delle Tartarughe,
and the marriage was registered
in the parish
of Santa Maria in Publicolis. Nearly a century later Domenico's
grandson was able to obtain satisfactory reports of their
Of Domenico's
gentility.
41
we know
previous acquaintance with this family
nothing. After his marriage, at any rate, he became closely associated with
it.
Gaspar Gentili,
his brother-in-law,
Rossetti Gentili, his mother-in-law, both
went
42
and Margarita
to Spain
and
sur-
vived him there. Margarita Gentili took care of some of Domeni-
and remained in close contact with the family after 43 Catalina's death and Domenico's second marriage. A puzzling note and possible explanation of Domenico's late marriage is injected by the Gazeta de Lisboa which in 1722 twice mentions him as the "Abbade Scarlatti." 44 Had Domenico's occupation with church music induced him to take minor orders, or co's children
was
this a
mere
journalistic inaccuracy induced
tinuing to wear black as he
by Domenico's con-
had done many years before
In later years however there
is
did not customarily wear black. His transformation
extended
developments that
40
Carlos
may
well have
itself to clothing.
Domenico's decision the time
in Venice?
every indication that Domenico
to
marry may have been
were taking place
Domenico undertook Scarlatti,
Historia
Appendix II) Conversations by latti, and Senora Rosa Rallo, .
de
at the
affected by the
Portuguese court. By
his last visit to his father in Italy
y mi ultima voluntad,
familia
p.
2
(see
author with Luise, Julio, and Carmelo ScarMadrid on July 14, 1947, later also with
this
in
Senora Encarnacion Scarlatti. The portrait of Catalina was considered of greater artistic importance than that of Domenico. No photographs were taken before they were sold. 41 See Chapter VII and Appendix II, note in connection with Francisco Scarlatti's
proofs of nobility, 181 7-1 820.
42
Appendix II. Baptismal certificates of Domenico's five youngest children (1738-1749); document of December 15, 1763. 48 See Chapter VII and Appendix II, documents of September 1757, 17601763. 44
Gazeta de Lisboa, September 10, 1722, and December 31, 1722. '
77
'
LISBON PATRIARCHY in
1724
his pupil the princess
Maria Barbara was approaching mar-
riageable age, or at least that early age at which royal marriages
were negotiated. On October 9, 1725, to the accompaniment of Te Deums in Lisbon churches, her betrothal to Fernando, crown
He was then eleven years old. Maria Barbara was nearly fourteen. The diplomatic advantages of this match were made perfectly clear by the simultaneous announcement of the betrothal of the Spanish Infanta to the Portuguese crown prince Don Jose. The customary correspondence, pourparlers, and expedition of
prince of Spain, was announced.
45
appropriately flattering portraits culminated in an exchange of
ambassadors between Spain and Portugal for the signing of marriage contracts.
46
On
January
1728, a Festeggio
11,
Armonko
composed for the occasion by Scarlatti (the music of which has been lost) was performed in the Queen's apartment, in conjunction with fireworks and the illumination of the entire city of expressly
Lisbon.
47
It is possible that
Domenico was
told at this time that he
would
be expected to follow the princess Maria Barbara to Spain. Probably Maria Barbara herself requested
it.
Her
devotion to music,
while partly the result of heredity and natural inclination, can only
have been enhanced by her association with Domenico during her formative years. There
Domenico's own development
is
even the
as a harpsichord
Scarlatti
possibility
that
composer was stim-
ulated by constant contact with his talented pupil and by the necessity of providing music to further her progress. later production
is
His
entire
reported to have been composed expressly for
Maria Barbara. Perhaps the demands and responsiveness of her much further as a player and as a composer than he would have gone had he worked only for himself or for an unspecified public. There is every evidence that
highly cultivated taste carried him
despite differences of position between the royal princess
and her music master the relation was one of mutual devotion, and that the
young Maria Barbara would have regarded separation with
dismay. Although Domenico later had associates it is 45
in
her affections,
probable that at this time Maria Barbara identified her entire Gazeta de Lisboa, October n, 1725. 1030; Danvila, pp. 47-49, 74. See Fig. 25. January 15, 1728.
46 Florez, Vol. II, p. 47 Gazeta de Lisboa,
•
78
•
LISBON TATRIARCHY
A reflection of Domenico's own attachment might be seen in the curious coincidence that his bride was almost the same age as Maria Barbara. musical
with him.
life
for his royal pupil
external reasons may have been for his marwere affected by the prospect of going to Spain more
Whatever Domenico's riage, they
more
or less permanently under patronage
The
he had thitherto enjoyed.
Domenico
ing point in life
firmly assured than any
mark the turnNot only had his personal
years 1725 to 1729
Scarlatti's life.
taken a change of direction with the death of his father and
with his marriage, not only was he launched on his second, his
we
adolescence, which was to produce the mature artist
artistic
know and remember,
but he was about to adopt a
it
country, in
more Spanish than
musical respects at least to become
Perhaps
new
was only because of the new
life that
Italian.
he was beginning,
with a young wife, and in a strange country, that during the next
twenty years he was able to develop the most strikingly original musical style of his century.
In January 1729 the Portuguese and Spanish royal families met on the River Caya at the border of the two countries for the double
wedding.
The
Spanish court, after a nine day journey "notwith-
standing the deep Snows," arrived at Badajoz on January 16,
"much ceas'd,
fatigu'd with the bad Weather, which had scarce ever from the Time they left. and made the Roads not , .
withstanding
all
.
the Precautions taken, almost impassable."
48
One
can imagine their shivering Catholic Majesties, bundled up in furs,
trundling in coaches over icy roads and being dug out of snowdrifts,
with their utterly miserable dependents lurching behind
them.
At the
arrival of the Spaniards
on January 19 the Portuguese
court was assembled on the opposite side of the River
array of one hundred and eighty-five coaches and fifteen or
twenty servants
fifty chaises,
and
uniforms! 49
The
number
The
in
it
in
an
each with
one hundred and resplendent
new
"no inconsiderable MorKing did not on this Edicts against the wearing of Gold upon
was reported
as
the Grandees of Spain, that the
Occasion dispence with his 48
thousand soldiers
Caya
Spaniards were accompanied by an equivalent
of soldiers, but
tification to
in the richest liveries,
at least six
six,
Historical Register
.
.
.
for the Year 1720, p. 69.
49 ibid., pp. 73-74. *
79
*
LISBON TATRIARCHY might make
their Cloaths, that they
as bright a
Figure as the
Portuguese." 50
Here time.
ing
the brides and bridegrooms saw each other for the
The
first
apprehensive curiosity of the hordes of courtiers watch-
them was exceeded only by
their
own. The four young persons
destined by wholly external circumstances to intimate and inseparable unions
met
their breath.
in punctilious formality while the bystanders
One
he was present
Domenico
can imagine
Observing Maria
at this ordeal of his royal pupil.
Barbara with especial interest was the British ambassador Spanish court, Sir Benjamin Keene.
He
held
Scarlatti's sentiments if
at the
wrote the next day: "I
had placed myself very conveniently yesterday to see the first meeting of the two families j and I could not but observe, that the princess's figure, notwithstanding a profusion of gold and diamonds, really shocked the prince. He looked as if he thought he had been imposed upon. Her large mouth, thick lips, high cheek bones and small eyes, afforded him no agreeable prospect} but," adds Sir Benjamin, "she is well shaped and has a good mien." 51 Actually Sir Benjamin later became very fond of her. Fernando's subsequent devotion was unswerving.
The exchange
of royal personages took place in a magnificent
pavilion especially constructed across the River
Caya so that the
Spanish and Portuguese kings might meet "without ever going out of their
own
Territories, entering just at the
same
Instant, Step
by Step." Upon signature of the marriage contracts "the Princesses were handed to the other Side of the Table, with much Grief parting."
52
The two
courts
met three
at
times, with "a fine Consort
of Music perform'd by the Musicians of both the King's Chapels" at the
second meeting. 83
After the
final
meeting the Spanish court
set
out from Badajoz
on January 27 "and took the Route of Andalusia, designing to be ." 54 By command of Joao V, 6B at Seville, ... in eight Days. .
Domenico
Scarlatti
He
remain
was
to
.
followed the princess Maria Barbara to Spain.
in
her service for the rest of his
life.
60 ibid., 51 Quoted in Coxe, Vol. Ill, pp. 231-233. p. 69. 52 The Historical Register . . for the Year 17 20, pp. 73-74. 58 ibid. The patriarch of Lisbon was sent to the wedding as .
eleven canons, fourteen singers, and 54
The
Historical Register
.
.
.
many
for the Year 1729, pp. 69ft.
56 Scarlatti, dedication of the Essercizi.
•
80
chaplain, with
instrumentalists (Danvila, p. 92).
•
VI
•
THE SPANISH SCENE
felipe v and isabel farnese / fernando and maria barbara aranjuez, la granja, escorial madrid juvarra and the royal palace arrival of farinelli madrid opera scarlatti's knighthood essercizi per gravicembalo scarlatti's portrait death of catalina scarlatti death of felipe v seville
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
iith
Domenico
Scarlatti's
arrival
Spain begins that period of his
most intensely concerns
us, the
life
in
which
period that
brought to fruition the transformation
al-
ready begun in Portugal and produced the extraordinary late flowering of his genius in the harpsichord sonatas. Spain has always had a pronounced effect it both fascinates and unsettles them. On those who makes an unforgettable impression, and on those who go there to live, it works a drastic and sometimes catastrophic change. For some it is a stimulant for others it is utter destruction. We shall shortly see to what extent the Versailles-bred Felipe V was destroyed by his adopted country. Someone has remarked on the curious dissolution of all the French diplomats who crossed the Pyrenees in his reign. Juvarra and Tiepolo died in Spain, perhaps not quite accidentally. There the painter Mengs was attacked by the "marasmus." There the aging Casanova had the bitterest and most sombre experiences of his adventurous career. Scarlatti, perhaps by his youth in a Spanish-dominated country, by his early contact with the half-oriental traditions of the Saracens, which had almost obliterated those of Magna Graecia in Sicily and the Nea-
on foreigners
j
visit, it
j
was better prepared to meet the explosive mixMoorish sensuality and idolatrous Counter-Reformabigotry. Spain is a country of extremes, upsetting and
politan provinces,
ture of pagan tion
threatening to the disciple of moderation. There the Renaissance
could take but straight
little root.
from the Gothic
Spain passed like into the Baroque,
its
architecture almost
from the Middle Ages
into the Counter-Reformation. Scarlatti
seems to have escaped the threats with which the •
81
•
for-
THE SPANISH SCENE him it was a stimulant. and melancholia he seems to have danced with unprecedented animation and sensibility, at times with eigner in Spain finds himself beset. For
Over the
abysses of despair
the agility of a tightrope walker. In Spain the undefeatable dyna-
mism of his nature found its fullest expression. Domenico Scarlatti arrived in Spain most probably time as the Princess Maria Barbara, or
at the
same
at least shortly thereafter.
On February 3, 1729, it is reported, "in the Evening, the Court being arriv'd at Seville, their Majesties and Highnesses took a Turn
in the
Garden of the Alcasar, which is the ancient Palace of m For the next four years the Spanish court
the Moorish Kings.
was
.
.
.
to occupy the Alcazar of Seville as its principal residence.
The
numerous dependents of the court, presumably Scarlatti among them, were housed in various quarters in the vicinity. In the light of his later music, it is by no means difficult to imagine Domenico Scarlatti strolling under the Moorish arcades of the Alcazar or listening at night in the streets of Seville to the intoxicating
rhythms of
Andalusian chant.
castanets
To them
and the half
oriental melodies of
the Saracen of his Sicilian ancestry and
Neapolitan childhood must have responded.
The
days of his
Latinization as a disciple of his father, Bernardo Pasquini, and
had passed j no longer was he a composer of polite operas Maria Casimira and the classicists of Arcadia. No longer was for follower of Palestrina at St. Peter's. Now as he listened to he a Spanish popular music and "imitated the melody of tunes sung 2 by*carriers, muleteers, and common people," his real destiny was unfolding. Thenceforth Scarlatti was to become a Spanish musician. The Princess Maria Barbara had brought Scarlatti to Spain almost as part of her musical dowry, as it were. In addition to continuing to serve as her music master, he became music master to Prince Fernando as well. 3 Fernando does not appear to have been particularly gifted in music or to have had the highly cultivated Corelli
we read on
taste of his wife, but
later occasions of his playing
the harpsichord to accompany her singing or that virtuoso. 1
The Historical Register for the Year 1720, pp. 73-74. Burney, The Present State of Music in Gertnany, Vol. I, pp. 247-249. Appendix II, record of payment due for 1732-1733. See Chapter VII. .
2 3
4
of a court
4
.
.
•
82
'
THE SPANISH SCENE Actually the Spanish court hardly ever remained in Seville for
more than at the end
few weeks
a
At
of 1729.
at a time, except for a
three-month stay
undertook a continual
first it
series of ex-
and other ports along the coast. On all of these excursions the Prince and Princess of the 5 Asturias were present. Indeed their attendance at most court funcpeditions to the Sierras, to Granada, to Cadiz,
was obligatory. In his capacity as music master to the Prince and Princess, Scarlatti was almost certainly included in the royal retinue, which patiently endured the discomforts of continual tions
and temporary lodgings. Along with the vast
traveling
quantities
of provisions and supplies necessary for the court, harpsichords
were trundled by muleback over narrow mountainous roads for the use of the Princess and her music master.
6
It
was only when
the court established itself in Seville from the middle of October
May
1730 until
of 1733 that any degree of stability was estab-
lished in the court routines, or perhaps for that matter in co's
Domeni-
own household.
Domenico and Catalina Scarlatti's first child was born in Seville, Most appropriately they christened him Juan
apparently in 1729.
Antonio, in honor of Domenico's royal Portuguese patrons, Joao
V
and
March
Don
Antonio. Their second son Fernando was baptized on
1731, under circumstances indicating that perhaps he was
9,
not expected to live.
been used
home
at
The
record states that holy water had already
because of an emergency. Actually he lived to
engender the direct
line of Scarlattis that survives to the present
name Fernando
day. Obviously he was given the
in
honor of
Domenico's new patron, the Prince of the Asturias. (It was only later that
Domenico honored
his father
by naming a child after
him.)
have been attached entirely to the household and Princess of the Asturias, and to have had little, contact with the King and Queen. But, as might be
Scarlatti appears to
of the Prince if
any direct 5
The Gaceta de Madrid
The Gaceta de Madrid, of which there is Nacional in Madrid, furnished me with weekly reports on the movements of the Spanish court during the years 1729 to 1757. On these are based all the following assertions of its whereabouts. 6 A document from San Lorenzo, November 15, 1767, presents the difficulties which Nebra and Sabatini had with mules and drivers in transporting instruments. They request a cart. (Quoted in unpublished dissertation of Luise Bauer. Source not stated.)
a complete
file
so reports.
in the Biblioteca
•
83
•
THE SPANISH SCENE expected, their personalities determined the entire character of the
Spanish court. Court
one of
official
which the self
life
proceeded on two entirely different levels,
and formal
dispatches
official
dispatches give but
routine,
little hint,
and another, of which betrays
it-
only in memoirs and confidential reports of ambassadors. Con-
versation was pursued on correspondingly separate levels of polite
Under cover of the events which Madrid announced with a dreary regularity was
formality and backstairs gossip. the Gaceta de
concealed a truly fantastic and
little
edifying spectacle.
V
had undergone a most lamentable transformation since Scarlatti had first seen him in Naples twenty-seven years before. From the handsome, finely bred grandson of Louis XIV, he had turned into a shrunken, prematurely aged caricature, sunk in an apathy that was only occasionally relieved by glimmerings of in7 telligence or moments of activity. Educated as a younger son in submission and dependence, as a "prince made expressly to allow himself to be shut up and governed," 8 he had been unexpectedly thrust on the throne of Spain pathetically ill-equipped for the Felipe
task of governing.
"One
an absolute monarch but
much emphasize
cannot too
the least act of will caused
him
total exhaustion.
.
.
the fact that
." 9
Ostensibly
in reality the slave of those
who won
ascendency with him, this pathetic combination of majesty and
misery was himself governed largely from the confessional and
from the bedchamber, to such an extent that his minister Alberoni said to have remarked that all his royal master needed was "un 10 reclinatorio Over these two necessities e le coscie d'una donna." the royal confessor and the Queen held absolute sway. In a kind of perverse passive resistance the King had completely is
—
He
upset the hours of the court.
and went
to
bed
at five, rising to
dined
at three in the
morning,
hear Mass and to retire again at
ten, finally to rise at five in the afternoon.
The
courtiers
who were
unable to adapt their habits to his nearly died of exhaustion. 11
(But in the King's quarters they deferentially avoided speaking 7 Accounts of Felipe V and his character are given by Armstrong-, Ballesteros, Cabanes, Coxe, Keene, Louville, and Saint-Simon. 8 Saint-Simon, Vol. XI, pp. 229-230. 9 Louville, Vol. I, pp. 131-132. 10 Ballesteros, Vol. VI, p. 524; Duclos, Vol. II, p. 64. 11 In this paragraph the information not otherwise accredited is drawn from
Armstrong, pp. 260, 269, 287. •
84
•
THE SPANISH SCENE of the night at three o'clock in the morning, or of the day at high
noon.)
12
For long periods
at a
time the King took to his bed and
refused to be roused from a melancholic lethargy. For years he
would not permit his hair to be cut, and it was a well-known fact that for months on end he would not allow his linen to be changed. In fact he often wore the identical garments for as long as a year and a half! For fear of losing her control of him to some ambitious courtier, the Queen never left him alone for an instant except at public audiences. Moreover, she saw to it that he was never given the opportunity to use a pen, lest as he had once done in a fit of melancholic despair, he might sign his abdication. In the meantime, the King's melancholia, augmented on the one hand by encouragement from the confessional of an exaggerated sense of guilt and on the other hand by what Saint-Simon terms "trop de nourriture et d'exercise conjugal,"
13
was gradually deteriorating
into positive insanity.
In another country the king might have been ruled through concubines, but in Spain with respect to the royal family the principles of
monogamy and
theoretical sway,
conjugal fidelity held actual as well as
and the way
to kings led
through wives and
confessors rather than through mistresses and ministers.
Hence
the complete control that Isabel Farnese was able to achieve over
her husband. she
managed
By to
skillful
manipulation of ministers and confessors,
render herself inseparable not only from the
King, but from the slightest exertion on his part of ruling power. 1 *
Although heartily disliked by many contemporaries and subQueen was a most capable woman. It was she who was able to counterbalance the prevailing atmosphere of melancholia and madness with one of intelligent mediocrity, later sequent historians, the
perpetuated by her son Carlos III.
The marriage
of Isabel Farnese
V
had been arranged on the assumption that she would be as easy to govern as he, but her first act on entering Spain was to send packing across the snows of the Pyrenees Mme. des Ursins, his most powerful adviser and confidante. From that moment until the end of his reign she never lost control, thanks to a realism to Felipe
12
Fernan-Nunez, Vol.
I, pp. 92-93. Saint-Simon, quoted by Ballesteros, Vol. VI, p. 528. 14 This paragraph and the next are drawn from Armstrong, Ballesteros, Coxe, Danvila, and Saint-Simon.
18
•
85
•
)
THE SPANISH SCENE and diplomacy which tempered and concealed her jealousy of power and her devouring ambition for her children. In the end indeed she was remarkably successful in winning them thrones. In view of her hopes for her own children, she distrusted the children of Felipe's first marriage and feared for her position, should Fernando ascend the throne of Spain. She had given her consent to the marriage of Fernando and Maria Barbara only because she saw no other alternative. Her relations with her stepson and his princess were correct but hardly cordial. Fernando,
like his father originally destined to a subordinate
had been a younger son, but even after it became apparent that he would succeed to the throne everyone around him found it convenient to encourage in his retiring and docile nature such unenlightened piety and such habits of inactivity that like his father he might be ruled from confessional and bedchamber. 15 The disappointment which had been noted in Fernando upon his first meeting with Maria Barbara had early been overcome, and the ever-watchful British ambassador reports him to be "very fond of the princess, who knows how to humour him, and will necessarily have a great influence whenever the government de16 volves upon him." Despite the flattering charm of her betrothal portrait, Maria Barbara was admittedly lacking in the advantages of beauty j she had excessively thick lips, and smallpox had left its traces on her face. Moreover in later life she became enormously 17 fat. But she had been well trained for her role and her natural grace of character stood her in good stead. Within a few weeks role,
after her marriage
it
could be reported that "the Princess of the
by the Politeness of her Carriage, raises the Admiration and Esteem of all that have the Honour to approach her. She has a great deal of Wit, and speaks six Languages, viz. Latin, Italian, German, French, Spanish, and Portuguese" 1 * (It is clear that
Asturias,
linguistically this Princess sible
had been prepared
matrimonial contingencies
for nearly all pos-
!
Fortunately for Fernando, Maria Barbara was utterly lacking 15
Accounts of Fernando and his character are given by Argenson, Ballesteros, Cabanes, Coxe, Danvila, Richelieu, and Saint-Simon. 16 Keene, February 23, 1732, quoted by Armstrong, p. 278. 17 Ballesteros, Vol. V, pp. i3 3ff. 18
The
Historical Register
.
.
.
for the Year r72o y pp. 73-74. •
86
•
THE SPANISH SCENE in the jealous
and overpowering ambition of her mother-in-law.
She was quite content
to share his subsidiary role, to
humor
his af-
and generous nature against the tendency to melancholia that he had inherited from his father. They became, and remained throughout their lives, royal models of conjugal devotion. But fectionate
despite their lack of initiative, their life was not easy.
The
Prince
and Princess of the Asturias were completely dependent on the wishes and caprices of the King and Queen, and their attendance was expected at all sorts of official functions in which they could play but a passive role. In the privacy of their ever, they appear to
the King. versions,
They
own
quarters,
how-
have avoided most of the topsy-turvy hours of
occupied themselves with the usual courtly
and indeed when
di-
in later life they ascended the throne,
these diversions of music, serenades, hunting, fireworks, and spectacles
formed such a conspicuous part of their reign that it seemed were but continuing their life as Prince and Princess
as if they
of the Asturias.
Music however was Maria Barbara's chief solace, almost as if she had sought to ward off the underlying melancholy and incipient madness of the atmosphere into which she had been thrust. It became her chief means of diverting and entertaining the Prince as well. (Curiously enough, his father, on whom was later performed some of the most famous musical therapy of all history, was at this time notoriously indifferent to music.) 19 But perhaps the most enlightened trait in Fernando's sluggish and fundamentally unimaginative nature was his love of music. It is not without reason that we later speak of the reign of Fernando and Maria Barbara as that of the melomanes. Repeatedly the court communiques report evenings of music in the apartment of the 20 Princess. At these evenings Domenico Scarlatti was undoubtedly present and active. It is amusing to speculate on the sound of Scarlatti's
harpsichord under the Moorish ceilings of the Alcazar,
whether his music had already developed the oriental and the elaborate surface decoration that rendered it not un-
to speculate traits
like his
surroundings in Seville.
19
Keenc, quoted by Armstrong, p. 20 Gaceta de Madrid, No. 21, May Princesa en su Quarto el festejo de mentos." There are similar reports in •
338. 19,
1729:
".
•
•
tcniendo algunas noches
una primorosa Musioa de vozes, y Nos. 49 and 52 for the same year.
87
•
la
instro-
THE SPANISH SCENE For more than
his first four years in Spain, Scarlatti
May
nothing of Castile. But on
16, 1733, the Spanish court left
northward for the
Seville to return
haa seen
first
time since the marriage
of the Prince of the Asturias. Thenceforth were resumed the cus-
tomary seasonal migrations of the court among the royal residences of
Madrid and
its
vicinity.
During
Scarlatti's lifetime the court
never again returned to Andalusia.
The King was
still in
bulletins of the Gaceta
a lamentable state, although the weekly
de Madrid nearly always asserted him to
be enjoying "perfect health."
It
was necessary for the court to
proceed in such a way as to avoid large
cities
and possible observa-
by the people of the King's true physical and mental condi-
tion tion.
21
In the next months Scarlatti caught sight, one after another,
of the various surroundings in which he was to spend the rest of his life, of the scenes
which form the background of
all his later
music.
On
June 12 the court reached Aranjuez, the ancient countryV and Felipe II in the Tagus valley between Madrid
seat of Carlos
and Toledo. After the long and
through the
blistering journey
parched Spanish countryside, the fountains and shade
:rees of the
royal gardens must have presented a paradise. Surrounding the
gardens the dammed-up Tagus flowed
such a
in
manner
the palace was always within the sound of running water. the Spanish royal residences, Aranjuez
is
by
far the
that
Of
all
most cheerful,
the most peaceful, and the most lacking in sombre undertones,
beyond those of a
delicate
and
poetic melancholy. Travelers have
always arrived there with delight. In 1679
Mme.
d'Aulnoy had
when we arrived, I believed myself in some enchanted Palace. The morning was fresh, birds singing on all sides, the waters murmuring sweetly, the espaliers loaded with delectawritten: ".
ble fruit
•
109
'
d'Orsav, this
Coron
report
THE REIGN OF THE SVLELOMANES those below him,
ng those who
and with respect
forgot their
a disinterestedness station."
to his superiors ; often banter-
rank to pay him court, and displaying
and independence worthy of a more exalted
11
There
is
not the slightest evidence that Scarlatti resented the
it was Farinelli who and who spoke of him in later years with affection. In fact Burney was quite correct in remarking that Farinelli appears to have been a person almost incapable of inspiring jealousy. Seldom has a man been so unani-
ascendency of the famous castrate Moreover, befriended him in his financial
mously praised both for ".
.
.
seems
it
common
his art
and for
his character. Says
as if the involuntary loss of the
of all animal faculties,
cumstance of his existence."
With
difficulties
Burney:
most gross and
had been the only degrading
cir-
12
the accession of Fernando and Barbara, and the retirement
of the Marquis Scotti with the
Queen Mother
La
to
Farinelli took over the entire direction of court operas.
Granja,
For them
he engaged the best singers in Europe, commissioned new music
and frequently new
librettos,
and spared no expense
in scenery.
In addition to works by the resident composers, Corselli and Cor-
Mele, who went away
radini,
in 1752,
and Conforto, who arrived
1755, Farinelli also produced operas with music by Hasse,
in
Galuppi, Jomelli, and others. Metastasio had written librettos at Farinelli's request, a
court.
cussed
many
of the
few especially for the Spanish
With his dear Twin, as he called Farinelli, Metastasio dismany details of the Spanish opera productions in a lively 13
For the designing of scenery Amiconi was called to Madrid in 1747 j he was succeeded after his death in 1752 by Antonio Jolli and by Francisco Bataglioli, who and
affectionate correspondence.
arrived in
and the
among
1
754. Exceedingly complicated were the stage machinery
For crowd scenes
lighting.
extras
were recruited from
the workers engaged in rebuilding the royal palace.
Buen Retiro the
Coliseo, or theater,
was
At
so constructed that the
rear of the stage could be opened to disclose, stretching into the
"Coxe,
Vol. IV, pp.
3 iff.
12
Burney, Memoirs of
18
Farinelli's part of the correspondence
has been published
many
.
.
.
Metastasio, Vol. Ill, pp. 284-288. is. not known to survive. Metastasio's
times. •
no
•
THE REIGN OF THE MELOMANES distance, the brilliantly illuminated perspective of the gardens.
(Now
but
little
14
remains of Buen Retiro save the shell of a few
sections of the building, the gardens,
now
a public park,
and the
magnificent frescoed ceiling of the Cason, or antechamber of the
by Luca Giordano. This fresco now extends
Coliseo,
over a dreary collection of plaster las
casts
its
belonging to the
splendors
Museo de
Refroducciones Arttsticas.)
FarinelPs opera productions reached their climax in 1750 with 15 the celebrations for the wedding of the Infanta Maria Antonia.
On
the evening of April 8 a serenade,
VA
d y Amove, with
silo
by Metastasio, music by Corselli, and decorations by Jolli, was produced in "two great salons of the Retiro adorned and
text
manner that," according to the British ambaswas un Paradiso" 16 On the evening of April 12 the opera Armida Aflacata was performed in the Coliseo, with a libretto by Migliavacca based on Metastasio, and with music by Mele. Two of the scenes were designed by Amiconi, and the remainder by Jolli. The Gaceta de Madrid for April 21 gives an elaborate and appetizing description of both performances. For the performance of the opera the theater was illuminated with more than two hundred crystal chandeliers of various sizes, and the orchestra newly uniformed in scarlet and silver. The first tiffed
up
in such a
sador, "it
act
represented an agreeable landscape, and the sound of singing
birds was to be heard fountains, the
two
from cages on the
stage.
There were eight
central ones shooting so high that they ex-
The High
tinguished the lights of a chandelier hanging sixty feet above. last
scene of the opera represented the temple of the Sun.
columns of red and white figures in silver
was
rose.
crystal
were adorned with transparent
and gold, and the predominating
In the inner part of the stage hung
tint
many
of the scene
celestial
globes
of crystal in various colors and two hundred silver stars all rotating at once.
Above were
to be seen the transparent signs of the zodiac.
In the center was the octagonal house of the Sun,
its
columns of
green and white crystal contrasting with the red and rose of the 14 The foregoing- information in this paragraph is drawn from Cotarelo. Eighteenth-century descriptions of the palace and theater of Buen Retiro are to be found in Townsend, Vol. I, pp. 256-257; and Caimo, Vol. I, pp. 144-151. 15 An account is given in Cotarelo, pp. 144-152. 16 Keene, p. 221. '
III
'
THE REIGN OF THE fMELOMANES In the house of the Sun stood the chariot of
rest of the scene.
the Sun in gold and crystal, driven by Apollo attended by the Sciences,
and with
moving on globes
horses
its
made
the house rotated the wheel of the Sun. It was feet in diameter, with
two
The
brilliance of
its
of crystal five
series of spiral rays in crystal
in opposite directions, spreading to a total feet.
of cloud. Behind
lights, together
from the theater was such that
it
revolving
diameter of twenty-one
with
its
dazzled the
reflection of those
As concealed
sight.
machinery slowly elevated the house and chariot of the Sun, the park of Buen Retiro was disclosed with
its
nated by fireworks and many-colored
lights.
entire perspective illumi-
(Let the pampered
stage director accustomed to electric power, projectors, spotlights stop to reflect that this entire spectacle
and colored
was accomplished
with lamps and candles and coordinated by hand-worked machines in
the ever-present danger of accidents and ensuing royal dis-
The fire hazard alone would be almost incalculable to any modern insurance company.) Small wonder that on this occasion Farinelli received the cross of the Order of Calatrava, one of the
pleasure.
highest orders of knighthood in Spain!
The
orchestra in these performances included sixteen violins,
four violas, four violoncellos, four double basses, five oboes, two horns, two trumpets, two bassoons, and two drums. three keyboard players
who
acted as conductors,
There were
among them
Jose
de Nebra. Frequently Corselli, Corradini, Mele, or Conforto presided at the harpsichord.
The
string players included Jose
Her-
rando, the author of a treatise on violin playing, 17 and one of the
wind players was Luis Mison. Among the singers who in these years at Buen Retiro were Peruzzi, Uttini, Mingotti, Elisi, Raaff, Caffarelli, Manzuoli, and Panzacchi. 18
principal
performed
When
the court was at Aranjuez, Farinelli saw to
serenades,
and
all
royal pleasures.
19
it
that operas,
forms of music-making alternated with the other
But not
with the rich resources of the
satisfied
17 Arte,
y funtual Exflicacion del modo de Tocar el Violin con ferfeccion, y 1756-7]. The engraved portrait in Herrando's treatise permits identifying him as the violinist shown in the musicians' tribune of the engraving after Amiconi's portrait of Fernando and Maria Barbara discussed
facilidad [Madrid,
later in this chapter. 18 Cotarelo,
(Figs. 36, 38) V and VI. The
foregoing information concerning in-
Chapters
strumentalists 19
The
is
drawn from Cotarelo,
theater at
p.
Aranjuez was rebuilt •
127. in
112
1754. Cotarelo, '
p.
161.
THE REIGN OF THE iMELOMANES palace and the palace gardens, in 1752 he offered his sovereigns a
miniature
fleet
each with
its
court.
on the Tagus, with frigates for the royal personages,
own
orchestra,
The embarkations
and smaller boats for the
rest of the
summer
took place in spring and early
evenings, amid fanfares of the royal band, salvoes of cannon, and, as the darkness
deepened, elaborate displays of fireworks.
Embarcadero, from which these still
exists not far
from
a
bling into decay along the
stately expeditions
charming
little
weedy banks
The
were launched,
garden house now crum-
of the Tagus.
Sometimes Farinelli sang, accompanied on the harpsichord by the Queen, or even on occasion by the King, and sometimes he sang duets with the Queen. In addition to music, there was fishing and hunting parties were so arranged that from his boat the King ;
could shoot the
game
that
was driven near
to the
banks of the
Tagus. Farinelli
had
by Amiconi with a few ships
his portrait painted
of his miniature fleet proudly visible in the background. In 1758
he appended to an account of his opera productions an elaborate record of the royal embarkations, handsomely copied out and
decorated with watercolors illustrating the this
volume, now
Farinelli
lists
in the library of the
flotilla in
Royal Palace
homely
in
details as the unfortunate effect
He on
20
In
Madrid,
the participating musicians and describes the
works and the hunting exploits of the King. such
detail.
fire-
also mentions his
own
voice,
or that of the Queen, of the chill night air or of the dampness rising castrati
from the water
;
or the fright occasioned
some
illustrious
by the too-close approach of wild boars of the royal quarry.
But nowhere is there any mention of Scarlatti. Most natural it would have been, in the gulfs of stillness between artillery salvoes 20 Madrid, Library of Royal Palace, i. 412, Description del estado actual del Real Theatro del Buen Retiro de las junciones hechas en el desde el ano de 1747, hasta el fresente: de sus y individuos, sueldos, y encargos, segun se exfresa in este Primer Libro En el segundo se manifiestan las diversiones, que annualmente n Carlos tienen los Reyes Nrs Sers en el Real sitio de Aranjuez Disfuesto for 8 Broschi Farine 10 Criado jamiliar de S 8 Ano de 1758. Sacchi, p. 23, states that Farinelli had three copies of this volume prepared, one for the King, one for the director of the theater, and one for himself which he took with him when he retired to Bologna. Cotarelo, p. 125, referring to Leandro Fernandez de Moratin, Obras fostumas, Vol. II, p. 55, states that a copy is to be found in the Biblioteca di San Clemente in Bologna. This copy is no longer there. The only one located by this author is that in the Royal Palace in Madrid. .
'
M
113
D
.
*
.
THE REIGN OF THE tMELOMANES and fireworks, to hear floating over the water the and explosive coruscations of the Scarlatti sonatas. It is
brilliant tinkle
not possible at present adequately to explain Scarlatti's
apparent absence from these
by no means
inactive.
festivities.
But
was
Scarlatti himself
In the year 1752 the copying out of the great
final series of sonatas
began. During the next five years thirteen
volumes, each containing thirty sonatas (except for volume X,
which contains thirty-four) were prepared for the use of the Queen. Scarlatti's autographs have disappeared. Except for a few
have been coland there is every
earlier pieces, the sonatas of this series appear to
lected in approximately chronological order, indication that
most of them were composed
at this time.
A parallel
however, more of the earlier pieces and the last twelve sonatas was also prepared during the same years, and largely series containing,
21 copied out in the same hand.
In these pieces Scarlatti
and
at last
first
shows the
full
demonstrates his full maturity.
Yet a gradual change
is still
perceptible, a
maturing that continues through the very
range of his genius
He still
was 67 years
old.
further process of
last sonatas.
The
"in-
genious jesting with art" and the "happy freaks" of the Essercizi
and the sonatas of the intervening period have given way
to a
style of writing that renders the harpsichord sonata a full vehicle
for the entire expression of Scarlatti's personality lation of his entire life's experience
and
for the distil-
and fund of sentiment.
This music ranges from the courtly to the savage, from a wellnigh saccharine urbanity to an acrid violence.
Its gaiety
more
moments
tive
intense for an undertone of tragedy. Its
melancholy are
operatic passion. life life,
Most
which was lived
overwhelmed by
all
the
a surge of extrovert
particularly he has expressed that part of his
There
in Spain.
of Spanish popular music
self a place in the
No
at times
is
of medita-
is
hardly an aspect of Spanish
and dance,
microcosm that
that has not
Manual de
Spanish composer, not even
found
it-
Scarlatti created with his sonatas.
Falla, has expressed
the essence of his native land as completely as did the foreigner Scarlatti.
He
guitars, the 21
has captured the click of castanets, the strumming of
thud of muffled drums, the harsh
See Chapter VIII;
Appendix
V
A, •
i
bitter wail of
and 2; and Figs. 43-44.
114
'
gypsy
THE REIGN OF THE ZMELOMANES lament, the overwhelming gaiety of the village band, and above the wiry tension of the Spanish dance.
all
All of this does not find expression merely in loosely knit im-
program music, but
pressionistic
and
assimilated
is
distilled with
the rigor that Scarlatti had learned from his sixteenth-century
all
and
ecclesiastical masters,
given forth again in a pure musical
is
language that extends far beyond the domain of mere harpsichord virtuosity. In late Scarlatti there is
of the pedantic. All
is
is
as little of the
haphazard
as there
assimilated into an unfailing sense of
the larger context. In those last five years as he wrote sonata after sonata Scarlatti was reliving his entire
than ever before, bringing
We narily
life,
living
it
more
intensely
to fruition.
it
can only guess at the outward stimulus for the extraordi-
and copious harvest of
late
genius.
Scarlatti's
Spanish
archives have thus far been as unyielding of information concern-
ing Scarlatti's rich
life
and character
as Italian. It
is
possible that the
may have
production of Scarlatti's late years
represented
merely the natural outpouring of slowly accumulated forces that
had hitherto found only a
partial outlet.
ever that in 1752 Scarlatti was
We
have indications how-
and confined
ill
to his house.
22
Perhaps during a long period of absence from court functions he confided
more
collecting of existing sonatas
One ney
what
fully to paper
in the habit of improvising.
he had been
The Queen too may have urged and the composition of new ones.
further possibility remains
tells
in previous years
—
the
that of financial pressure. Bur-
us that "this original composer and great performer, like
many men concerns,
of genius and talents, was so inattentive to
and
distressed in
bounty of
so
much addicted
his
circumstances,
his royal mistress y -
to play, that
and
who,
as
common
he was frequently
often extricated by the
as Farinelli assured
me, not
only often paid his debts, but, at his intercession, continued a pension of four thousand
who were
crowns to
his
widow and
left destitute at his decease."
23
Is
it
three daughters,
possible that the late
22
His letter to the Duke of Alba, p. 121. Burney, Memoirs of Metastasio, Vol. II, pp. 205-206, note (u). In his article on Domenico in Rees' CyclopoeJia, Burney writes thus: "Farinelli informed us, that Domenico Scarlatti, an agreeable man in society, was so much 23
.
.
.
addicted to play, that he was frequently ruined, and as frequently relieved distresses
by
his
royal patroness, the queen of Spain, •
115
'
who was
constant
in in
his
her
THE REIGN OF THE tMELOMANES sonatas were extorted from Scarlatti by the Queen payment of his gambling debts?
Outwardly,
Scarlatti
manner
be-
Cavaliere di San Giacomo. Burney's
ac-
seems to have been living
fitting the dignity of a
in return for
in a
count of the destitution in which his family was left at his death
seems slightly exaggerated
in the light of the surviving portions
of the inventory of his estate.
The
Scarlatti
household was well
supplied with the gilded marble-topped tables characteristic of eighteenth-century Latin gentility, with silver plate, paintings, and
many estate,
from
gifts
even
his share.
his
Scarlatti's royal patrons.
At the
division of the
youngest son but one received a coach as part of
24
Domenico's second wife,
whom
he married some time between
1740 and 1742 (the marriage document has not yet come to light) was a native of Cadiz, 25 Anastasia Ximenes (or Anastasia Macarti, Maxarti, or Anastasia Ximenes Parrado, as the documents sometimes call her). Almost nothing
One
is
known about her
is
wife one of the final steps in the hispanization of latti.
at present.
tempted, however, to consider the acquisition of a Spanish
With
Domenico
Scar-
Catalina Scarlatti he must naturally have spoken Italian,
but his children seem to have been brought up as Spaniards.
One
wonders which language Domenico now spoke more frequently.
Every
we know
direct utterance of his
is
written in Italian, but in
signing legal documents he used the Spanish form of his name,
"Domingo
Scarlatti."
Certainly,
however, after the advent of
Anastasia Scarlatti the household was bilingual. Anastasia Scarlatti's
first
child
was born on January
12,
1743,
admiration of his original genius and incomparable talents. He died in 1758 at 76 [Burney's dates are clearly incorrect], in very bad circumstances, leaving a wife and two daughters totally unprovided of a subsistence} but the queen extended her liberality to the family of her old master, and settled a pension upon them, nearly equal to Scarlatti's own court appointment." Sacchi, pp. 29-30, says of Farinelli: "Not only did he help his friends while they were living, but also their families after their death. Thus he did with the painter Amigoni, and with Domenico Scarlatti. The first did not live long enough to make a fortune for his dependents, and the second had miserably dis-
gambling the fruits of his talent and the gifts of royal generosity." Appendix II, the accountings prepared for Maria and Domingo Scarlatti
sipated in 24
in
September 1757. 25
Appendix
II,
baptismal notice of Maria Barbara, Domingo, and Antonio
Scarlatti. In that of Rosa,
however, she •
is
named
Il6
'
as a native of Seville.
THE REIGN OF THE tMELOMANES and christened Maria Barbara, in honor of the Princess. The second was also a daughter, born on March 29, 1745, and named Rosa Christina Anasthasia Ramona. The third, Domingo Pio Narciso Christoval Ramon Alexandro Genaro Scarlatti, was born on July 11, 1747. If we were to inspect the complete baptismal records of Scarlatti's nine children, we would find similar lengthy strings of names. Like this one, they would reveal the saint, ancestor, relative, patron, or friend uppermost at the time in the thoughts of the parents. Young Domingo's last four Christian
names are
easily
Romero de
traceable.
who
baptized Fernando Scarlatti Ramona, refers to a brother of was living in Rome, 26 Alexandro to his
friend of the family. It was he
1731.
Domenico's who
Ramon,
in 171 7
and Genaro
latti child,
Cristoval
Torres, executor of Scarlatti's testament and an old
in Seville in
father,
Don
Christoval refers to
like
to the patron saint of Naples.
Antonio, was born on
May
8,
The
last Scar-
1749.
After Domenico's second marriage, Margarita Rossetti Gentili, the mother of Catalina Scarlatti, seems to have remained close to the family and to have played an important part in the bringing
up of her daughter's children. In as
fond of Anastasia's children
fact she
as of
her
seems
own
to
have become
grandchildren.
Many
years later she expressed a decided preference for going to live
with Maria Barbara Scarlatti, the eldest child of the second marriage, rather than with
None
Fernando
Scarlatti,
own grandson. 27
her
of Domenico's children, whether by his
first
or by his
second marriage, was a musician. This represents a notable departure in the Scarlatti dynasty from the generation in which
Domenico had been brought
Did
up.
his children abstain
from
music by his express wish?
The
eldest son of the family,
university of Alcala in
Juan Antonio, had entered the de frima tonwra. He spent
as a clerigo
under the faculty of the
his first year
Aquinas and
1 746
his
second
in the
Summa of St. Thomas On December 31,
study of logic.
1749, he was assigned a benefice in the parish church of Alijar in the archbishopric of Seville.
He
ceeded by his brother Fernando, 26 27
28
Appendix Appendix Appendix
II, II,
II,
died before 1752, and was suc-
who had
taken minor orders. 28
document of January 28, 171 7. document of July 15, 1762. documents of March 2, 1747 and March •
117
'
3,
1752.
THE REIGN OF THE (MELOMANES From
the time of Maria Barbara's birth in 1743, and most proba-
bly from that of Domenico's second marriage, the Scarlatti family
was living
in casas
de administration
in the Calle
de Leganitos, 29
most appropriately situated just off the Plaza San Domingo, the square dedicated to Domenico's namesake. The Scarlatti house was most probably the one with the handsome baroque doorway still standing at No. 35 Calle de Leganitos, and now occupied by auction
rooms
for secondhand furniture. (Fig. 40)
What we may
suppose to be a portrait of Scarlatti was drawn
by Jacopo Amiconi during the period immediately preceding the final great collection of sonatas. It
appears as a detail in a large en-
graving by Joseph Flipart after a painting of Amiconi showing
Fernando VI, Maria Barbara, members of their court, and a among billowing ermine and silks and clouds of what is probably adulation. Holding a sheet of music and trumpet-brandishing angel,
standing beside Farinelli as foremost figure in the musicians'
balcony to the right of the picture
is
a figure in all probability
Domenico Scarlatti. It bears a plausible rethe Lemoine lithograph and to surviving portraits
identifiable as that of
semblance to
of his father. This engraving was published by Farinelli shortly
some commemorative from which we learn that Amiconi's painting had been left
after Amiconi's death in 1752, along with
verses
unfinished
Born
among
his last works.
30
(Figs. 36, 38)
in Venice in 1675, a lifelong friend of Farinelli
and the
26 In the baptismal notices of Maria Barbara and Rosa Scarlatti, the Scarlatti domicile in the Calle de Leganitos is described as "Casas de Dn Joseph Borgonaj" in that of Domingo, as "casas de administracionj" and in that of Antonio, as "Casas de la Diputacion de San Sebastian." At the time of his death, Domenico Scarlatti was domiciled in "Casas de administracion" in the Calle de Leganitos. I
have not yet been able definitely to identify this domicile. Of the houses still standing in the Calle de Leganitos, the Scarlatti house is probably No. 35, or possibly No. 41 or No. 37. However Luise Bauer reports, p. 20, that Scarlatti and his family were domiciled from the beginning of 1750 in the "Calle de San Marcos anejo in casas de D. Sebastian de Espinosa," according to the Matr'tcula de San Marcos anejo de San Martin del ano 17s 1 ^°1« 34/36/54. In Madrid in October 1948 I was unsuccessful in locating this document. 80 Amiconi's painting is not known still to exist. The Calcografia Nacional in Madrid, however, has the original copperplate of Flipart's engraving. Unlike the copperplate in its present state, the copy in the Biblioteca Nacional in Madrid, described in Barcia, p. 316 (it disappeared during the Spanish Civil War), bore at the bottom the arms of Spain and Portugal, and at the sides- the commemorative verses, followed by the note: "Esegue la mente dell'Autore nel comprimento di quest'opera il suo buon amico il Cavallier Carlo Broschi Farinello." •
Il8
'
THE REIGN OF THE iMELOMANES numerous
painter of
portraits of him,
Amiconi came
to Spain in
and to Buen Retiro and Aranjuez. 31 Even before his arrival in Spain he had been associated with Scarlatti, perhaps through Farinelli's mediation. In 1738 he had designed the frontisto design scenery for Farinelli's opera productions
1747
paint in the palaces at
piece for Scarlatti's Essercizi. (Fig. 32) ceiling of an
Amiconi painted the
enchanting oval room at
Aranjuez which was apparently designed as a music room. In the not utterly ruined by the hideous Empire
marble pavement,
still
furniture imposed
upon
—
musical instruments
accompanied by reproduced
it
by Fernando VII, are
own manuscript
its
In
in colored marbles.
inlaid vignettes of
and oboes. Each instrument
violins, horns,
is
part of a minuet meticulously this
room, on a harpsichord
as
elaborate as that depicted on the title page of the Essercizi, Scarlatti
or the
Queen may have performed
A comparison of Scarlatti with
—Amiconi,
Tiepolo, and
Bourbons
to the Spanish
vocative.
Amiconi
great talents are
the sonatas.
three of the greatest court painters
—
Goya is proown very
the court painter par excellence \ his
is
submerged under the conventional
rhetoric of the
occasion. Tiepolo, for all his unfailing urbanity, never loses his
own
personality, never sacrifices his
detail.
Goya
Later he
is
is
an adequate court painter only in his earliest work.
swept away by the force of his
torrent of his
own
ternal submission. three.
His
powers of observing living
own
personality,
by the
sentiments, and can no longer recognize exScarlatti
lies
somewhere midway among the and light-
courtliness resembles that of Amiconi, his wit
ness that of Tiepolo,
and
his
genuine attachment to popular sources
that of Goya's tapestry cartoons. I doubt that Scarlatti ever thought
consciously in terms similar to those of the later Goya. scious artistic conventions
Before the
artist
of the eighteenth-century Spanish court lay
an enormous gulf between what consciously and to see
and what
His con-
were undoubtedly those of Amiconi.
as a private
human being
officially
he chose
of heightened sensibility
and perceptions he cannot have helped observing. The same gulf lies
between
official
ceremony and inner personal
life
on the part
of royal personages, between public announcements and private 81
Ballesteros, Vol. VI, p.
461; Cotarelo, pp. 127-128; Thieme-Becker. •
119
'
REIGN OF THE iMELOMANES
b-
^
*
\
S=
-M/JB iEi
F
in original
**
D
in
f-
original
Fourth movement of "Tocata 10" "del Sig. Doming. Escarlati." Biblioteca da Universidade de Coimbra: MS 58. K. 94
Ex.
I.
•
150
'
ROYAL SONATAS Unlike nearly
first
the later Scarlatti pieces, the
all
first
two move-
"Tocata" (K. 85 and 82) have no double bar. The might easily represent the kind of music Scarlatti was playing
ments of
this
when he competed with Handel
at
Cardinal Ottoboni's in Rome.
example of the extent of the virtuoso keyboard technique on which he, and Handel for that matter, had been nurtured. In fact this piece might easily be mistaken for one It furnishes a perfect
The
of Handel's own. in
second
the Coimbra manuscript.
Marcello and
J. S.
movement (K. 82) is called a "Fuga" As in similar works of Benedetto
Bach, this brilliant harpsichord approximation
of the string orchestra has
much
in
common
style of the early eighteenth century
with the international
which stems from Vivaldi's
concertos. In both these pieces Scarlatti's two-voice writing dissolves itself at
cadences into brilliant arpeggiation that already anticipates
the Essercizi.
In the Minuet of the "Tocata" and in the minuets and small pieces published
by Roseingrave (K. 32, 34, 40, 42)
Scarlatti's
Neapolitan origins betray themselves in sudden changes of major
minor and
thirds to tervals.
in
chromatic alteration of certain obvious
The Roseingrave
the music that Scarlatti was writing in 1 7 14 for the
Queen
Rome
of Poland.
Further evidence of
found
in-
from between 1708 and
pieces, for that matter, differ little
Scarlatti's early kinship
with
Handel
is
to be
G
major Capriccio (K. 63). It might be a piece by Handel but for an asperity that is even more apparent in the acin the
ciaccaturas of the
D
minor Gavotta (K. 64). These two
slightly
expand the keyboard
such as
we have
Scarlatti
A
style of the simple dance
seen in Roseingrave.
Among
pieces
movement
the early works of
they furnish the most elementary prototypes of the sonata.
further expansion of the binary dance
is
to be
found
in
the
G
minor Allemande movement of Sonata 35. This piece, by the way, might easily be attributed to almost any early eighteenth-century composer. In tinue)
all
of these pieces there
is
a strong feeling for basso con-
or for imitating a solo instrument accompanied by continuo.
Echoes of this feeling persist in the two-movement sonatas K. 77 and 83, and in the partially figured bass of the second Minuet of Sonata 73, but
movement
it
comes frankly
to light in a series of five multi-
sonatas for one upper voice with figured bass (K. 81, •
151
•
i
'
1
ROYAL SONATAS 88, 89, 90, 91
j
Although not
the figures have been omitted in Longo's edition). specified, the
upper voice may have been intended
for a solo instrument, probably a violin, with continuo. This hypoth-
substantiated by the fact that, unlike most keyboard pieces,
esis is
these have the
same number and character of movements
as the
average eighteenth-century instrumental "solo" with continuo
companiment.
On
the other hand they
may
ac-
possibly have been
intended, like similar pieces or passages by Pasquini, Alessandro Scarlatti,
Marcello, Rutini, Telemann, and
Bach, as simple
J. S.
two-voice pieces for keyboard, of which the harmonies were to be filled
up by the player. 7 For neither keyboard alone nor solo
ment with continuo, however, can
these
instru-
sonatas be considered
genuinely idiomatic. Minuet
F—
—
—
'
3=r—~K
•-
1
$*-«
I
.*-N
[>
4
bF
V* -9
-«-v
"f=
rnd
'
>
r
j
^.^
•
-•
—
^
"7^
n
M
tr
4 -^-
»
*^f ^
Ex.
2.
Venice xiv 45b. K. 80
[The manuscript 7
leaves
See Gerstenberg, p.
some doubt about the exact placing of
96m
152
'
the
slurs.]
ROYAL SONATAS The
foregoing piece with figured bass, hitherto unnoticed,
be found in Venice xiv, forming the second
movement
is
to
of Sonata
45 (K. 79). It was omitted by Longo in his edition and has remained unpublished. (Example 2) All of the pieces we have discussed so far bear significance only in retrospect.
For the most part they represent tendencies that became largely unrecognizable in
Scarlatti later discarded, or that his later works.
Only the
form can be con-
pieces in binary sonata
subsequent development.
Before
sidered to point to
Scarlatti's
turning to them,
us examine the few surviving examples of
Scarlatti's
let
keyboard fugue, a form he almost entirely abandoned
after reaching his maturity as a harpsichord composer.
THE FUGUES Three of Domenico's
fugues (K. 58 and 93; K. 41, not published by Longo) appear to antedate the Cat Fugue of the five
Essercizi. (K. 30) All three of
them might have been conceived
for
organ, despite their irregularities in part writing and their indication of the repeated notes necessary for sustaining the harpsichord basses in the final
pedal points.
They
represent the orthodox tradition of
from the published
the Italian eighteenth-century organ fugue,
collections of Aresti to those fugues in Clementi's Practical
ny which are
For most
Italians of Scarlatti's time the
keyboard fugue was a
manner, not a structural principle. Except for a few sages, the
Harmo-
falsely attributed to Frescobaldi.
melodic structure of the counterpoint
only as a kind of animated continuo,
filling
salient pas-
lies inert
and
acts
out the harmonic
framework and decorating chords or the two-part movement of bass
and
treble.
power inherent
One
feels
none of the dynamic force and shaping
in the subject itself, that force
which makes every
fugue of Bach or of Frescobaldi or Froberger assume an individual character.
There harmony* and counterpoint enter
organic collaboration.
handled
Here way without
into full
and
the melodic subject material can be
in a conventional
attention to
its
organic
in-
corporation into the structure. For an Italian architect, a colonnade is
not necessarily a structural element.
surface. •
153
•
It
is
a
decoration of a
ROYAL SONATAS It
is
much
not so
the conduct of parts in these fugues or in the
implied polyphony of the sonatas that tary vertical clashes of passing or basic
is
important, as the
harmony, and the shadings of sound
duced by doublings or
momen-
changing notes with the simple in that
harmony
pro-
or thinning out of notes that do not
filling
play an essential role in the fundamental two-voice structure.
The
Essercizi
end with a fugue
some undetermined period tury, has been
known
at the
as the
Cat Fugue. (Longo traces the feline
allusion to Clementi's Practical
on the
in G minor (K. 30) which, since beginning of the nineteenth cen-
Harmony. Another
title-page of an edition of the
showing four
cats variously
is
found
to be
W. H.
fugue by
Callcott
engaged about a pianoforte.) 8
might be remarked that only a lightfooted and accurate
It
cat,
or possibly a kitten, could refrain from involuntary neighboring tones on the
may,
flats
and sharps of the fugue
Scarlatti's choice of bizarre intervals
baldi tradition, even
if
his
Be
subject. is
that as
it
quite in the Fresco-
handling of the material
is
not. Scarlatti's
fugues are dominated by the vertical harmony of basso continuo,
over which a surface decoration in fugal style
is
applied like a
stucco fagade over the bare brick of an Italian church. This fact less
obvious in the Cat
Fugue because
is
of the broken-up nature of
the subject, which superficially conceals the conventionality of the
harmonic progressions. Actually the subject of the Cat Fugue
basic is
not designed for melodic contrapuntal treatment ;
it
serves to
outline the basic harmonies on which, with various modulations, this piece
basic
is
built (i.e., I, IV, V,
harmonies
is
laid
a
IV
of V,
V
of V, V).
Over
these
magnificent tangle of passing notes,
suspensions, syncopations, bizarre intervals,
and changes of melodic
direction which gives an impression of richness far in excess of the actual contrapuntal content. Scarlatti tends frequently to revert to
There are seldom more than three real parts. When a is present, it rarely moves in a conventional manner, but is likely to drop out without notice and to reenter with equal irregularity. Although the texture is rich, the principal rhythmic activity seldom involves more than the two main voices. two
voices.
fourth part
After the Cat Fugue of the Essercizij Scarlatti seems to have written only one 8
more keyboard fugue (K. 417). To the
See Newton, p. 15611. •
I54
'
earlier
ROYAL SONATAS fugues like
it
adds nothing newj in
fact
broken basses of Alessandro
even reverts to the Alberti-
For Domenico
the fugue was largely an old-fashioned and archaistic
Scarlatti
form.
it
Scarlatti's fugues.
He saw in it none of the
principal vehicle for
possibilities that
expanding the language of
made
it
J. S.
Bach's
tonality.
EARLY SONATAS Most sonatas
They
of the early binary pieces that can be regarded as real
and not mere dance movements are unmistakable
lie
relatively close to the Essercizi in style. Seen
selves they
seem mature, yet
if
we
turn the pages of Longo's
edition to a later sonata in which every note
and
flexibility,
is
infused with life
these early sonatas seem rigid and inert by com-
parison. Such a piece, for all
Here
Scarlatti.
by them-
its
and
fantasy
vitality, is
Sonata 31.
can be seen such features of the Essercizi as repeated phrases,
contrasting figurations, leaping arpeggios, expanding
and diminish-
ing intervals, and octave doublings. But
curiously con-
stricted.
and
The
its
range
is
arpeggios turn back on themselves (measures 12, 28)
scale passages are
ures 1-4, 6-8 ).
9
broken by transpositions of octave (meas-
Thematic material
is
altered to
fit
what was obvi-
ously a one-manual instrument with four octaves only, from c
8
(compare measures
Yet few of the as clearly as this.
1-2
C
to
with measures 54-55).
Scarlatti
show
sonatas
their musical ancestry
In the heavy chords are to be found vestiges from
the continuo style of the filling up of
harmony (measures
1-24).
In later Scarlatti sonatas these disappear completely; chords are
used only for effects of color.
show
traces of the
Scarlatti
Some
of the figurations of this sonata
keyboard styles of Pasquini and Alessandro
(compare for example the "batterie"
with some of Alessandro's toccatas).
in
measures 43-47
The rough chord
writing
(measures 48-52) perpetuates the tradition of Diruta's "sonatori di ballo," but the written-out
diminuendo ending of both halves
foreshadows similar treatment
in later sonatas.
Another sonata of about the same period a prototype for Essercizi
is
K. 39.
It
looks like
24 (K. 24). Although Scarlatti uses
full
9 This is true of the notation of Venice xiv 57, but Roseingrave's version expands these figures, continuing the scale passage of measure 2 downward into measure 4, and running the last half of measure 12 an octave higher, etc.
*
155
'
ROYAL SONATAS (measures 49-50) and chords complete with the third (measures 25-26) such as are generally replaced in the later sonatas
closes here
by unison
closes,
he already tapers
his phrase
endings by thinning
chords. This sonata might well have been written for a two-manual
instrument, although
its
"batteries" are such as were often executed
on one manual.
A
few more sonatas appear
to antedate the Essercizi, or at least
to represent Scarlatti's earliest style. their probable chronology in
Longo's edition with
and not
When
in their
seen in the light of
confusing juxtaposition
later sonatas, their stylistic features
become
so readily apparent in the actual music as to render further discus-
sion unnecessary here.
THE ESSERCIZI In the thirty sonatas of the Essercizi fer Gravicembalo (1738) there is little that can be looked at retrospectively. All the elements of Scarlatti's style are fused into a consistent musical language so
own
completely his
that comparisons with earlier music or with
the music of contemporary composers serve only to heighten an appreciation of Scarlatti's originality.
Everywhere spacing which istics.
in the Essercizi
is
recognizable that keen sense of
is
one of Domenico
Scarlatti's
most
salient character-
Small intervals alternate with large; steps are opposed to
leaps j notes that remain static as repeated notes or pedal points set off the
melodic movement of other
parts.
register extend the expressive interval
into the
One
Sudden
leaps
beyond the
and
shifts of
limits of voice
realm of imaginary dance. of Scarlatti's favorite melodic devices, even dearer to
than to his contemporaries,
is
him
the progressive expansion of intervals
which makes one voice suddenly
split in
two. Generally one half
remains stationary while the other half moves away from
it
like a
dancer measuring off the space of a stage against the stationary spinning of his partner in the middle. This perpetual splitting off of one or two voices into the outlining of other voices produces a
The
frequent confusion of identity.
forming themselves,
as if in a
voices are continually trans-
dream. They desert their own planes
to outline other planes, to hint, as
it
were, at the existence of other
personages, to indicate depth as well as outline of space, in a con.
56
•
ROYAL SONATAS tinually shifting perspective in which these imaginary personages
and disappearing. The thoughts of
are unpredictably appearing
drama become
the personages in the
as real as the personages
themselves. Scarlatti's
harmonic structure
space, particularly in the
is
allied with his sense of intervallic
movement
of his basses.
The
cadential
formulas that outline already assured areas of tonality are full of leaping
movements
certain tonality,
move
and
of fourths
fifths.
modulatory passages or
In the moments of un-
transitions, the basses often
in cautious stepwise progressions like a fencer jockeying for
position, cling to pedal points like a quivering cat about to spring, or
undulate from side to side of a dominant like a dancer maintaining
movement
in a limited space.
movement
Acting on another level, imperceptible in lodic intervals,
is
orients the widest
or in me-
the inexorable magnetic force of tonality which
movements and most
distant modulations. It
is
the dancer's sense of direction that communicates itself to the onlooker;
it is
the unseen pull of harmonic tensions producing that
mysterious reaction of the inner organs which renders unnecessary the equivalent of
On
map
or compass.
both a melodic and harmonic level, Scarlatti has another
trick of dispersing his material
Like a baroque
—the
architect, in places
use of the repeated phrase.
where one column
two or even
for the structure, Scarlatti puts
will suffice
three, to achieve a sense
of unity in multiplicity, to allow the gradations imposed by the perspective or
by lighting
repeated phrase or a
its
is
to create a sense of richness.
thrown back
inflection puts
it
Sometimes the
into a different plane, like an echo,
under a different
Frequently, however,
light.
group of repeated phrases will compose
itself into one.
In this case
nothing can be more destructive in performance than the relentless
Many
application of echo dynamics.
ment can acquire
a repeated two-measure frag-
far greater significance
half of a /o«r-measure phrase than
when
if it it
functions as the last
functions merely as a
repetition of a /wo-measure phrase.
Both with
his
repeated and his unrepeated phrases Scarlatti often
establishes a remarkable contrast is
stationary
and what
is
between what
moving. In
its
in the larger sense
derivation from the dance,
the phrase often deserts the usually regular periods of *
157
'
Western
ROYAL SONATAS decorum,
as in Essercizi 6
with one of
(K. 6), to answer a four-measure phrase
continue the next with five and three, and to
five, to
conclude with twelve
(first half, after
measure
8).
Later a series of
answered by one of seven (measures 54-60). Thus by massing short phrases in contrast with extended passages, four-measure phrases
is
by asymmetrical juxtaposition of irregular phrases, by extensions and contractions he achieves miraculous rhythmic effects. Scarlatti's
melodic outlinings tend to dissolve into impressionistic
suggestions of a multiplicity of planes. Likewise his harmonic figures extend, retract,
like the movements of Major chords may suddenly shrink into
and blur themselves
a revolving kaleidoscope.
minor or minor expand
into
major;
common
consonances
may
un-
predictably be enriched by chromatic alteration, by diatonic dis-
placement, or by added neighboring tones.
They may be
posed to form dissonances that dissolve into consonances
A
unorthodox fashion. tonal function
may
a pedal point.
At
nies
may
all
or of a given
fundamental harmo-
certain tonal crossroads the
sound together. At cadences the clear resolutions of
element to the
Cadences
may
final tonic
may
resolution, or they
be blurred by a carryover of a dominant note by means of a
trill
or an appoggia-
be expanded by long preparation and reiterated
may
be contracted by a jamming together of
the dominant and subdominant. Finality
moved from
harmony
be allowed to stray into the next, or to form
the dominant to tonic
tura.
strand of a given
super-
in quite
may sometimes
be
re-
cadences by simply superposing dominant and tonic.
For Scarlatti's newly formed style the fixed schemes of conttnuo harmony will no longer do. The basic elements of the harmonic language must be rendered
infinitely flexible
;
larger constructions
can no longer be tied to simple harmonic or modal formulas; the-
matic interrelationships and contrapuntal structure will no longer suffice;
the unifying, clarifying, and fundamental force must be a
fully developed language of tonality. Scarlatti's harmonies are
no
longer chords or meeting points of combined melodies; they are
degrees of tonality. For this reason they develop a behavior entirely their Scarlatti's
own.
It
harmony
is
natural in the light and airy texture of
same laws and Rameau, that his basses basses and not like the upper
that his chords be not subject to the
of gravity, so to speak, as those of Bach
transposed to upper parts behave like •
158
•
ROYAL SONATAS seem to be. (Witness, for example, his habit of resolving a dominant seventh a fourth downwards, like a subdominant bass moving to the tonic.) In Scarlatti's architecture stone need not be piled on stone any more than in Juvarra's theater drawings stresses and tensions, balances and counterweights will hold the structure parts they
;
upright.
No
eighteenth-century treatise on thoroughbass, nor any nine-
harmony book,
teenth-century
ever
will
"explain"
a
Scarlatti
10 sonata properly or account for the "original and happy freaks"
that are really not freaks at all but parts of a perfectly consistent
and
unified musical language.
Although
keyboard treatment
his
is
but rudimentary by com-
parison with the sonatas that follow, and although his formal constructions are
still
relatively simple, in the Essercizi Scarlatti
has achieved an unprecedented
flexibility,
not only in manipulating
harpsichord sound, but in lending variety and volatility to the
Keyboard music
ordinarily static binary form.
of the early eight-
eenth century hardly ever expresses more than one character or
mood
within a single movement, especially within dance move-
ments or the movements derived from binary dance forms. Only
movements with
the free fantasy, the toccata, and the
French ouverture move from one mood
sections like the
or undergo gradual changes in character. piece
apparent in the
is
page or
first
The mood
in the first
contrasting to another
of the entire
few bars of the
average early eighteenth-century concerto, sonata, or dance move-
ment.
The
undergoes separate tained.
rest
is
little
movements
character, once established,
alteration.
The moods
within
of a suite, sonata, or concerto are self-con-
Like allegorical figures
in their
A
only complement./
development or
own unchanging
in isolated niches they are absorbed
essence. In Scarlatti's Essercizi
we
see
taking place the process by which an ever widening range of
nuances
is
introduced into the expression of a single movement.
Although some and dramatic
pieces are entirely unified, others are given sharp
contrasts,
while
others shift
still
from gaiety
to
sadness and announce lyric cantabiles that scamper off in a burst of laughter. 10
Burney,
A General
History of Music, Vol. *
159
*
II, p.
706.
ROYAL SONATAS Iberian and Italian elements appear to be almost equally bal-
Some
anced in the Essercizi.
of the pieces are as dry and bony as
any sunbaked Mediterranean landscape. Others alternate echoes of Italian opera and
mock
lyric
tears in descending chromatics
with scherzando leaps and arpeggios. In some sonatas the brittle
and intoxicating rhythms of the Spanish dance are heightened by the wail of a harsh flamenco voice accompanied by guitars tensions
and
castanets
and punctuated by shouts of
of stamping feet.
A
ole
and the
chestras of small Spanish towns with their shrill
breathy overblown
flutes,
wind instruments,
squealing provincial oboes, and percussive
basses like tight drums, or almost like cannon shots.
others a jangling of tambourines
thump
Sometimes
in
interrupted by a resounding
is
of the guitar.
(K. 24)
Essercizi 24
This
cross accents
sonata like Essercizi 20 (K. 20) recalls the or-
is
Scarlatti at his
a veritable orgy of brilliant sound.
is
most abandoned,
at his coarsest,
and
at
an
undeniable perfection, despite the puerility of this sonata, by comparison with the measured and expressive later sonatas. In the light of harpsichord music up to 1738 this sonata
The harpsichord, is made to imitate
paralleled sound effect.
and supremely
itself,
Spanish popular
It
fair.
is
a miracle of un-
while remaining superbly the whole orchestra of a
no longer a solo instrument
is
;
it
is
a
crowd.
There
is
no limit
harpsichord.
Many
to the
of
imaginary sounds evoked by
them extend
far
Scarlatti's
beyond the domain of
musical instruments into an impressionistic transcription of the
sounds of daily
life,
of street cries, church bells, tapping of danc-
ing feet, fireworks, artillery, in such varied and fluid form that any
attempt to describe them precisely in words results in colorful and embarrassing nonsense. For me, nearly
some root
in the experiences
fantasies of the
dream world, but
be stated only in music. scenarios which I
may
all of Scarlatti's
and impressions of
The
music has
real life or in the
in a fashion that ultimately can
notions and outwardly ridiculous
suggest to myself or to a pupil in order to
heighten a sense of the character of a piece bear the same relations to latti's
performance
as did the original real life stimulus to Scar-
composition. After they have served their purpose they must •
160
•
ROYAL SONATAS be forgotten in favor of the real music.
When
perpetuated on pa-
per they become sad and dangerously misleading caricatures.
The sense j
no
Scarlatti sonatas tell if
story, at least not in a narrative
they did, they would always have to
They
each half.
once in
tell it twice,
have no exact visual or verbal equivalents, but they
are an endlessly varied record of experience on constantly shifting
and remembered sound. They
levels of gesture, dance, declamation,
ridicule translation into words, but, with all the vitality that
them, they
Among
the
is
in
any attribution of abstractness.
resist
miscellaneous pieces that
Queen's manuscript (Venice xiv)
were copied
contemporary with the Essercizi. At
that are probably
Among them however
represent similar tendencies.
the
into
1742 are a number of sonatas
in
least
they
are four an-
dante movements (Sonatas 52, 69, 87, 92), the earliest slow move-
ments that we have seen among the harpsichord for those in the continuo sonatas. is
marked Moderato,
all
(
pieces,
except
Except for the Cat Fugue which
the pieces in the Essercizi are
marked
Allegro or Presto, save number 11, which has no tempo indica-
They show
tion.)
a style of rich
and irregular
three-
and four-part
writing that has only been hinted at in Sonata 8 of the Essercizi
An
(K. 8).
almost Brahmsian sample will be found
measures 48-52. Similar pedal-points appear
Sonata 52
in
Sonata 84 in
in
,
C
minor, measures 52-60. These sonatas serve to demonstrate the ex-
from the fleshy full realization of and muscular delineations of the
tent of Scarlatti's transition
continuo later
harmony
to the lean
slow movements.
THE FLAMBOYANT PERIOD AND THE EASY PIECES Scarlatti
easier
promised the players of
and more varied
The
style.
to follow the Essercizi are
his Essercizi
some
pieces in an
pieces that appear immediately
anything but easy. These are
virtuoso pieces par excellence.
They
Scarlatti's
revel in the rich, brilliant
sound already intimated by the later sonatas of the Essercizi, and in what the German musicologists call Spielfreude. The most extravagant handcrossings in sonatas. In
This
is
them
what
I
Scarlatti's
am tempted
all
Scarlatti are to be
keyboard technique to call Scarlatti's
Scarlatti's feats of acrobatics •
stem 161
as
•
found
attains full
in these
growth.
flamboyant period.
much from
a love of the
ROYAL SONATAS instrument and from an intense joy in playing to
show
chord
He
off.
becomes so much absorbed
as
it
from a
desire
dance his harpsi-
in the
leading that his entire body participates, in gestures that
is
speaking are quite unnecessary, in risks that like those of a
strictly
sportsman lend intensity to the moment. Such a piece
is
Sonata
120. It has the wildest handcrossings of any Scarlatti sonata.
only does the
left
hand continually
instrument, but the right reaches
Not
cross over to the top of the
down
to the lowest bass.
At times
both are en route at the same time, to the peril of the player, and the optical confusion of the onlooker. in this piece
The most
difficult
passages
could perfectly well be played without crossing the
hands, but the excitement would be
The
lost.
player would no
artist, and the would no longer hold his breath in astonishment. (Fortunately for the mere harpsichordist, a note missed does not necessarily mean a broken neck. My readers may
longer share the glorious dangers of the trapeze hearer, or rather witness,
me
allow of
my
to confide that
life
graph recording of of difficulty in
one of the most disappointing experiences
was the making of an absolutely note-perfect phonothis piece. I
had disappeared.
found on hearing
It felt like
it
that all sense
going down a
ski
jump
an elevator.)
Some
of these "flamboyant" sonatas were copied into the Queen's
volume of 1742 (Venice xiv; the first fifteen sonatas, K. 43-57), and a few overlap into the first two volumes of the Queen's series proper (Venice and 11), but most of them are to be found in the volume that was copied out for the Queen in 1749 (Venice xv) and a related volume (now in the British Museum) that once 1
belonged to one of the organists of the Spanish royal chapel
(Worgan manuscript
42, 43, 44 K. 142, 143, 144). It is in the volume of this period (Venice xv) that the pairwise arrangement of sonatas which dominates the later volumes first makes its appearance. ;
principal
In addition to expanding his keyboard technique to
its
fullest
resources in this period, Scarlatti reinforces the foundations of the peculiar
and consistent harmonic style that he invented in the and establishes such principles of form as were not al-
Essercizi,
ready apparent.
what
To
I shall call
this
the
period belongs the
Open Form, •
162
first
real flowering of
the form with discarded intro•
ROYAL SONATAS two halves, and with
duction, with asymmetrical balance of the
an excursion in the second half that develops previously stated
themes or introduces new material.
we
In a piece like Sonata g6 (Venice xv 6)
from the
pletely liberated
restrictions of the
dance form with which he started.
He
com-
see Scarlatti
symmetrical binary
has retained only the sym-
metrical ends of each half as foils for an unprecedented display of
spontaneous fantasy.
From
here on, what happens in the opening
sections of each half of a Scarlatti sonata
free
A
and
is
entirely a matter of
and not a restriction of mere formality. xv and 18 Venice 19 (K. 775 and 776) gives some
spontaneous choice,
glance at
idea of the increasing variety of Scarlatti's formal treatment, but it
shows nothing
in
as easy to play or
comparison to what
their variations in
gives
The
way
old unity of
mood
to a spontaneous
freer,
almost
result.
is a change dynamic conception of
Thus
or the old series of set con-
growing of a mood out of previ-
ous material, whether in answer to
an inevitable
is
the Essercizi to the later sonatas
relatively static to an increasingly
musical form. trasts,
(It
form and tonal balance.)
The change from from a
lies in store!
copy out completely these sonatas as to describe
it,
as a
complement
to
it,
or as
the second halves of sonatas become
and the tendency toward free interludes or excursions
after
the double bars of sonatas corresponds to a tendency toward bal-
ancing and complementing of
mood
rather than of form.
The
sequence and balance of ideas are poetical rather than logical.
At about the same time virtuosity to
its
been working players
who
that Scarlatti
was carrying keyboard
heights in the flamboyant sonatas he appears to have
in the opposite direction as well.
As
could not "vanquish the peculiar
if
to console the
difficulties
of ex-
ecution" of the Essercizi and the flamboyant sonatas, Scarlatti com-
posed a series of pieces that seem almost childishly simple by com-
These are the promised pieces in "easier style." They are in the first two volumes of the Queen's manuscripts (Venice and 11). Were not the Queen known to have been a brilliant performer, it would almost seem as if Scarlatti, cowering under a violent outburst of royal displeasure at the perverse dif-
parison. to be
found 1
ficulties
of the sonatas in Venice xv, had willfully discarded his
choicest effects in an effort to satisfy a •
163
•
command
for simplicity.
ROYAL SONATAS These two volumes would provide
a
good hunting ground
for
an anthologist of easy sonatas. In the Essercizi and their varied treatment of relatively simple forms, in the flamboyant sonatas with their virtuosity and ex-
pansion of formal freedom, and in the simple sonatas, the main currents were established which persisted throughout the rest of
harpsichord compositions.
Scarlatti's trical
and
free
The
contrast between
symme-
forms and between flamboyant and modest style
and
later
and a unified but infinitely varied style is achieved, in which keyboard virtuosity is infused with sobriety, and form is conditioned more and more by internal thematic becomes
less
less striking,
and by the forces of tonality. few exceptions the flamboyant period marks the outermost boundary of the music by which Scarlatti was known 11 His reputation throughout the eightoutside the Spanish court. eenth century and a good portion of the nineteenth was based on these pieces and the Essercizi. This music is externally rich, but relationships
With
it
a very
has not the internal richness of the later sonatas.
THE MIDDLE PERIOD With
the sonatas of Venice in and iv (i 752-1 753)
we approach
the fully mature Scarlatti. In his greatly extended scope of ex-
new
makes itself felt, even a certain quality There are more slow movements, especially those used as the introductory members of pairs of sonatas. Startling as are many of these sonatas, in them the flamboyancy of the earlier pieces has been tempered by a certain mellowness. In the sonatas of the earlier period Scarlatti's keyboard technique had reached its heights. Now his command of harpsichord sound becomes even more mellowed and refined. In the sonatas of this period he reaches pression a
lyric vein
of introversion.
the fullest extent of his system of modulations. In the earlier sonatas he completed his harmonic vocabulary j in these he perfects his
command
of tonality.
Without deserting the
harmonic language of the earlier sonatas, sibilities
and succeeds
in
Scarlatti
consistent
expands
its
pos-
making conventional harmony sound even
Appendix V C, for lists of the contents of the eighteenth-century printed Only with the publication of Czerny's edition of two hundred sonatas (Five, however, are not by Domenico) in 1839 did a larger number of Scarlatti's later sonatas become available to the public. (See Appendix V D 1.) 11
See
editions.
*
164
'
stranger than before. alterations
ROYAL SONATAS He greatly extends
minors.
More and more
scheme.
When
now
he
frequently he calls on an extended tonal
Scarlatti wishes to startle or astonish the listener,
does so through sudden turns of modulation or audacious
tonal constructions.
more and more poser.
the structural use of
between major and minor, and of relative majors and
A
to
The
virtuosity of the keyboard player tends
become absorbed
in the virtuosity of the
com-
certain crassness perceptible in the sonatas of Venice
xv
has completely disappeared. In Scarlatti's new-found freedom the sonata form has become an agent rather than a vessel of ex-
seemed set and preestablished in the Scarlatti more and more absorbed in a dynamism that makes
pression. All that
sonata becomes
each form seem newly invented.
The very
first
sonata of Venice in (K. 206)
is
one of those
in-
creasingly frequent pieces which stretch themselves over a variety
of moods, not consciously earlier sonatas, but as
if
and almost
some of the
cynically, as in
they were being experienced for the
first
time and not willfully and rationally ordered in retrospect. Scarlatti
takes the listener into his confidence.
ing to an
enced ;
official,
we
No
longer are
carefully prepared version of
are experiencing
with him.
it
When
we
listen-
what he has experiafter a
sunny open-
ing he suddenly throws a cloud over the music at measure 17 by
modulating from the dominant of
we
E
major
to that of
We
can only dimly prefigure the outcome.
E
flat
minor,
forget for an in-
form as such. Poetic symmetry, as if the passionately expanded and altered termination of the piece in minor were the only real form of expression. We are caught up in experience, not protected from it by an orderly, predigested philosophy. The sonatas of Venice in and iv are so varied that I would like to interrupt analysis and commentary to play them all. They are warm, free, and direct communications of experience. If there should remain any doubt that Scarlatti has made of the binary stant the serene predictability of the binary
feeling has even sprung the bonds of formal
sonata an infinitely flexible vehicle of poetic expression rather than a formalistic construction, sonatas
24
260, 261, 262, 26$y 264) should dispel
to 29 of Venice iv (K. 259, it.
They have
tration of Scarlatti's last sonatas, but they at
which earlier sonatas have only hinted. •
165
•
have a I
not the concen-
lyric
mellowness
can explain on paper
ROYAL SONATAS all
the modulations of Sonata 260, but I have never played
out feeling each time that a miracle has taken place. tions that Scarlatti once
it
with
The modula-
used only to surprise have here become
the inner core of the poetic imagery that he uses to
move and
to
transport. I
learned some of the sonatas of this period shortly after I had
been at Aranjuez, and they have never since been disassociated
from the memory of the evening
I
spent there walking in the
Jardtn de la Isla near the palace.
I
followed some of the same
paths Scarlatti must have trod, past crumbling marble fountains trees that were already old in his time. The gentle seemed pervaded by a soft melancholy that even in Scarlatti's time cannot have been entirely dispelled by faultless maintenance of the gardens, by the newness of palace installations, and by the presence of swarms of courtiers and guards. Within hearing everywhere was the sound of running water from the diverted branch of the Tagus which separates the garden from the palace
shaded by twilight
and makes of it an island. As the darkness deepened and I left the palace grounds, I remembered the manuscript of Farinelli which I had been reading a few days before in the royal palace in Madrid. I remembered his
terrace
loving account of the June evenings of embarkations and music at
Aranjuez and the drawings representing the royal
over the Tagus.
I
remembered
would blaze among
startled
From
from the
calls
The melancholy
I
and torches
would be from the military band, and the quiet
elms by salvoes of
alleys of ancient
the terrace where
fleet scattered
was the hour when candles
crystal prisms in the palace
minate the garden paths. rupted by trumpet
that this
was dining
I
illu-
inter-
birds
artillery.
might have seen the royal
barges rounding the bend of the Tagus, their lanterns mirrored in the rippling river, and in the newly established quiet I might have
heard the voice of Farinelli soaring over the water. Presently the
might have begun to rise and the sky to fill with showering stars. As the echoes of their reports died away through the darkened valley, I might again have heard Farinelli, the dis-
rockets
multicolored
tant tinkling of the
horns.
Queen's harpsichord, or the royal hunting
12
12 I heard only Liebestraum blaring from a nearby radio. Yet Liszt better than anyone else would have understood all this. His was the same combination
•
166
'
ROYAL SONATAS Since that evening
Aranjuez
I
have fancied that
dozens of the later
in
I
heard echoes from
Scarlatti sonatas.
There are the
daytime or twilight echoes, with their evocations of a gentle nostal-
and the evening or night pieces full of regal splendor, and the coruscations of fireworks, and there are the pieces that echo the fanfares and stately cavalcades of the royal processions, or choruses of the royal hunting horns, as if from the distant woods of Aranjuez or the Pardo. But, as we have seen, Scarlatti's sources of inspiration since the Essercizi are by no means confined to the palace grounds. No comgic calm,
military bands,
more keenly the impact of Spanish popular music or more completely to the demon that inhabits every Spanish dancer's breast. Burney tells us that Scarlatti "imitated the melody of tunes sung by carriers, muleteers, and common people." 13 poser has felt has yielded
Perhaps Venice in 3 (K. 208) is Scarlatti's impression of the vocal arabesques spun over random guitar chords in long arcades of extended breath, such
as are still to
southern Spain. This
is
among
be heard
the gypsies of
courtly flamenco music, rendered elegant
and suitable for the confines of the royal palace, as were its players and singers when Goya brought them into his tapestry cartoons a few years later. (Figs. 42-44) Its companion piece (Venice 4, K. 2og) is a jota. Under this dizzying whirl of twinkling feet, stamping heels, and shrill village
m
instruments the inevitable castanets are in the built-up
not actually heard
felt if
crescendos of rhythmic acceleration which culminate
at the trills in measure 45 and measure 61. from the gavottes and minuets that harpsichord composers were writing in other European courts. The Spanish Bourbons were separated from Versailles by more than the in a clattering
This
is
whir
a far cry
Pyrenees.
But
Scarlatti's recollections of
confined to Spain.
My
popular music are by no means
Portuguese friends
me
tell
that Venice iv
3 (K. 238) resembles a folksong from the Estremadura. One can easily imagine it executed out of doors by wind instruments, by flutes,
oboes and oboes da
caccia,
and bassoons.
of delicacy, melancholy splendor, and fanache.
he would have it
summoned
With
a
Its
mate (Venice
charming regal gesture
the waiter to turn off the radio, while
with a sullen humility bred of a later age. 13 Burney, The Present State of Music in Cermany, Vol. •
.67
•
iv
I,
I
only ignored
pp. 247-249.
ROYAL SONATAS wind instruments, with overblown and drums marking the basses and underlining the dominant rhythmic figure. I have heard similar combinations of dry, partly muffled percussion and shrill sounds accompanying the processions of gigantes y cabezas in Segovia with their masked figures stalking high on stilts and small urchins completely concealed by enormous painted papier-mache heads that 4,
K. 239)
likewise recalls
sforzatos (measure 30, etc.)
bob about their
feet.
In the succeeding volumes of the Queen's manuscript (Venice v-vn,
1
753-1 754) the pieces for the most part are thinner,
restrained, almost as
if
more
were unconsciously gathering ener-
Scarlatti
The keyboard techand there are handcrossings in only two of the sonatas (Venice vn 23 and 27). Like Venice 1 and 11, these volumes would make an excellent hunting ground for an gy for the nique
is
final
flowering of his last years.
relatively modest,
anthologist of easy Scarlatti sonatas.
An
anthologist of representa-
and important Scarlatti sonatas, dazzled by the splendors of Venice ill and iv, might be tempted to overlook them.
tive
Scarlatti's
divisions
thematic organization frequently deserts the sectional
of
his
harmonic construction. There
is
an easy and
emotionally consequent succession of themes flowing freely over the tonal form, but not always coinciding. In these volumes sonatas tend toward unity of
mood and
violent contrasts of Venice xv, or even of Venice
volumes contain partures
G
major
from is
a
number
many
texture, with fewer of the
m
and
iv.
These
of experiments in form, or rather de-
Scarlatti's usual practice.
Venice v 19 (K. 284) in
a kind of modified rondo, built on limited thematic
material, with drone basses that are unusual in Scarlatti except in pastorales,
and with the feeling of a peasant dance.
piece of Scarlatti which reminds
me
of
chord rondos, especially those of Couperin. (I ever, that Scarlatti either did not
know
French harpsichord composers. Besides pieces
in
all
of
Scarlatti's
It
is
the only
some of the French
am
harpsi-
convinced, how-
or chose to ignore the
this piece
only two other
harpsichord music resemble
rondos
vn 26, K. 351 and Venice iv 30, K. 265). A new thinness makes itself felt in the sonatas of this period. More and more Scarlatti is emancipating himself from the very sound effects that he cultivated so masterfully. More and more (Venice
j
•
168
•
ROYAL SONATAS he refuses
them
to be led
by them,
on dominating and controlling
insists
as agents of expression. Such a piece
with
308) companiment. j
delicately
its
molded
Venice vi 13 (K.
is
vocal line against a sparse ac-
One wonders whether
was singing with similar purity and
Farinelli in his later years
restraint.
The companion
piece
(Venice vi 14, K. ^og) achieves an orchestral variety of timbre with similar
economy of means. Never again does
the reckless flamboyance of his earlier pieces.
and
osity
retains his virtu-
the colors of his instrumental palette, but he handles
all
them with
Scarlatti return to
He
a sobriety
the attributes of the
and
a concentration that have always been
mature
is
The
his old age.
artist in
purity of this pair of sonatas
youthful
something seldom known by the
very young. Yet, except for a few pieces (such as Sonatas 284, 296, 308, 337, I find irresistible, I cannot feel that the sonatas of
343) which these three
contain
volumes add appreciably
many
to
Scarlatti's
glory.
excellent pieces, but almost none that in
They
some meas-
ure does not duplicate what he has already said or what he will say later.
To
or to a
among
a musical housebreaker
modern
the Queen's manuscripts,
thief in the Biblioteca Marciana, I
would give the
following advice, in the event of limited baggage: Take can carry, but 1, 11,
v, vi,
if
something must be
left
behind,
let it
all
you
be volumes
and vn.
THE LATE SONATAS With
the sonatas of Venice vin (1754)
we
enter on the final
glorious period. In this volume, which seems to return to the richness of color
and the inventiveness of Venice in and
iv after the
experimental thinness of the intervening volumes,
we
marvelous piece after another.
of keyboard
virtuosity
Scarlatti's resources
have become so much assimilated
find one
into the service of
specifically musical effects rather
than of display that one senses
a certain independence on his part
from the instrument over which
he has gained complete command.
A
few of the sonatas
feel as if
they had been composed away from the harpsichord, with
consummate knowledge of sound provising, but in such a
way
effects
as not to
the conformations of the hand. •
169
•
gained
become
in
all
the
years of im-
entirely enslaved by
ROYAL SONATAS The
handcrossings of the earlier sonatas, increasingly rare in the
volumes of the Queen's
earlier
collection,
have completely disap-
peared in volumes v and vi and vin to x (1754-1755). Thenceforth they make only rare appearances. This brings to mind a well
known anecdote
"M.
of Dr. Burney's:
(whom Dr. Burney met in Vienna in 1772) "in uncommon corpulency, possesses a most active and
L'Augier,"
despight of
cultivated mind.
His house
the rendezvous of the
is
Vienna, both for rank and genius tertaining, as his
knowledge
;
and
extensive
is
a most refined and distinguishing taste,
melody
in all parts of the
"He
people of is
and profound.
acquirements he has arrived at great
his other
first
his conversation
skill in
as en-
Among
music, has
and has heard national
world with philosophical
ears.
has been in France, Spain, Portugal, Italy, and Constan-
modern music. In Spain Domenico Scarlatti, who, at he was intimately acquainted with seventy-three, composed for him a great number of harpsichord and
tinople,
is,
in short, a living history of
lessons which he
possesses,
pieces,
who
have been a collector of Scarlatti's compositions
had never seen more than three or 1756, when Scarlatti was too fat to
four.
Spain,
when
princess of Asturias."
There are some
forty-two all these,
all
my
hands
more
as
detail.
life,
in
he used to
juvenile works,
and patroness, the
late
queen of
14
flaws in this story, the
most notable being that
did not live to be seventy-three. That, however,
Scarlatti
minor
his scholar
with
They were composed
cross his
do, so that these are not so difficult, as his
which were made for
me
and of which he favoured
The book in which they are transcribed, contains among which are several slow movements, and of
copies.
I,
now
Handcrossings do occur
is
a
in the latest Scarlatti sonatas
of the Queen's series (1756-1757), though infrequently (Venice xi 5
and
458 and 482; and xm 15 and 16, K. 528, and 529). however, that they are rare from 1752 to 1757, espe-
29, K.
It is true,
compared with the sonatas of 1749. Perhaps this difa partial indication that most of these later sonatas were actually composed at the time the manuscripts were copied. But another fact must be taken into consideration. It is common knowledge that the Queen, even before she had ascended to the throne cially as
ference
14
is
Burney, The Present State of Music in Germany, Vol. *
170
*
I,
pp. 247-249.
ROYAL SONATAS 15 had become extremely corpulent. Moreover, Mr. L'Augier him-
was notorious for
self
his dimensions. Metastasio
on February
Farinelli
12,
1756:
"He
had written
to
often visits me, notwith-
standing his immeasurable corpulency ; and mounts to the third
where
story,
I reside,
your sake, embrace 16
circumference."
was
it
with the lightness of the most slim dancer.
as much as possible of his majestic Now, was it the Queen, or was it Scarlatti, or Mr. L'Augier who had become too fat to play the earlier
I shall for
sonatas?
Had
Burney confused
crossings as
other hand,
his notes? In the case of the
good reason
there might have been
Queen,
for eliminating such hand-
were hardly compatible with regal dignity.
On
the
supposed portrait drawn by Amiconi in
Scarlatti's
1752 shows him to be altogether of a type not given to corpulency.
Another evidence that these posed
at
later sonatas
may have been com-
about the time of their transcription into the Queen's
manuscripts
is
furnished by the fact that certain sonatas in volume
(1754) and thereafter demand a drastic expansion of the keyboard range over that required by the sonatas of the earlier
viii
volumes. In the Essercizi and in the Queen's volume of 1742 the range of the sonatas
is
only four octaves and a half, from
A
t
to
or fifty-four notes. In these two volumes Scarlatti frequently
tered his thematic material to reduce
to
it
d3
,
al-
the compass of the
instruments he was playing. In one half of a sonata a theme
may
be stated completely; in the other half the transposed statement of the same
theme may be truncated
to
fit
the range of the instru-
ment. In the Queen's volume of 1749 the compass runs the
G
d 3 In the Queen's
fifty-
volume of 1752 it runs from A to e 3 and in the second volume again from G to d 3 In the eighth volume of the Queen's series (1754) occurs a
six notes x
from
x
to
.
first
,
.
y
sonata (Venice viii 27, K. 384) calling for only four octaves, to c
3 ,
with some evidence (measure 35) to show that
for an instrument lacking a
low B^ But
this
C
was written
it
evidence
is
offset
by
the fact that the companion sonata of the pair (Venice viii 28, K.
385)
we 15
16
calls for a
find for the
range of fifty-nine notes from Gj to first
time
in this
volume
.
.
•
171
•
3 .
Moreover,
a sonata calling for a full
Coxe, Vol. IV, pp. 16-21; Noailles, Memoires, Vol. VI, Burney, Memoirs of Metastasio, Vol. II, p. 164. .
f
p.
J65.
ROYAL SONATAS five-octave range of sixty-one notes,
from Fi
to f
3
vm
(Venice
30,
vm
3
K. 387), and one calling for a high g (Venice 23, K. 380). From 1754 to 1757 the fullest range ever called for is one of runs either from
five octaves. It
F
x
to f
3
or
from
G
t
to
3 g (Venice
17
It would seem that after 1754 Scarlatti was using ix 11, K. 398). instruments with a wider range than those available earlier, in
1749 for example. This consistent change
in
range corroborates in
some measure the hypothesis that the dates of the later manuscripts more or less coincide with the actual dates of composition. A few pieces in Venice vm and ix are more sober in style than the others and make only modest demands on the player, but for the most part these rarely,
late sonatas
Extravagant leaps
earlier.
and the
full
demand no still
less technical ability
abound, even
if
than the
the hands cross
range of keyboard figuration
is
called into
366 and 367, 380 and 381, 386 and 387, $94 an d 395, 402 and 403^ 406 and 407, 415 and 416. play. Characteristic pieces of this period are Sonatas
Even the page
the note picture of these later sonatas is
less cluttered,
and there
is
is
cleaner, clearer ;
a tendency to use larger note
values, to write in alia breve time with eighth notes instead of
with sixteenths.
The
later sonatas,
even the most
more highly developed melodic sense tours are drawn in longer lines. If one sonatas, in
which every turn of phrase
brilliant,
in the figuration.
4/4 show a
The
con-
looks back from these later is
imbued with muscularity
and implications of expressive gesture, how angular,
inert, and immature by comparison some of the earlier sonatas seem. (For example, K. 31 compared with K. 350.) Despite their jets of
melodic inspiration and their bizarre and striking figures, the the mechanical formulas of florid
earlier sonatas are closer to
from which they took their flight. The harmonic foundation of the later works fuses with a sense of line which imbues even the most obvious cliche of keyboard figuration with an expressiveness far beyond that of a mere harmonic armathoroughbass realization
ture clothed with bright
and
striking keyboard colors
17
and animated
The unaccustomed extension of range so confused the copyist that he wrote low F's of K. 387 as G's in both Venice and Parma. He had similar difficulties with the high G's of K. 470. The high a 3 which appears in measure 71 of Longo 495 (K. 533) is written an octave lower in its source. Venice xm 20, also in Parma. the
•
172
*
ROYAL SONATAS with a compelling rhythm.
musical organism of the later
more and consistently integrated. volumes there are few new musical devices. Scarlatti uses the simplest closed forms of the early sonatas, the free and poetically expanded open forms of the middle period, the harmonic vocabulary on which the Essercizi were founded, the sonatas
more
The
is
In these
nervous,
finely
last
modulatory schemes and expansion and command of tonality that
were already affirmed by the middle period. The thematic material is
not conspicuously different, nor the rhythmic vitality any greater,
than that of the early sonatas, but everything
and
is
at
once thinner
richer.
Side by side with symmetrical Essercizi forms and simple minuets
and minuet-like movements appear open forms, for the most Along with one of the shortest Scarlatti
part rather concentrated.
sonatas in existence (Sonata 431) are to be found
some of the most
elaborate and highly developed of all the sonatas (K. 402, for
example). Venice
x,
xn, and xin contain almost entirely sonatas of such
high quality and such great variety that like an overenthusiastic
Baedeker one
tempted
is
to double star nearly every piece.
harvests, at least in the case of Scarlatti, are the richest. to the
The
end
player
it is
extremely
who
difficult
From
Late here
not to linger with every piece.
has been reading through the sonatas in chrono-
now, more than ever, it is possible for more than four hundred sonatas, to make him gasp
logical order will find that Scarlatti, after
with surprise and pleasure. In addition to the late sonatas' included
in
my
anthology,
I specially
I
have
recommend Sonatas 422 and
423, 428 and 429, 443 and 444, 478 and 479, 524 and 525. Especially eloquent are the florid slow movements with their variety of figuration
and
their extended bravura melodies.
usual for Scarlatti are the free decorated fermate of Venice
Unxn
25 (Sonata 508).
Like the riches
final displays in
and ever varying
an evening of fireworks, scintillating
spectacles are being
they suddenly disappear into blackness.
Now
showered on us Scarlatti
is
until
showering
the largesse of his whole musical legacy on us in an ever-increasing
crescendo that
is
interrupted only by death. *
173
*
ROYAL SONATAS The Queen's series of manuscripts ends with in 1757. The parallel volume, Parma xv,
->ut
sonatas and twelve
more
as well.
Venice xin, copied
contains the same These twelve sonatas may well
have been gathered together and copied out after in
July of 1757.
With
set.
They never found
their
way
Scarlatti's
into the
death
Queen's
the exception of Sonata 35 (K. 548) they are all in Scarand presumably the last he wrote.
latti's latest style,
I
doubt
among
if
any more harpsichord pieces of importance remained
Scarlatti's papers, except possibly early
not considered worth having copied. Perhaps
had already been
lost or discarded.
The
works that he had
many
early works
series of late sonatas has
every appearance of being complete. Despite occasional regressions to an earlier exhibit a tendency
toward the hermetic
style, these sonatas
style that characterizes the
productions of the very old, toward absolute sureness, infinitely rich dryness, It
is
and all-embracing detachment.
tempting to speculate on what might have been the develop-
ment of the youthfully dead, what might have been the productions of a seventy-year old is
to
Mozart, Purcell, or Schubert. But
even more mysteriously fascinating, even terrifying, imagine what with
full
it
to attempt
powers preserved Titian might have
instead of ninety-nine, what Haydn would have written in 1830, what Goethe might have been writing had he lived until today, what these geniuses might still have achieved whose destiny never rounded itself in a closed circle but continued to open up infinite vistas until the very end. Scarlatti might never have written large symphonies 5 he might never have
painted at a hundred and
fifty
deserted the binary sonata form, but there are no indications what-
ever that he had exhausted
its possibilities.
•
174
'
IX
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD
•
NSTRUMENTS CONCLUSIONS the early pianoforte to scarlatti's harpsichord Scarlatti's organ music Scarlatti's harpsichord playing scarlatti's keyboard technique harpsichord sound as the organ, guitar, bounded by and orchestra shadings of harpsichord sound imitations of other instruments the influence of the spanish guitar as
•
•
•
•
•
'
•
known at present of any keyboard instruments owned by Scarlatti. Some account of them may still be discovered, should the complete set of the seven inventories come to light
(Ro trace I
that
is
were prepared for the division of
after his death.
found among the instruments. 1
account of his
visit to Farinelli at
"Signor Farinelli has long still
no mention
made
is
I
of
hint of the character of the instru-
Spanish court
at the
his estate
two portions that
in the
Scarlatti family papers
However, some
ments available
But
is
to be
Bologna
in
found
Burney's
in
1770:
left off singing,
but amuses himself
on the harpsichord and viol d'amour: he has a great number
of harpsichords
made
in different countries,
which he has named
according to the place they hold in his favour, after the greatest of the Italian painters.
His
first
favourite
Florence in the year 1730, on which
is
is
a -piano forte,
Rafael d'Urbino-, then Coreggio, Titian, Guido, &c. considerable time delicacy,
ment.
upon
The
next in favour
it
was for
of lessons, cated, 1
and
when
Appendix
is
at
He
played a
Raphael, with great judgment and
and has composed several elegant
queen of Spain, who was Spain;
his
made
written in gold letters,
pieces for that instru-
a harpsichord given
Scarlatti's scholar,
this princess that Scarlatti
both
made
him by the in
his
late
Portugal and
two
to her the first edition, printed at Venice,
first
books
was dedi-
she was princess of Asturias: this harpsichord, which
II,
documents of September 1757. •
175
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD was made
in Spain, has
third favourite rection ;
it
more tone than any
one made likewise
is
under
his
Of
and the
di-
higher or
these Spanish harpsichords the natural keys are black,
flats
and sharps are covered with mother of pearl
wood
are of the Italian model, all the
and they are put
they
j
cedar, except the bellies,
is
2
into a second case."
Further information about these instruments Farinelli's biographer,
two of
own
has moveable keys, by which, like that of Count Taxis,
at Venice, the player can transpose a composition either
lower.
His
of the others.
in Spain,
He
Giovenale Sacchi. 3
Farinelli's favorite instruments.
The
is
furnished by
speaks in detail of
was a cembalo
first
"a martellini," obviously the same pianoforte as the "Rafael" described by Dr. Burney. Sacchi tells us that this instrument was
by the Florentine, Ferrini, "a pupil of Bortolo inventor of the pianoforte"
made
Padovano,
(sic)
first
Bartolomeo Cristofori).
(i.e.
was a cembalo
Farinelli's second favorite, according to Sacchi,
"a penna," in other words a harpsichord, "but which with various devices forms different orders of tones." 4 This it
was a transposing instrument, probably
described by Burney, or that Sacchi
is
and
in part to
extricated himself
neglected. that she
the
Queen
new
invention, due in part
would have liked
replied that he
had
which he lived
mentioned
have a harpsichord with more
to
not.
in
in talking with Farinelli
ous tones [voci], and asked him
He
a
is
Diego Fernandez, who with such work
from the obscurity and poverty
By chance
one
stops.
something he does not quite under-
stand ; hence his vagueness. "This to Farinelli,
either that
had an unusual number of
it
clearly talking about
means
identical with the
if
vari-
he had ever seen such a one.
But then, leaving the Queen without
saying anything further, he consulted Fernandez, whose talent
he knew, and after they had designed the work together and executed it, he arranged for it to be found as a surprise by the
Queen
in
her apartments. Such was Farinelli's custom that once
he perceived a desire he contrived to carry
making any promise
much
consideration,
in advance.
He
it
into execution without
held both of these cembali
in
and carefully taking the measurements, Signor
2
Burney, The Present State of Music in France and Italy, pp. 202-204.
8
Sacchi, p. 47. Farinelli describes this instrument in his testament.
* ibid.
•
176
•
(Appendix
III
C.)
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD Paolo Morellati of Vicenza,
made
mechanics,
on commission, a gift of
My
it
his.
This
at the
quite learned in music
who
expense of Farinelli himself,
and
Duke
then
made
Parma, Infant of Spain." 5 about the instruments used by Scarlatti has always
to the present
curiosity
who was
latter built the first of his harpsichords
of
many passages in his music do correspond to the character of Flemish, French, Gerseem to not man, and English harpsichords, nor to their modern approximations. (This does not imply that in many cases the equivalent sound been very great, especially because
cannot be obtained from these instruments. But
know
to
sirable
the
of
characteristics
the
would be de-
it
original
instruments
because the means of obtaining the same effects from other in-
What
struments are often quite different.
is
almost automatic on
one instrument has to be achieved on another by a special effort of the player.) Scarlatti sonatas do not seem to call for a harpsichord
with a wide variety of registers ; his writing
They seem
itself is
too colorful.
rather to call for a relatively simple instrument, yet
one which gives the impression of great variety of sound. difficult
it
has been, in
modern harpsichord
ing, to lend to single stops, instead of
of the old instruments.)
I
as well as
monotony, the
have always
felt
(How
organ build-
rich simplicity
that the
Scarlatti
sonatas call for a harpsichord that has a full and powerful treble
and sonorous
basses, yet
Italian harpsichords I acteristics, albeit
is
capable of great delicacy. In some old
have found an approximation of these char-
rather coarse, but
good examples
are rare.
rarer are Spanish harpsichords of the eighteenth century,
must confess that
my
Even and
I
in
Spain were utterly
discovered
much valuable inQueen Maria
hopes of finding any
deceived.
By
happy chance, however,
a
I
formation in the testament drawn up in 1756 by Barbara,
pended
now
to
it
in the library of the
after her death in 1758
Royal Palace
in
Madrid. Ap-
was an inventory that included
a description of the keyboard instruments in her possession.
6
These
would have been the instruments which Scarlatti had at his disposal in the apartments of the Queen, and on which the Queen would have played his sonatas. Presumably they form a representa5
Sacchi, p.
47.
6
Quoted
in
Appendix *
177
III B.
*
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD tive assortment of the instruments for
posing in his
which
Scarlatti
was com-
last years.
The Queen owned twelve keyboard instruments, distributed among the palaces of Buen Retiro, Aranjuez, and Escorial. She bequeathed the three best ones to Farinelli. Seven of these instruments were harpsichords of various makes and dispositions, and five were pianofortes made in Florence. This points unmistakably to Cristofori or to his pupil Ferrini.
had been turned
Two
Queen's harpsichords had
of these pianos, however,
The most
into harpsichords!
five registers
elaborate of the
and four
sets of strings,
keys in ebony and mother of pearl, and a walnut
with
fifty-six
case.
This instrument apparently had a sixteen-foot
ways a
rarity in the eighteenth century. Its
pearl keyboard indicates that
The Queen had two
was probably Spanish.
it
harpsichords with three sets of strings and
and
respectively fifty-six
register, al-
ebony and mother of
fifty-eight keys in
ebony and bone; also
a Flemish harpsichord (perhaps a Ruckers) of unspecified com-
and keys
pass again with three sets of strings
in
ebony and bone.
She had another harpsichord of cedar and cypress on the
interior,
with two sets of strings and sixty-one keys in ebony and mother of
This was evidently a Spanish instrument corresponding to
pearl.
Dr. Burney's description of the one
in Farinelli's possession.
addition she had two similar harpsichords with an unspecified
In
num-
ber of strings. Presumably all three of these Spanish harpsichords
were
alike.
In the inventory there
is
no mention of
a transposing
instrument.
Each of the palaces
at
Aranjuez and Escorial was supplied with
a pianoforte (the one at Aranjuez had forty-nine keys and that at the Escorial
had
sixty-one keys.
The
with
fifty-six
fifty-four)
and a Spanish harpsichord with
other eight instruments, including a piano
keys and,
among
the harpsichords mentioned above,
the Spanish instrument with two registers and sixty-one keys, were
presumably
The
as pianos
been
at
Buen
Retiro.
pianos all had interiors of cypress, and the three kept
had keys
fitted
in
boxwood and ebony, but the two
that
with quills and converted into harpsichords had
spectively fifty
and
fifty-six
keys in ebony and bone. •
i
78
•
had re-
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD HARPSICHORD This inventory throws an entirely new light on the
Scarlatti
sonatas, long considered the exclusive province of the harpsichord.
But other surprises are
in store.
Before
we jump
to conclusions,
seem particularly pianistic in style, whether on account of their color or on account of their extended range, let us compare the compass of the Queen's instruments with the range demanded by the sonatas themselves. The most extended of the Queen's pianos had fifty-six keys, or four octaves and a half. Many of the cantabile pieces and many of the latest and most highly deespecially in sonatas that
veloped sonatas, however, demand a full five-octave range in such a
manner
as to be impossible of execution
The most
pianos.
on any of the Queen's
elaborate of the Queen's harpsichords, moreover,
the one with five registers, could not have been used for the most
imposing and extended of the sonatas because or four octaves and a half.
fifty-six notes,
it
also
had only
The same was
true of
two of the three harpsichords with three sets of strings. The remaining one had fifty-eight notes, but that was still insufficient for the larger sonatas.
The
only instruments in the Queen's possession
on which the full jive-octave sonatas of Scarlatti could have been flayed were the three Spanish harpsichords with sixty-one notes
and two registers! Of these the harpsichord with sixty-one notes and the two registers specifically mentioned in the inventory was presumably at Buen Retiroj the other two were respectively at Aranjuez and the Escorial.
The range to P, or
d
to
of these five-octave instruments was presumably 3
g
.
was by no means standardized 1800
it
pass of
five octaves,
of Mozart, for example, there
However some
r
in the eighteenth century, before
was only rarely that harpsichords were
more than
F
Although the keyboard compass of harpsichords
F
x
is
built with a
to P. In all the
com-
keyboard works
nothing that exceeds
this range.
of the late sonatas of Scarlatti call for a high
8
g
.
But no one sonata, or pair of sonatas, ever exceeds a five-octave
The
3 g seems to have been a peculiarity of Spanish harpsichords. Soler also makes use of it in his sonatas. The pitch of the various sets of strings is not mentioned in the
range.
inclusion of a high
Queen's inventory, but we can assume that the harpsichord with *
179
*
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD commanded two
four sets of strings
and one
at four-foot,
two-foot set instead.
The
would have had two
sets at eight-foot pitch
The
one was a
sets at eight-foot pitch,
at sixteen-foot, unless possibly there
harpsichords with three sets of strings
and one
at four-foot.
harpsichords with two sets of strings, though they might have
had one
set at eight-foot pitch
likely to
have had both
at four-foot, are far
more
seems, the majority of the late Scarlatti sonatas were
If, as it
composed
and one
sets of strings at eight-foot pitch.
for a sonorous harpsichord in cedar
keyboard and two stops
at eight-foot pitch,
have been voiced very delicately
and
cypress, with one
one of the stops must
to permit the
performance of
and the other must have been voiced strongly in order to lend brilliance and power to the tutti. The Queen's inventory makes no mention of the number of manuals of any of the instruments. It is probable that the harpsichords with three and fours sets of strings had two manuals, but it is unlikely that those with only two sets of strings had more cantabile pieces,
than one manual. This corresponds with observations in playing
many
I
have made
of the later five-octave sonatas, to the effect that
the changes in color and register are often incorporated in the writ-
way
ing of the piece in such a
as to
render unnecessary the use
of a second manual.
There
is
very
little
harpsichord literature, except for a few
and of J. S. Bach (most notably the Goldberg Variations), for which a second manual is absolutely
pieces croisees of Couperin
indispensable.
The
presence in the notated music of unisons formed
by the meeting of voices or of the hands, or the presence of crossing voices,
chord
is
is
not necessarily an indication that a two-manual harpsi-
intended.
Moreover many
pieces that can
most conveniently
be played on two keyboards are notated in such a
way
that they
can nevertheless be played on one (Sonata 2q). It should be re-
membered sible
that the use of
two keyboards
is
for the
most part pos-
only in relatively light textures, never in passages demanding
the full instrument.
The
full instrument, in all harpsichords,
could
only be played from the lower keyboard. Most harpsichords con-
from the upper manual, occasionally two contrasting eight-foots using the same set of strings (for mechanical reasons seldom satisfactory when used simultaneously), trolled only one eight-foot stop
•
1
80
•
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD
A
or at the most, eight-foot and four-foot.
notion propagated by
writers with little experience at the harpsichord
is
that Scarlatti's
handcrossings were facilitated by the use of two keyboards.
matter of
fact,
most such passages have
to be executed
lower keyboard, even when rendered more of sound,
Let
it
demanding the
difficult
if
effects
forte of the instrument.
be noted, however, that the harpsichord on the
of the Essercizi, even
a
thereby, be-
demanding massed
cause they generally occur in passages
As
on the
engraved backwards, appears
to
title
page
have two
keyboards. There can be no doubt that the paired Sonatas 109 and
no
were intended for two keyboards. For Sonata 109 the Venice
manuscript bears directions in letters of gold for an exchange of
hands (suppressed by Longo) which produces crossings of voices in contrasting colors.
(Example
1
and
its
parallel passages)
[eAdagio]
34
T>
Ex.
Moreover 29-44 and
I.
Venice xv 12 (Longo 138) K. 109
Sonata
in its
1
10
it is
quite clear that the passage in measures
two manuals, even though
parallel are intended for
notated so as to be possible on one keyboard, albeit with
difficulty.
Unequivocal cases of writing for two manuals are extremely rare in Scarlatti. I think
however
that Sonatas 21, 48,
intended for a two-manual harpsichord. is
light
and the whole piece lends
itself to
The
and 106 are
texture of Sonata 21
being performed through-
out on two keyboards, probably on two eight-foot stops, with the left
hand on the upper keyboard. Pieces
like
Sonata §35 a *"e most
conveniently executed on a two-manual harpsichord, and Sonata
554 in measures 63-66, 70-73, becomes very inconvenient to play on a one-manual instrument. (Example 2) But
it is
perfectly clear that all of these pieces could be played on
one keyboard
sound
effect
in case of necessity or in the absence of a satisfactory
from the two manuals. •
181
It
•
should be remembered that
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD harpsichords, like organs, were so completely lacking in standardization that the final choice of registration
Ex.
2.
Parma xv 41 (Longo
S.
had
to be left to the
21) K. 554
The notation of Sonata 1 (Example 3) and of many other sonatas which appear to require two keyboards, can be taken seriplayer.
ously only
when
the voicing of the harpsichord used permits a
satisfactory sonority.
When
than Scarlatti to play
it
did not, probably no one was quicker
it
on one keyboard.
[Allegro]
Ex.
3. Essercizt
1
The inventory how the registers
(Longo 366) K.
I
of the Queen's instruments leaves no indication
of the harpsichords were manipulated. It can be taken for granted that in the Spanish harpsichords built on the Italian
model with an inner and outer
case, as
Burney
indicates,
the registers were changed by means of hand stops. (I have never
come upon any evidence
of Italian harpsichords originally supplied with pedals. In any case, pedals for changing registers, except for the swell and machine stops of English harpsichords, were rare
in the eighteenth century.)
were
lifted
But the dampers of most early pianos in France in the eighteenth cen-
by knee levers, and
tury harpsichords were occasionally supplied with knee levers for
changing
registers.
to consider
it
However, these were
so rare that I
am
inclined
unlikely that the registers of any of the Queen's
harpsichords were controlled otherwise than by hand stops.
Hand
most eighteenth-century harpsichords were located inside in the front end of the case, near the tuning pins, or were controlled from outside immediately above the keyboard. Sometimes,
stops in
•
182
•
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD however, in Italian harpsichords they were controlled from the side of the case
and could not be reached by the player while
In any
was impossible for the player
case,
it
during a piece except where the music In
many
left
seated.
change hand stops
to
one or both hands
free.
most of the eighteenth-century
Scarlatti sonatas, as in
literature of the harpsichord, variations of figuration or shifts of
octave were written into the piece to take the place of actual changes of stops. (For example, in Sonata 387 the repeated phrases of
the opening are varied by the addition of of the repeated phrases so
common
A
trills.)
large
in Scarlatti sonatas
number
appear to
have relied on changes of touch and phrasing rather than on actual changes of color.
On
a well-regulated harpsichord with
hand
stops a considerable
choice of strength and, to a certain extent, of character of tone
depending on whether the individual stop
possible,
is
is
pulled out
moves the plectra either nearer or making them pluck strongly or weakly,
fully or only part way. This
farther
from the
strings,
A
as the case
may
will always
sound more legato. This
weakly plucked
set of
harpsichord strings
possibility of choosing either
and aggressive tone or a weaker and more cantabile quality
a strong is
be.
too often forgotten by the
modern harpsichord
builders
mechanisms that do not allow the player
construct pedal
to
who
modify
the strength of the various registers.
THE EARLY PIANOFORTE There
is little
evidence that Scarlatti was in any
way tempted
abandon the harpsichord for the pianoforte. Most of sonatas
had a range that extended beyond that of the Queen's
pianofortes.
Moreover, the
earliest pianoforte
was almost entirely
lacking in the orchestral colors of the harpsichord,
rather sober in comparison with
the brilliance; forte
was a
its
(and
kind used
this
at the
it.
chief advantage
distinctly
It
was
and seemed
had neither the power nor flexibility.
The
early piano-
modest and intimate instrument. The
keyboard music published with a forte
to
his latest
specific designation for
would have been
earliest
the piano-
a Florentine pianoforte of the
Spanish court) was the collection of sonatas which
Giustini di Pistoia dedicated in 1732 to •
183
•
Domenico's old patron and
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD Don
Antonio of Portugal. 7 They are fairly modest in charOnly between 1760 and 1770 did the piano begin successfully
pupil, acter.
compete with the harpsichord.
to
Barring definite proof to the contrary,
I am inclined to believe that the pianoforte was used at the Spanish court largely for ac-
companying the voice (witness Farinelli's fondness for the pianoforte), and that the harpsichord retained its preeminence for solo music. Certainly in the case of Scarlatti this appears to have been true. But in the first two volumes of the Queen's manuscripts, i.e.
Venice
1
and
11,
we
Scarlatti's usual
number
find a
eight sonatas of Venice
1,
of pieces, particularly the
that are quite different in character
harpsichord writing.
The
first
from
basses have little of the
animation and color to which Scarlatti has accustomed us. In terms of the harpsichord they remain inert and without overtones like a bare
unharmonized continue (Example 4)
tAllegro
has occurred to
It
AV
-f-
1
.
^J-
S
Ex.
4.
me
that these sonatas
Venice
1
2
the early piano.
^
-
^
flf.
(Longo 93) K. 149
might represent experiments
Moreover
the Queen's pianofortes.
on the harpsichord.
in writing for
their range falls within the compass of
The
delicate
and
fluid
nuance of the
make them sound better than they do However, on grounds of style it is almost im-
early pianoforte might well
7
-tfp
See Chapter V, note 27. •
184
'
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD draw
possible to
a definite borderline
between mid-eighteenth-cen-
tury harpsichord music and music for the early piano.
works of
Haydn and Mozart
piano style
Only
is
Even
in the
the transition from harpsichord to
almost imperceptible.
a handful of pieces remain to give us an idea of Scarlatti's
treatment of the organ. Sonatas 287 and 288 are actually not sonatas at
all,
but a pair of organ voluntaries without double bar;
they share none of Scarlatti's usual procedures of tonal arrange-
ment and thematic restatement. (The double bar tion of the Sonata
in
Longo's
edi-
288 has been inserted by the editor.) In the
Parma manuscript (vn
17) the
superscribed: "Per
first is
Organo
da Camera con due Tastatura Flautato e Trombone." In both sonatas the changes of
manual are almost completely
In both the Venice and
Parma manuscripts they
indicated.
8
are specified by
drawings of hands that point up for the upper manual and down for the lower.
Although not superscribed for organ, Sonata 328 bears complete and Parma manuscripts for what are evidently changes of manuals, from "Org ." to "Fl°." In Sonata indications in both Venice
255 the words "Oytabado" (measure 37) and "Tortorilla" (measure 64) in both the Venice and Parma manuscripts would seem to indicate that this piece likewise, probably together with
(Sonata 254), was for organ. Moreover,
it
is
its
possible that
mate
some
of the other pieces in relatively sober style were also intended for
organ. Certainly the early fugues (K. 41, 58, 93) bear strong
in-
dications of having been conceived interchangeably for harpsichord
or organ. I
have played on a delicious small organ
royal palace in Madrid.
Carlos III,
it
differs little
cept of course that
it
a variety of colorful
9
Appendix III D. According to the
is
Although
in the
dates
from the organs of
chapel of the
from the reign of Scarlatti's time, ex-
considerably larger than the organ pre-
Parma vn
17 (Sonata 287). It has, however, registers, with the usual snarling
inscription on the case:
Bernat-Veri. Natural de
it
and piquant
scribed by Scarlatti in
8
9
'
Construido por D. Jorge Bosch Magd Ano 1778."
Palma de Mallorca. Organero de Su •
185
•
.
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD Spanish reed pipes projecting horizontally from the
case. Its
keys
of ebony and mother of pearl recall those of the Spanish harpsichords described by Dr. Burney. One must not overlook the possibility of still other Scarlatti sonatas being executable on a chamber organ. After all, frivolity is no obstacle, as some of the organ music of Scarlatti's pupil, Padre Soler, will testify. There is at present no evidence that Scarlatti ever used the clavichord. An occasional mistranslation of the Spanish word clavicordio, which means harpsichord, has sometimes given rise to the belief that he did use it.
The
existing accounts of Scarlatti's playing are
though recorded many years
later, all of
few indeed. Al-
them date from the
first
and confine themselves largely to remarking on the 10 brilliancy of his execution and the richness of his fantasy. Not a single known report dates from the period when he had really developed the style of most of his surviving harpsichord comhalf of his life
positions.
Probably
modern
Scarlatti
sense.
never in his
life
played in a concert in the
In contrast to the singers of his time, he remained
completely unknown to the general public. As far as
played only for his friends and patrons. for the theater
and when he abandoned
When
his
we know, he
he ceased
to write
church functions he lost
his last possible contact with the bourgeoisie. Outside the royal
palaces in which he performed for his royal patrons
known only by
hangers-on, Scarlatti's virtuosity was
way
and
their
hearsay, or by
of those few of his pieces which were printed or circulated in
manuscript copies.
There
is
every indication that Scarlatti must have been a fabu-
lous improviser. I
written
down
am
quite certain that for every Scarlatti sonata
there were dozens improvised and forgotten.
Scarlatti sonata
is
an organism that developed
at the
The
keyboard,
not on paper. In Scarlatti's time keyboard players were judged less as executants than as composers
and improvisers. But few key-
board players possessed a universal technique that permitted them 10
Burney, from Roseingrave and Hasse; Quantz,
hearsay. See Chapters II and V. •
186
•
in
Marpurg; Mainwaring,
by-
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD immediately any music
to negotiate
greatest players
were accustomed
or the music of their pianists,
own country
though on an all
Even the own music modern jazz
before them. their
or school. Like the
more cultivated level, they destyle and adhered to it. On the other
infinitely
veloped their own particular
hand they
set
perform only
to
possessed an extreme facility in continuo playing, in
manipulating instantaneously
and figurations
in all keys.
all possible
combinations of chords
This meant a complete and
domination of the instrument as a
medium
flexible
for expressing their
own
musical thoughts, however limited the range of their style. I
doubt
if
chord in his
Couperin, despite his peculiar
own
command
of the harpsi-
would have been able to negotiate a single Although Handel would probably have played
style,
sonata of Scarlatti.
the Scarlatti sonatas with great dash, I venture to guess that he
would have scarcely avoided a great many wrong notes. J. S. Bach would have been among the very few who could have played all of them perfectly. He was one of the earliest exponents of a keyboard technique universal in physical competence as well as in variety of style
and scope of expression. Only when keyboard play-
ing became a profession in itself as apart from improvisation and
composition did a genuinely universal technique such as that exemplified
in
Hummel
the piano methods of
and Czerny become
standard equipment even for players of only average
ability.
Despite his fabulous accomplishments at the keyboard, Scarlatti
had no such pretensions his
own
style. I
to universality.
He was concerned only with
doubt even that he would have been
at ease
with
the pieces of Couperin or the partitas and fugues of Bach, had he
known them. His virtuosity mere keyboard player,
of the
is
easily mistaken for the virtuosity
like the dazzlingly
nism of the non-composing pianist of
Hummel
who
and Czerny, but actually
a subsidiary detail of his
own
competent mecha-
has mastered
all
the studies
Scarlatti's virtuosity
was but
creative musical language.
scarlatti's keyboard technique Almost no indications of vived.
The
Scarlatti's
system of fingering have sur-
manuscripts give no fingerings, but only directions for
the distribution of notes between the hands and occasionally for
the playing of a two-voice passage in one hand, as in Sonatas 126 •
187
•
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD and 1 89 "mutandi j
for a change of fingers i
on rapid repeated notes (marked
and Parma manuscripts of
deti" in both the Venice
Sonatas 96, 211, and others) or in a long trill (Sonata 357) j or for the use of one finger "Con dedo solo" to make a glissando out of a scale passage.
Ex.
Like
J. S.
5.
(Example 5)
Venice
vm
22 (Longo 73) K. 379
Bach and Rameau,
must have early
Scarlatti
culti-
vated a system tending toward equal development and independ-
The
ence of the five fingers of each hand.
older systems of finger-
ing, including that exemplified in Alessandro Scarlatti's toccatas,
are based on a frank inequality of fingers. difference between strong
and weak
They make
use of the
and between long and
fingers
short fingers. In scale passages they cross long fingers over shorter (for example, in 3
4j
2
1
descending: 3 2
1
Example It is
j
C
major ascending
54321321$
descending:
in the right
in the left
12343434
or
hand:
123434
hand ascending:
543
1234534
(See
5.
6 for samples of Alessandro Scarlatti's fingerings.)
probable that, like C. P. E. Bach, Scarlatti retained the old
fingerings for certain passages principle of passing the fingering,
thumb under
most arpeggios,
divided between
and made use
as well as
in others of the
modern
in scale passages. In the old
extended
scale passages,
were
the hands. Traces of this are to be seen in the
Essercizi. In later sonatas Scarlatti's vocabulary of scales, includ-
ing those in contrary motion (Sonata 567), and broken arpeggios
is
quite complete.
A
degree of digital independence unusual
in
Scarlatti's
time
is demanded by some of his rapid repeated notes (Sonatas 141, 366 y 42 1 455), by trills in thirds in one hand (Sonata 470) such as were considered well-nigh impossible or at best miraculous by Couperin, 11 by trills within chords (Sonata 116 and Example 7), ,
11
Paris
Francois Couperin, VArt de [1933L Vol- h PP- 36-37-
Toucher
le
Clavecin,
in
CEwvres Comfletes,
SCARLATTI'S HARPSICHORD
5l
2
N
*
543 2353 23
1512 4 I 24
1
512
34 34
3
151
b=4 3V
~
L 2
a
*
*
L5I 5
VAt
i
3 2
^
2 3 1
a
Trill ° tra
^4
* Fingering corrected from mistakes in the symbols used in the original.
Ex. 6. Alessandro Scarlatti: Toccata Prima in the Higgs manuscript (Yale School of Music). Published by J. S. Shedlock (Alessandro ScarLondon, 1908). latti: Harpsichord and Organ Music .
.
.
\
• L-l—
/W
r
1 1
—J
^
~o
*
'
-a
-c
xm
Ex. 16. Venice
To
O^
>\
understand
7
#
—
*
c/
(Longo 86) K. 520 unorthodox treatment of dominant
Scarlatti's
we must
sevenths and other seventh chords, practice of freely transposing
recognize both his
chord elements from one voice or
from one octave to another, and his practice of superposing elements from one harmony on another. The apparently unresolved dominant seventh in Scarlatti
IV and V with
is
nothing other than a compression of
the bass of the subdominant put into an inner part
and performing a perfectly natural resolution of a fourth downwards. (Example 17) Generally in such combinations of subdomi-
Ex. 17
nant and dominant elements the sounding bass represents the pre-
dominant harmonic function. In all cases of harmonic superposition one of the harmonic components must prevail over the others. We •
216
•
HARMONY
SCARLATTI'S shall shortly see
ic
we
such superpositions are explained by suspensteps.
More-
shall see that those parts representing the genuine
melod-
sions, pedals,
over,
how
and contractions of
essential
harmonic
function of the two-voice skeleton generally prepare and resolve
themselves in orthodox fashion, whereas the supplementary inner parts, especially those resulting
from held-over pedals and supersame laws. For this
position, are not necessarily subject to the
reason
it is
notable that Scarlatti's unresolved sevenths always ap-
pear in inner parts.
An
unresolved seventh in the top part, or
rather one taken upward,
is
always resolved for the ear in another
(Example 18)
voice or given a delayed resolution. Trestissimo ]
I
Ex.
The
1
8.
Venice xin 4 (Longo 266) K. 517
sidewise diatonic resolution of dominant and diminished
sevenths, the infrequence of their resolution to a simple triad, can
generally be explained by the horizontal
by the
fact that these
movement
of parts,
and
chords represent a combination of triads, a
meeting or crossing point of tonal functions, most often produced
by suspensions or pedals that oblige one harmony other. (See examples 40, 42, 47, 53.)
to overlap an-
Occasionally the pedal
understood but not heard, or the preparation omitted.
Then
is
the
seemingly arbitrary dissonances produced are really nothing but contracted progressions of orthodox harmony. But
we
are in ad-
vance of our material.
The
six-five
chord
in Scarlatti, as in the
seldom bears a contextual relation
to
thoroughbass
its
theoretical
treatises,
root,
the
seventh chord, except in the case of arpeggiated basses. It generally represents an intensification of a sixth chord by the addition of a fifth.
II
%
II 6.
This is
is
especially true in the case of
V
(Example 19)
%.
a further reinforcement of the subdominant function of
(Example 20) For an unresolved
fifth in a
V%
chord, rep-
resenting a superposition from the subdominant, but doubled by an
upper part that resolves
it
correctly, see Sonata 206. •
217
•
(Example 21)
SCARLATTI'S
Ex. 21. Venice
ill
(Longo 257) K. 206
I
Four-three chords, like
HARMONY
six-five chords, in
thoroughbass terms
often represent a reinforcement of a chord of the sixth, but by
the addition of the fourth.
(Example 22) In arpeggiated
they bear a strong relationship to their so-called root position. are generally
formed by the
diatonic
movement
basses
They
of parts, some-
Ex. 22 times by the changing-note activity of the third and the fourth, so that they
may
derive either from a chord of the sixth or from
a six-four chord. Four-three chords in Scarlatti are generally prelike V 7, frequently pared and resolved diatonically, but V
%
and subdominant. (Example 23) (For an unresolved II % chord, actually a superposition of IV and V, see Sonata 206.) (Example 24) functions as a combination of dominant
[^Allegro]
i J 30
^
/W
r^+L-
J
j
^e
*4j»
\
Ex. 23. Venice x 3 (Longo
S.
2) K. •
218
420 '
—— ^
J
HARMONY
SCARLATTI'S [zAndante]
Ex. 24. Venice
ill
I
(Longo 257) K. 206
Four-two chords likewise are always prepared and resolved diatonically and V Vi mixes dominant with subdominant. It is notable, however, that wards, as
J.
Scarlatti
never resolves the bass a fourth down-
Bach resolves
S.
it
(Example
in certain recitatives.
25) Bach's occasional use of this formula and of the following harmonic compression constitutes direct admission of the subdominant function of what
we would
an inversion of a dominant
call
seventh chord. (Examples 26 and 27) Frequently in a passage in which a four-two has been prepared, Scarlatti avoids placing
This %.
is
weight on
particularly the case with
by eliminating the second.
it
V
%, which then becomes VII
(Example 28) [Evangelist
Ex. 25.
J. S.
Bach:
St.
Matthew
J. S.
Bach:
St.
Wcrkc,
iv, p.
223
Petrus
Evangelist
Ex. 26.
Passion,
John •
Passion,
219
•
Werke xn
1 ,
p.
29
SCARLATTI'S
HARMONY
[Evangelist]
Ex. 27.
Bach:
J. S.
'J>
Matthew
j.
,
xn
Ex. 28. Venice
CADENTIAL
St.
7
j.
,
parts.
may
is
The
either cadential or
may
cadences
be
j.
formed by the
final
or merely
outline large sections of a piece, or they
be reiterated in a series of small sequential passages. latti
223
DIATONIC MOVEMENT OF HARMONY
VS.
motion of
tentative, they
IV, p.
(Longo 206) K. 490
All of Scarlatti's harmony diatonic
j.
Werke
Passion,
Many
may
a Scar-
sonata exhibits a distinct contrast between the sections domi-
nated by cadences and those dominated by diatonic parts.
In every Scarlatti sonata the
tion of each half
is
dominated by cadences, but the
between cadential and non-cadential sections subsidiary
movement
is
often
distinction
masked by
harmonic decoration and diatonic figurations
cadential sections
and by the
final section
in
the
insertion of subsidiary cadences in the
primarily non-cadential portions of the piece. in Sonata 190;
of
final tonality-establishing por-
and particularly
The
distinction
is
clear
456 between the of the second half (measures 59-77), which is based clear in Sonata
on nothing else but A, D, E, and A, and the stepwise sliding movement of basses in the earlier section (measures 36-58), moving from E through F sharp, G sharp, F sharp, E, D sharp, D natural,
C
natural, B, to A.
harmony
Moreover, the only departure from three-chord
in the entire first half of the sonata occurs
thirteen to measure fifteen.
movement
of parts
As usual
it
is
from measure
explainable by stepwise
and by the holding over of internal pedals, •
220
*
SCARLATTI'S
HARMONY
which produce momentary superpositions of elements from two or all three of the basic chords.
The Phrygian
cadence over a diatonically moving bass (minor
subdominant, major dominant, often decorated by the relative
major of the minor subdominant, leading real or unstated)
to a
major tonic whether
(Example 29) continually turns up
in the
Span-
Ex. 29 ish sonatas of Scarlatti, just as
popular music. Scarlatti
is
it is
to be
heard today in
particularly fond of
it
all
Spanish
modulatory
in the
excursion of the second half, and the hovering passages that occur just before the definitive establishment of the closing
a half. Generally
it is
dominant of
blurred by the carrying over of pedal points
and by the simultaneous sounding of several elements from component harmonies to form acciaccaturas. (Example 30)
its
\Mlegro\
Ex. 30. Parma
ill
24 (Longo 204) K. 105
This blurring occurs particularly when the cadence too strong,
when he wishes
eliminate any suggestion of finality (see
ambiguous the outcome of
Scarlatti does not
to continue the phrase, to
Example 45),
or to leave
Such passages often form a
tonality.
sharp contrast with the clear cadences of the tonal section.
221
want
•
HARMONY
SCARLATTI'S
VERTICAL HARMONIC INTENSITIES The network Scarlatti
This
than in
many
much
looser in
much
less closely knit than, for
example,
in
Bach. Scar-
suspensions are generally lacking in tension. Bach uses
as interweaving in the
or as
is
other composers of the eigthteenth century.
partly because the horizontal bindings of the individual
is
voices are latti's
of vertical harmonic intensities
momentary
harmonic
them
fabric, Scarlatti as surface color
plaintive inflections. Scarlatti often deliberately
destroys the tension that might be created by suspensions, dissonances, or leading tones, by not resolving fashion.
heat
is
They
is
orthodox
seems as
if
any continued form of
There
visceral tension
implied by the dissonances of Germanic harmony was
abhorrent to Scarlatti and as it.
in
not transmitted from one part of the phrase to the other,
as in Bach. It
such as
them
are simply thrown off into the air like sparks; the
is
if
he took every opportunity to avoid
not the continual fluctuation of intensity from con-
sonances through middle dissonance to extreme dissonance that lends a specific harmonic shape to any chorale or recitative of Bach
(Example 31), or
for that matter to any
movement
of Mozart. «\
r\
Jpft
*
,fl
1
P
P
J
.
\
j
is i
MS
A
$k-
-
-
ffiti
\±>
Ex. 31. J. p. 190
S.
i/
Bach: Chorale Es
ist
2 genug (Cantata 60), Werke, xn
Scarlatti's scale of tensions resides in the pull
,
exerted by tonali-
more or less remote from the tonal center, and in the clashes and momentary vertical intensifications created by passing notes and non-harmony tones against the simple harmonic pattern. Scarties
latti avoids the visceral pull by destroying the horizontal interweaving except for the simplest and most obvious connecting forces, i.e., dominants, relative majors and minors, and stepwise
melodic motion. These he decorates and arranges as to give the illusion of a
much
richer
the one he actually uses. •
222
•
in such a
manner
harmonic vocabulary than
SCARLATTI'S
HARMONY
Broad, open, and, to a certain extent,
flat
harmonies have long
especially of that in the
been a characteristic of Italian music, more harmotheatrical style where passionate declamation soars above expressivenies that in themselves contribute little to heighten the ness, that
seem
at
times even to have very
little to
do with the
much more in terms Yet how often the common-
free flowing melodies above. Italians think
of upper parts than in terms of basses.
and early Verdi become infused with
place basses of Bellini
tragic
grace by the miracles performed above them. Scarlatti's
wildest freedoms are rendered intelligible by the
Example
simplicity of his basic harmonies (see
32, "corrected" by
Longo, for four consecutive sevenths, one after another, when they and are but surface decoration of a simple cadential formula), by the
clarity of their
attachment to a tonal center, whether that
2
Ex. 32. Venice
ill
17
3
4
13
(Longo 309) K. 222
[In the original, and in Longo's text.
The
was given by Longo
original
in
a
footnote.]
On
the other hand, the
Scarlatti
slow movements to
center be fixed or momentarily shifting.
apparent loose-jointedness of
many
exan ear accustomed to greater intensity of individual harmonies around the plains itself in the orientation of simple harmonies
tonal center.
Harmonic progressions
that
knit
well and sound
simple and clear in fast passages sometimes seem to lose their momentum at a slow tempo, unless heard in terms of the long span •
of tonal structure.
223
•
HARMONY
SCARLATTI'S
treatment: dropping and adding of voices, transposition of voices, harmonic ellipse, pedal points both real and understood For an understanding of the consistency of music
style in his harpsichord
it is
harmonic
Scarlatti's
necessary to take into considera-
tion several typical Scarlattian procedures that distinguish
such music, including his
own
vocal music, as
is
more
it
from
readily ex-
plainable in terms of the conventional theory of the eighteenth
and
nineteenth centuries. Scarlatti's impressionistic
most of the freedom
handling of the harpsichord exhibits
in the horizontal connection of vertical
which that instrument shares with the guitar. This
is
harmony
particularly
apparent in Scarlatti's habit of dropping or adding voices without preparation, either for purposes of harpsichord sound or inflection, or of
harmonic
color, or of deliberate
ambiguity where needed.
Continually certain elements or filling-up intervals of a chord are omitted, for example, the third or even the fifth of a final tonic
chord
in a cadence, in order to give
lightness or fluidity.
it
They
are left to be understood or taken for granted. So they should re-
main, since their actual presence
Longo's
fillings
up
is
highly undesirable (as
of chords will demonstrate).
network of harmony
is
The
many
horizontal
seldom sustained by more than the two
outer parts, to which the others act as mere supplements or Soler says in his tion (p. 84), ".
Have .
.
de
la
tion
it
filling.
Modulation, Chapter X, on modula-
[All the principal
movements
be concentrated in the outer voices because]
two parts
of
better, rather than those in the
.
.
.
of parts should
the ear hears these
middle, and in
all
modula-
will be observed that the voices in the middle, those being
the Alto and Tenor, only accompany, in accordance with the
consonance that
Most
is
to be
produced."
of Scarlatti's "forbidden" consecutives,
when
not explain-
ing themselves in terms of instrumental doubling and reinforce-
ment,
as
do most of
his parallel octaves
and many of
his ap-
parently unconnected nonvocal progressions of parts, can be ex-
plained as resulting from his inveterate habit at the keyboard of •
224
HARMONY
SCARLATTI'S
The
transposing and interchanging parts. sion
is
perfectly correct in terms of the
the eye only, not the ear,
is
basic
harmonic progres-
two guiding outer parts
;
troubled by the lack of correspondence
between the conduct of the actual written parts and the conventional conduct of the
they represent. into an
harmonies whose interchangeable inner voices
When,
in a
dominant seventh,
upper part the borrowed subdominant
never puts
it
into the top part but allows
it
to
Scarlatti transposes bass, nota bene,
merge
he
into the tex-
ture of the inner parts.
Frequently a progression that
chainment of harmonies for
common
actually based
is
fulfilling all the
tones or suspensions
is
harpsichord in terms of consecutive
realizecf
fifths
on a simple en-
orthodox requirements
by
Scarlatti at the
and apparently entirely
nonvocal movement of parts, as in Example 33. Yet regarded
Ex
-
33- Venice ix 7
in
(Longo 275) K. 394
terms of interchange and transposition of parts, such a passage
is
seen to outline a progression of the utmost simplicity and ortho-
doxy, and to be rich in
common
tones.
(Example 34)
hx. 34.
Quite frequent, especially
in the early sonatas,
is
the
downward
sequence of sixth chords, realized in broken consecutive
tween the upper
fifths be-
(Example 35) This is of course, merely the conventional three-voice progression with the voices interchanged parts.
a manner that sounds altogether proper on the harpsichord. (Example 36)
in
•
225
•
SCARLATTI'S
HARMONY
Ex. 35. Essercizi 18 (Longo 416) K. 18
~~r=i
^T-TTir
HD h
Ex. 36
An
excellent
of octave
464 and
its
example of
Scarlatti's transposition of voices
a small detail to be
is
parallel passage.
found
and
measures 28-33 °f Sonata
in
(Example 37) This
is
not immediately
[Allegro]
Ex. 37. Venice xi 11 (Longo 151) K. 464 explainable in
its
"correction," as
examples of
own terms and might
it
Scarlatti's practice.
the
F
sharp eliminated by
E)
is
a suspension that has
But
in
easily
move an
editor to a
did Longo, were he not forewarned by other
What
been prepared
terms of vocal harmony
voice, an octave above.
F
actually happening
is
Longo from measure 29
The
it
in the
is
that
(in favor of an
preceding measure.
has been prepared in another
real progression of the
upper voice
in
D. Longo's "correction," moreover, flattens out the harmonic shape of the phrase by eliminating the vertical intensity from measure 29 and giving it approximately the same value as measure 30. measures 28-31
is
G,
sharp, E,
Frequently Scarlatti will not only leave the individual intervals of a chord to be understood or taken for granted by the hearer j he will also omit an entire
chord or leave
it
to be taken for granted
in the general sense of the progression. Associated •
226
•
with this
is
his
SCARLATTI'S
HARMONY
practice of contracting essential steps of a progression so that they
Example
are not immediately recognizable. (See
One
47.)
of Scarlatti's favorite devices for binding together unex-
pected progressions of
harmony and
and superposition of harmonies
is
for preparing the overlapping
the pedal point. Except in his
fugues, Scarlatti's pedal points occur but briefly on basses.
For
that
matter Scarlatti's real basses, as focal points of tonality, are to be
found
as often in the
middle or on top,
as
on the bottom of
his
musical fabric. (See Sonata 14, measures 12-17, etc -> f° r a domi-
nant pedal held high in the
while the lower part
air
rises to
meet
or see Sonata 12, for a series of clanging pedal points rising
itj
upper
in thirds in the
however,
Scarlatti's
part, in
measures 14-18,
etc.)
Generally,
pedal points are imbedded in the inner parts
and maintained by the
reiterations of figuration or allowed
mo-
mentarily to disappear or to yield temporarily to decorative shifts of harmonic detail. Often in inner voices, occasional pedal points, as
if
played by horns or by the open strings of a guitar, gleam like
polished highlights on rough bronze. (See Sonata 8.)
Many
of Scarlatti's pedal points appear to take their inspiration
from the open
strings of the guitar, as in Sonata 26,
to be conceived
which appears
almost entirely in terms of that instrument. Nearly
half the 148 measures of this sonata contain unmistakable pedal points.
The
half
first
is
dominated by two principal pedals, one on
the dominant of the dominant (measures 30-42) and one on the
dominant
that,
although occasionally broken, actually rules the
remainder of the is
a
first
half (measures 43-68).
more obvious example than usual
(Example 38) This
of the gigantic cadence that
rules the essential structure of the Scarlatti sonata.
In an internal pedal "corrected" by
Longo
in
Sonata 321
in
A
major, Scarlatti contrives in both halves of the sonata to have the note
B
sounding throughout
ample of the fundamental
this passage.
This
an excellent ex-
is
simplicity of Scarlatti's tonal thinking.
In this piece he has early established the dominant, but he needs the dominant of the dominant, so without allotting section as he usually does, he simply keeps the note
other things are going on,
jamming
the
harmony
it
a separate
sounding while
together. In the
restatement he uses this same dominant of the dominant to add •
227
•
HARMONY
SCARLATTI'S [Tresio]
S>
p-
—
-^-
IS
r~M
"
f J~3 $+$-]*~r^ •ij
r
r
J
p
v
—
J
mi r
J
J
-^l
Ji.jy^^_
J
j
* i~ •
'
m
^1
1
W-PW
J
J
r r r
r
j
JW
k
rr
j
r
r
rrrr
j
^
3Vi
^
^/
tp*
~^p -
4.
rflprq Puesto
**\
as consonant.
[VI]
[For explanation of Rule
j
Not
III
_
Salida
,
—
i^-ftf
rC
Ex. 50. Soler, Chapter x [Soler writes these examples on four staves, soprano, alto, tenor, bass.] 1. (Linking by common tone or suspension): In moving from one key to another one should make use of a note that forms a consonance with the tonic of both keys. (For example, the third of E flat equals the fifth of C major.) In the absence of this com-
mon
tone, a suspension should be used to bind the
two keys (or
the chords representing them) together. 2.
(Use of the dominant
to establish a key):
modulation one should reach the 3.
fifth of
To
establish
a
the desired tonality.
(Enharmonic modulation): Enharmonic change of notation
from sharps
to flats or vice versa will facilitate
many
a distant
modulation. 4.
(Binding by nonsimultaneous movement of voices):
better
when
In every progression the principal
two outer
It
is
move at once but alternately. movement takes place in the
the four voices do not all
parts, to
which the inner parts are but accompaniment.
Soler illustrates these rules with examples of modulations into
E
from the remaining twenty-two major and minor keys, and with analytical comment on the examples. These examples are all written in free keyboard style, generally stricter and more conflat
sequent than Scarlatti in the conduct of inner parts, but like Scarlatti,
Soler
is
not frightened by an occasional octave doubling be'
245
*
SCARLATTI'S tween
In the fourth example, illustrating the modulation
parts.
F
from
parallel
minor
to
and
fifths
\(l\\r^
1
E
flat
major, there occur typical Scarlattian
(Example 51) Soler concludes
octaves.
i-f tS r
rVfr
'
A,^
rT "
r
Salida
Puesto
it;
HARMONY
J
"[
«
*c
-e
;
Y p.
** "'
L
Vv
Ex. 51. Soler,
his
f
109, Ex. 4
demonstration with eight modulatory preludes for keyboard that share
many
of the mannerisms of notation of the Scarlatti sonatas,
as
example the same signs for ornamentation, and directions such Arbitri for ad libitum and deto solo to indicate a glissando.
is
important.
for
between temporary and structural modulation
Soler's distinction
The
art of
temporary modulation was well known to
the experimental chromaticism of the seventeenth century, but
without relation to a coordinated scheme of tonality based upon the assumption of equal temperament. Soler's rules and examples illustrate all of Scarlatti's
immediate procedures for getting from
one key to another, but they contribute
modulatory system
However, tions
may
little to
explain Scarlatti's
as such or his conception of tonal structure.
in the light of Soler's principles, Scarlatti's
be divided into two
classes,
modula-
those which proceed by
smooth enchainment of diatonically moving
parts,
common
tones,
and enharmonic changes and those which jump abruptly from one key to another, generally after a pause. The former belong to Soler's classification as temporary or quick modu-
suspensions,
lations
;
inasmuch as they
may
be undertaken in a more or
less
limited degree without entirely depending on the tonal balance of the piece as a whole. But in such measure as their importance
is
extended, they become structural modulations as well as temporary transitions or decorations.
The modulations by jumps
fre-
quently explain themselves only in the light of their general tonal context,
in
other words as structural modulations, despite the
concealed smoothness with which they are often prepared. Both kinds of modulation are designed not merely to get from one key to another, but to set
up
cross currents of tonality •
246
'
and
to punctuate
SCARLATTI'S established tonality with
ambiguity, and
all
harmony without
moments
HARMONY of deliberate questioning and
the delights that result therefrom. Scarlatti's
his
modulatory technique would be
indeed.
flat
TEMPORARY AND STRUCTURAL MODULATION I
mention here a few
lations,
characteristic
examples of
Scarlatti's
modu-
but only in the light of their temporary and rhetorical
significance, not in their structural
function in relation to their
context as a whole. Particularly charming in their ambiguity are the modulatory passages in
smooth diatonic enchainment that lead the ear
to hear
new change of harmony with surprise, even though the harmony may be travelling over a well-known path, or, indeed, reeach
turning presently to
smooth and
its
brilliantly
starting point.
Such passages are
conducted argument or jeu
double meanings, such as
may
deliriously
and
hold an entire dinner table or drawing room
in
like a
d'es-prit, full
all too
of
infrequently
enchanted suspense.
(Example 52 and Example 53) Surely Scarlatti has written nothing more poetically evocative or mysterious than the modulations in Sonata 260 or the stepwise passages in Sonatas 518 and 420. With what delight one momentarily surrenders one's sense of direction! Some of Scarlatti's most mystifying modulations combine smooth enchainment with wholesale transposition of parts. One is sur-
Possibly a copyist's error.
Ex. 52. Parma xv 38 (Longo 396) K. 551 '
247
'
SCARLATTI'S
HARMONY
r*
"fTf"*
rf>r\
«TCJ and ffyj with plenty of rhetorical pauses, while the left hand apparently pursues an inexorable movement of eighth notes. I say apparently, because if the right hand is to have any freedom and is not to be driven into mechanical
right
crowding of one rhythmic fragment on another without any possibility
of punctuation, the left
hand must throw its weight on the them so as to diminish the
offbeat eighths, imperceptibly delaying •
301
'
'PERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS first to second which would inevitably pull the right hand along with it and leave it no freedom. Given the correct phrasing and the appearance of stability, it matters little whether the right hand actually coincides with all of the eighths of the left hand. With a difference of sonority between the hands by means of the touch, the right hand can be given all the freedom of a soprano against an orchestra. (For a completely paralyzing phrasing of this passage, see Longo's edition.)
drive from
In the light of the foregoing, the remaining divisions of rhyth-
mic impulse are
remainder of the sonata,
easily located in the
measures 21, 23, 25, 29, 34, 43, etc. There remains only the precaution that the rhythmic stability of measures 25-29 de-
namely
at
pends on the opposition of the upbeat figure inherent in the melodic contour of the
it
to the right,
is
likely to
destructive in this piece
hand
left
right, that stressing of the
is
downbeat of the
against the
downbeat by the
instead of leaving
left,
What
produce an upset.
can be utterly
downbeat rhythm, unprepared, or un-
opposed by upbeats. For nothing the second eighth of the left
in the
hand
world, for example, should
figure in measures 44-45 be
from the impulse given by the upbeat. the smooth sixteenth-note motion should be detached from the preceding eighth. (The
accented. It should relax
Moreover,
contrast
to
against
it,
reader
who
it
is
with
following these observations with Longo's edition
will experience an understandable difficulty, for
articulation.)
One
further parting
clear that the Presto with
which
comment:
Longo's phrasings
and not on rhythmic
are based almost entirely on swell dynamics
it
Scarlatti has
should be perfectly
marked
this piece in
no way prescribes a vertiginous rate of speed, that a speed of
MM.
J
=
120
is
quite sufficient
if
its
declamation and inherent
color are to be brought out.
Concomitant is
unimportance of the bar
in Scarlatti with the
line
the rhythmic independence of the separate voices, the freedom
with which they interlock and compensate one another, occasionally coincide
and move
apart, exert cross influences.
independence and interaction of voices
ony
is
based. (See Sonata 263)
Even
Scarlatti's
in the
On
this
combined
rhythmic polyph-
dance pieces based on a
regular and driving pulse simultaneous accents in both voices are frequently highly undesirable. For example in Sonata 421, meas•
302
•
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS ures 3
unqualified accents in both hands on the
iff.,
A in motion
set
the soprano
of
harmony one
to a bar
for all of
repetitions ; the
its
beats
suffices to
movement
and the accent of the three
so clear
is
simultaneous notes on the
first
(Example 4) One impulse
kill this passage.
completely
beat so strong that the passage
first
needs the syncopating balance furnished by the second beat of the left
hand. This passage should sound as
I
J.
jn
J"3
y
1 y
1
y
h
y
y
played by four different
mm mm
J.
n mm n
J.
if
y
y
Jl
r
1
r
rn rn
y
y
si
Ex. 4 sections of an orchestra, each pursuing fact of coincidence tion. Suffice
it
its
own rhythm. The mere
strong enough, and needs no further accentua-
is
to give the basses the sonority of
trombones or the
heavy tubas of a brass band, against the offbeats of the
clarinets
some other instrument of middle range, while the flutes and oboes pursue their separate way on top. In the final closing theme, full of inherent cross accents, the declamation of the two voices or
should hardly ever coincide.
Nearly
all
of Scarlatti's music
is
rich in syncopations that
some-
times play the role of cross accents and sometimes frankly represent
displacements of pulse. Yet
it is
equally rich in syncopations not im-
mediately shown in the note picture, but implied by melodic con-
by a single voice, and by the
tours, outlinings of additional voices
cross relationship of fast notes
for example, except for
its
moving
against slow. Sonata 105,
imitative opening, has a superficial note
picture that gives the impression of a predominantly style (unfortunately this sonata, like so
homophonic
borne out by Longo's phrase markings), yet
many
of the others, has all the rhythmic po-
lyphony of the Spanish dance. Almost nowhere
in this piece
should
accents fall simultaneously in both voices, nor has the bar line any
function other than that of indicating a basic meter that has
al-
ready been established by the network of cross accents between the two voices.
The
accents
and bursts of rhythmic
303
*
intensity in
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS conditioned by melodic contours and by
this piece are entirely
changes of note value and of harmony. (See the following section
on phrasing,
articulation,
and
inflection.)
Sixteenths played against eighth notes should in most cases furnish syncopated cross accents on the sixteenths falling between
when they form
the eighth notes, especially notes. In
measures 19-20, for example, there
momentum
in each
hand
that lasts for the
is
dissonant passing
a burst of rhythmic
two measures, but
a sixteenth note apart between each hand. In
measure
1 1
it
falls
and others
of this kind, the second eighth note of the bass represents a crescen-
rhythm that has begun with the eighth-note motion. The right hand above it must be played melodically, as a long upbeat, if all the rhythmic richness is to be extracted from the do
in the
phrase. In passages like that beginning on measure 27, the left
hand should pursue right. It shapes its
its
inexorable course, knowing nothing of the
own
phrase from measure 27 to measure 42
while the right hand weaves like the gestures of a
all sorts of cross accents against
it,
dancer against the steady beat of a percussion
band.
Nothing
is
more
fatal in the closing
ure 71 than an accent on the
first bea.t
theme beginning
at
meas-
of the measure in these basses.
One rhythmic impulse moves from
1
the eighth notes of measure
71 to the longer note on measure 76, and thence from the eighth
note of the same measure to measure 83. Against this bass, the
changes
in
melodic direction in the right hand provide
all sorts
of syncopation and opportunity for cross accents. But nowhere in this
whole passage does a simultaneous accent
lie
in
both hands.
PHRASING, ARTICULATION, AND INFLECTION and staccato marks are so few as to be Some, however, may be found in Essercizi
Scarlatti's slurs
negligible.
practically 16, Venice
xiv 4, 40, 45, 46, 54-56, Venice x 9, Venice xi 18, to cite a very few examples. Those in Venice xv 4 and 5 are particularly complete.
marks appear in Venice x 1 and 3. Little trace of Scarlatti's and staccato marks can be found in Longo's edition.
Staccato slurs
1 Measure numbers here refer to my edition (Sixty Sonatas), not to Longo. Between measures 60 and 61 of Longo's edition, three measures (corresponding to his measures 49 to 51) have been omitted.
'
304
*
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS Longo's own phrasings cannot be too assiduously disregarded. Despite their
many good
they are frequently debatable
qualities,
in syntax and highly injurious to clear melodic articulation and to
rhythmic
They
vitality.
are nevertheless guided by a genuine
them dangerously convincing in The only way to that the player is away at least sensitively is to clear and play Scarlatti intelligently of editor's text and to make accretions the in imagination all the musical sense that often makes
led to disregard their defects.
No
one's
own
make
use of the long slur in a sense other than the carrying over
phrasings.
one, however, even for himself, should
of syllables in vocal music or of slur as a
means of
bowing
in string music.
The long
indicating melodic divisions or phrase lengths
has a tendency to be confused with an indication of continuous legato all
and
sound
to destroy all inner declamation. It threatens to reduce
to
vowels without consonants. For the player who wishes
and groupings of
visually to indicate musical punctuation
the use of
commas and square
In the sense in which
performance
is
I
brackets
use the
is
word
notes,
far safer.
here, phrasing in musical
the uniting of what belongs together and the
separation of what belongs apart. It parallels the casting of words into phrases, of
movements
into gestures ;
and sentences, the
of those phrases
art
it
is
the punctuation
of syntactically correct
and telling rhetorical declamation, of movement balanced by countermovement or by repose, of tensions balanced by releases. Inseparable from good phrasing is the articulation of melodic intervals and contours, and of the scale and contrast of rhythmic and correct accentuawords and of the vowels and consonants of their com-
values. It parallels the clear pronunciation tion of
A
ponent syllables.
further concomitant of good phrasing
is
the
correct inflection of harmonies, of the relationships of consqnances
and dissonances, of the gamut of
vertical
intensities
in
the
in-
herent terms of their context.
Good
phrasing
is
first
of all determined by inherent musical
values, to which the caprices
and variations of the performer's
declamation are but secondary. Most editor's phrasings, by obscuring the distinction between the inherent and the arbitrary, mislead
more than they
instruct.
Legato and
staccato are not absolutes ,
they are only means, not ends, of articulation and phrasing. '
305
'
"PERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS Degrees of legato and
staccato are subject to continual adjust-
The
ment, according to instrumental and acoustical conditions.
kind of too-short staccato with which most pianists approach the harpsichord, for example, utterly destroys the possibility of an
eloquent and sonorous gradation of sound duration on that
in-
strument. I do not intend to discuss here the endless possible gradations, sustaining or nonsustaining insofar as they affect the
overall sound of a piece.
Nor do
I
intend to discuss the means by
which a player of a nonsustaining instrument or piano
may way
in such a
like the harpsichord
adjust the relationships of long notes to shorter ones as to
make tones seem to sustain and to contribute when actually they do not. I intend here
to a sustained texture
and staccato largely as means of musical articulaand phrasing, as means of bringing out the melodic, harmonic, and rhythmic content of a piece of music. to discuss legato
tion
There are composers who themselves have given
indications of
legato and staccato that are so complete and so completely united
with the inherent syntax of the music
itself that
they form an
extraordinarily faithful guide to the executant, that
mere
respect
of the text ensures a relatively high level of performance. I
am
thinking particularly of certain works of Mozart, of nearly
the
works of Chopin or Hindemith, when available
in
an unadulterated
because of the sparsity of his indications, Scar-
text.
In this
latti,
like Bach, does not belong.
class,
all
His note-picture must be not only
respected but also supplemented by the performer. in the following passages
is
much
not so
My
intention
to attempt a historical
reconstruction of Scarlatti's phrasing as to indicate to the reader
own method
my
of supplementing Scarlatti's missing directions to
the performer. This involves certain basic principles that are actually applicable to nearly all music.
What
precisely are the expressive values of legato
and
staccato?
Vocally, legato corresponds to the unbroken continuation
vowel sound, while
staccato in
momentary punctuation
many
of a
aspects corresponds to the
of a continuous sound by a consonant. In
terms of gesture, legato corresponds to a continuous movement, while staccato in but leave
Hence
its
its
various characters
may
suggest a
movement
realization free to the imagination of the dancer.
the frequence of staccato upbeats. All that implies gathering '
306
•
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS of energy
and
by a spring
release
its
is
suggested by staccato,
all
that suggests arriving at a certain point without continuously prescribing the way.
Hence
the usefulness of detache in accompanying
dancers and in achieving both freedom and precision in ensemble playing.
All musical phrasing stems either from the vocal sense or from the dance gesture. But in instrumental music the underlying vocal
phrase or the fundamental rhythmical gesture
is
not always im-
mediately apparent in the note-picture because of the overlaying of decoration that
rhythmic
not literally executable by the voice, or of
is
main gesture. Sometimes
details that are subsidiary to the
a melodic line
is
read literally in terms of
to be
its
The
notation.
separate parts of sixteenth-century church music, for example, are
always to be read and interpreted literally in terms of the voice,
whereas
in their instrumental counterparts the vocal line often un-
Sometimes a subsidiary
derlies a not entirely vocal decoration.
figure or a fast passage
is
fundamental interval or
to be read as a as
mere decoration of
a
a kind of blur of sound in which
rhythmic and melodic details are absorbed into the general sense of the passage. Frequently vocal and rhythmic declamation occur on
A
several levels at once.
passage which represents a fundamental
unit or a decoration of a fundamental step
out slighting the vocal inflection of
rhythmic
its
may
be read as such with-
component
intervals or the
activity of its subsidiary figures.
Let us consider for the moment the melodic read literally, that
as if the voice
is
every detail of the notation.
The
line that
putting
down
is
not neces-
the keys accurately and automatically like
punching a button for each note, nor agreeable tone in the process. is
to be
essential quality of rendering a
melodic line expressively on a keyboard instrument sarily
is
were expected to negotiate
What
is
it
the achieving of an
brings a melodic line to
life
the imaginary duplication or suggestion of what the voice has
to do, ideally speaking, to negotiate that line, tions of negotiating
melody.
it.
The problem
Therein is
lies
literally
and of the
sensa-
the physical expressiveness of
how
to get
from one note
to
another, other than by merely punching buttons that correspond in
time and pitch to the arrangement of the notes;
words, the vocal declamation of intervals. •
307
•
it
is,
in
other
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS On
a keyboard instrument all intervals feel alike, except those
demanding
leaps,
displacements of the hand, or unaccustomed
stretches or combinations of ringers.
For the voice stepwise and
leaping motion never feel the same. Each interval has a different character according to the sensation of executing
it;
never feel like a second, nor a
Ascending
fifth like a sixth.
a fourth will
not
is
the same as descending ; notes that outline changes of melodic direction have a different sensation essential expressive quality of a
from those
do
that
melodic interval
lies
not.
The
not in the
notes themselves but in the sface between the notes y in the
manner
which one gets from one note to another. The assumption that musical value lies in the notes themselves and not in the transition in
from one Its
to another
the prime heresy of the keyboard player.
is
spread to vocal teaching
and out-of-tune singing
is
the cause of most of the unmusical
heard today. There
to be
no inherent
is
musical reason for the piano to have had such a disastrous fluence
on
singers,
Without going
had
it
into details or into theoretical explanations, I
have never failed to get a tion
from
a pupil
precept: Sing
and
in-
been properly employed.
who
sensitive
and expressive vocal declama-
made an
once
effort to grasp the simple
everything you play. Use your fingers
listen to
hammers. and relatively unresponsive keyboard of what sometimes seems more a machine than an instrument, be it harpsichord, piano, or organ, achieves its own specific color and its own specific value in relation
as extensions of the vocal chords, not as automatic little
Once
this precept
to the phrase
it
is
obeyed, each interval on the
stiff
helps to build.
In such vocal treatment of melodic intervals
it
becomes readily
apparent that stepwise moving notes are more likely to be given
an unbroken legato than leaping notes, that leaping breaks in a stepwise line otherwise unqualified by rhythmic or harmonic context are likely to
demand
expression in a detache.
Let us examine the influence of rhythm on is
to be taken literally.
By
quantitative values, of long
rhythm here and short
I
a melodic line that
refer to the scale of
notes, their gradations
mathematical proportions, and not to meter or pulse. influence of
rhythm on
a
melody occurs
in a
and
The primary
change of values from
long to short or from short to long. Notes of the same rhythmic '
308
'
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS value, unless otherwise separated by their context, tend to belong together. Translated into terms of imaginary gesture in which
each note
is
movement, Slow notes
when
to be taken literally, that fast
to be represented
is
not absorbed into a unit, into a passage,
The
important points, rhyth-
melody are those lying between
mically, in any
a long slow note
J„JJ or a series of faster notes, and which a slower speed of movement is established after
and a shorter those in
faster note
namely with the repose represented by a
fast notes,
or the change of rate of
J J J,
movement
single slow
established by the
second of a group of slow notes following fast notes
(Obviously the change the
by a
in relation to fast often represent repose. Fast notes,
their individuality
maintain a higher level of intensity.
note,
is,
notes require a greater effort than slow notes.
in
movement
JJJJ.
J J J J
not yet announced during
is
slow note of such a passage.)
first
In relation to a pulse, whether basic or temporary, the notes of a
melody
are active or inactive. In a duple rhythm, or merely in
a group of two notes, for that matter, the second since the first alone
is
powerless to
make
triple
rhythm the second and third
active.
The
entire secret of
is
the active note,
the relation clear. In a
are rhythmically the most
ensemble playing or of the maintenance
tempo lies in the treatment of the and third beats of a V* meter, or in the second and third of a triple meter, in
or imperceptible alteration of a offbeat notes, in the second their subdivisions, in
passing notes, in short, in everything that itself is
powerless, except after the fact.
corrects a
tempo with downbeats
is
A
is
off
by what
mand
is
One who
who
The
beat
catches or
merely giving a primitive
metronomic indication of a tempo that requires of time to grasp.
the beat.
conductor
at least a short space
prepares a change or correction of tempo
not downbeat can maintain a direct and flexible com-
at all times.
As the notes themselves are important only
relation to the intervals that lie
between them, so the beat
is
in
im-
manner in which it is approached. For example, when the tempo of an Allegro of a Bach concerto is about to go on the rocks, the secret of saving it lies not in the downbeats but in the eighth notes that subdivide the 44 beat. To return for the moment to rhythm, regardless of pulse, we will find that if otherwise unqualified the notes of a melody will portant only in relation to the
*
309
*
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS fall into certain indivisible
rhythmic
units.
These
broken or uninterrupted rhythmic impulses. otherwise unqualified,
sufficient to set in
is
units represent un-
One rhythmic
motion a
impulse,
series of notes of
equal value JJJJ, or a series of notes moving from fast to slow J 0/ Wherever fast movement follows slow notes or a pause, (This new imnew rhythmic impulse is required J J^.JJ J pulse may be subsidiary to the larger context to such an extent that it passes unnoticed.) The principal divisions of rhythmic units JJ J
.
a
J,
.
therefore fall on changes from slow to fast motion.
Frequently the divisions of melodic contour or of rhythmic impulse
may
gether. It units
counteract each other.
An
sufficient to
So far
I
At other times they work
to-
on these divisions and the rhythmic and melodic
bounded by them
are based. is
is
that all literate articulation
and phrasing
understanding of the basic principles of such divisions
make Longo's long
slurs forever unnecessary.
have spoken largely of melodic contours that are to be
interpreted literally as tiated in imagination
if
each note were individually to be nego-
by the voice and by a corresponding physical
movement. Many, however, are the groups of notes which amalgamate into units or blurs of sound. Such especially are rapid scale figures and melodies outlining arpeggios. They generally turn out to be decorations of a single important note or harmony and
demand only
the treatment given to a single note.
Many
highly
decorated passages or instrumental figures have at their center a
demand the same interpretation as a Of prime importance in such passages are the
kernel of simple notes that literal
vocal line.
fundamental basses and the movements of simple harmony which they determine. Frequently the guiding melodic element of a passage
is its
bass.
One
of the surest methods of putting oneself
musically on the right track in an unfamiliar or puzzling piece is
to sing the essential basses.
be partially understood are
Over them
still
and thereby make themselves
figures that
may
only
likely to fall correctly into place
clear.
Phrases, in contrast to the small indivisible rhythmic and melodic
units that
overlap,
compose them, are generally separated;
marked
at the point of
or, if
they
overlapping by a point of relative
repose in the harmony, or by a turning point or pause in the rhythmic gesture, or by the imaginary taking of breath in the •
310
•
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS vocal sense.
The
basis of all
melodic phrases
is
vocal.
Even
they
if
exceed the breath span, they are based on an idea) extension of All vocal phrases that are not mere fragments of
span.
that
phrases initiate with the expansion of the lungs and take place
during the holding or exhalation of a single breath. instrumentalist
is
guided by the same
economy and
The
sensitive
distribution of
expansion and contraction as the singer, ruled by the same tensions
and
diaphragm. (For a characteristic sonata based
releases of the
on the breath phrase, see Sonata 185.) Frequently the dance phrase takes precedence over the breath phrase.
phrase
More than by an imaginary vocal may be sustained by a continuity
feeling, an instrumental
of gesture, one phrase
divided from another by a change in direction or by a change in character of the gesture. latti
The imaginary choreographing
sonatas cannot be overdone.
Many
Spanish dance pieces, are ruled far
movement than by est in
of Scar-
of them, especially the
more by the
sense of bodily
vocal feeling. Scarlatti's vocal feeling
the pieces of his Italianate heritage. It
is
is
ble even in the popular music of today that the Italians relatively restricted
strong-
distinctly observa-
have
a
rhythmic sense, that they are dominated by
the voice, whereas the Spaniards have the most highly developed
rhythmic sense of any European nation.
from music, makes
apart
itself
The
difference,
quite
perfectly obvious in the spoken
languages, in the observable physical carriage and dance gestures of the
two peoples.
Scarlatti
maximum
is
a past master of phrase structure, of achieving the
from
and extensions and the insertion of irregular phrases, whether they be dominated by the voice or by the dance. Even in the pieces of rigorously unchanging pulse, nothing is more fatal effect
juxtapositions, contractions,
of phrases of varying lengths
than counting in terms of the pulse rather than in terms of the phrase lengths that help to create the pulse and give significance. in time, all
Beyond the elementary
it
life
and
business of learning to play
counting should be done in dancer's terms,
the duration of a breath or of a gesture, no matter
in
terms of
how
irregular
and seemingly ridiculous the mathematics.
The double and latti
triple
repeated phrases so frequent
in
Scar-
often raise a problem in counting. Despite the frequent eight*
3"
*
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS eenth-century examples and the examples in Scarlatti himself,
nothing
many
is
more
fatal to the
a Scarlatti piece
rhythmic structure or the continuity of
than the relentless separation of repeated
phrases or the excessive application to
Many
a Scarlatti repeated
phrase
them of echo dynamics.
not intended to Le separated
is
from its mate or mates or to be counted separately. Many a twomeasure repeated phrase gains in effect by being counted, not as one, two, one, two; but as one, two, three, four. The third measure of a four-measure phrase, in relation both to breath and to gesture, has a feeling entirely different from that of the first measure of
Even Scarlatti's triple repetitions by being lumped together as AAA rather
a repeated two-measure phrase.
frequently gain in effect
than separated into
ABA. When
repeated phrases are separated
into single statements they often lose their contrast with phrases
that are actually stated only once.
The
echo inflections intended to
give variety to repeated phrases often produce the opposite
Three and four of
a four-measure phrase,
if
effect.
played as such,
in-
evitably sound different, by reason of their situation in the imagi-
nary breath or gesture, from one and two. These are things known to
every dancer, but which frequently escape the keyboard player
who
is
rooted to his chair in imagination as well as in physical
fact.
In any piece
in
more than one
voice,
whether real or imaginary,
an inseparable element of the shaping of a good phrase correct inflection of
its
basic
harmony.
It
passing that most involuntary vagaries of
may
is
the
be remarked in
tempo or
difficulties of
ensemble stem not only from unnatural declamation of melodic intervals inflection.
or rhythmic
The
fragments, but from incorrect harmonic
progress from consonance to dissonance and from
dissonance to consonance underlies and rules the melodic and
rhythmic structure of any phrase involving harmony. All vertical
harmony
is identifiable in terms of the gamut of harmonic intensifrom consonance to dissonance, in terms of the progressions of its context, whether moving toward or away from greater intensity, and in terms of the modifications induced by suspensions and by changing and passing notes. No two different vertical combinations of sounds, whether basic or temporary, have the same intensity. The compilation of a theoretical scale of intensities
ties
'
3
J
2
*
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS unnecessary in practice, and even dangerous in view of the con-
is
harmonic values by their context. But the
stant modifications of ear, if
given a chance and not misled by inert and unsensing pre-
conceptions or habits, can always be counted on to render a correct
As with melodic
evaluation.
once
inflection,
I
have persuaded
a
pupil really to listen, to divest himself of unmusical automatisms
produced by the
of the instrument, by incomplete
inflexibilities
musical perception, or by the precepts of an fully responsive technical
specific directions or theoretical analysis
and
perfectly correct inely musical all
human
is
no
harmonic
sensitive
secret, partakes of
them
beings have within
choose not to ignore
it.
dictates of habit or the
artificial
mechanism, he has never
failed,
from me, inflection.
to
in
common,
without
produce a
What
nothing occult ;
and not
it
is
is
genu-
what
will they only
In sharpening one's ear beyond the empty
mechanical opposition of the instrument,
method suffices. It suffices to compare the intensity of one harmony with another, to ask which of two or three or more harmonies is the more or most intense, first separately and then a simple
induced by their context.
in relation to possible modifications
The
center of physical response to the tensions
harmony
and
releases of
the solar plexus. It acts like an infinitely sensitive
is
seismograph, recording and responding to the countless possible inflections
one
who
and
sings
progression
is
variations of harmonic context. That is why anyand listens to the component voices of a harmonic bound to discover their correct inflection, to sense
physically
and not necessarily
intervals,
of
intellectually the nature of sensitive
resolving dissonances,
suspensions against other voices. alone,
is
of
The a
pull
of
dissonances
or
solar plexus, unlike the voice
capable of sensing a multiplicity of voices and of cross
currents at the ing.
the
The
same time.
brain
alone has
It is
the source of polyphonic playto
little
do with the development
polyphonic ear, of the capacity to hear and develop
set of
independently functioning voices and to sense their
action.
No
a
inter-
keyboard technique has more than an incomplete musical
value which does not
make
of the hands not only an extension of
the body as a whole, but also of the ruling center of both, the solar plexus.
The most
capacities of voice
sensitive
and
manner
solar plexus '
of extending to the hands the to
is
3*3
*
develop
in
them
a sense of
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS constantly fluctuating tension and release in relation to the har-
monic, rhythmic, and melodic context of the phrase one
is
playing.
A
hand thus developed is capable of shaping a phrase within itself, of contracting and relaxing with the music. It is capable of rooting every action in the musical structure
itself.
No
musical
phrase remains on an unchanging level of tension. Except for
moments
of complete repose, one
away from
or relaxing release. It
and and
is
always moving toward tension
tension
always counterbalanced by
is
the correct placing and balancing of these tensions
is
releases
it;
which make of
all
musical and technical problems
one and the same. This
their solutions
the completely relaxed hand,
when
is
why
the notion of
carried towards
its
verbally
suggested conclusion, can be such a dangerous heresy. Fortunately
many
releases.
to
who talk about relaxed playing do not do it. What mean is a correct and efficient balance of tensions and
of those
they actually
But unfortunately the notion of "relaxation" has tended
encourage a whole school of playing
relatively inert
of sensibility
and
and lack of
intensity
in
which the hand remains
which the inevitable dullness
insensitive, in
is
partially staved off
by a
set
of superficial and artifically produced sound effects, whether organ registration, piano pedaling, or the contrast of a series of agree-
able qualities of tone.
board playing
lies
The whole
distribution of tensions
The less
secret of genuinely musical key-
not in relaxation but in the correct and
and
vertical inflection of
important role
efficient
releases.
harmonies on the whole plays a much
in Scarlatti
than in Bach and Mozart, largely
because of the looseness of vertical structure and
its
horizontal
bindings, which I have already pointed out in the chapter on Scarlatti's
harmony. But what
playing
the sense of tonality, the sense of the progress of his
is
is
of prime importance in Scarlatti
modulations, the identification of the sensitive notes, those which
mark
the turning point of a modulation and the consequent shift
of harmonic inflection in relation to the tonic in
ferent inflection in
chord
new
tonality.
What
one tonality, for example, may achieve an entirely its
function as a dominant in another.
in a Scarlatti sonata in
G
AD
major has an entirely
is
a
dif-
major
different
significance at the opening than at the double bar. Likewise, a G major chord may cease to represent the repose of the tonic and *
3H
*
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS become a subdominant pulling toward a D major cadence. many
a Scarlatti sonata
possible to falsify the
it is
In
whole opening
by misinterpreting an apparent tonic as genuine, when it has already passed into another key. (This is equally possible in the
many a Bach fugue.) Sometimes the tonal function may be deliberately left ambiguous, even if the actual
exposition of
of a chord
as at the first
modulation has not yet taken place,
775
C
in
minor, where
G
major
is
corona in Sonata
neither tonic or dominant, but
suspended between the two. (See also Sonatas 57 and 124.) The effect of many a gradual or ambiguous Scarlatti modulation
new
hinges on those notes which introduce or prepare a
which mark a new key or cancel an old.
tonality, those accidentals
Harmonic
inflection in Scarlatti
is
much more important
tion to the tonal context of the piece than in
of vertical consonances that seems to lack
modest
in scope,
metrical,
and dissonances.
in rela-
terms of the scale
Many
a Scarlatti piece
harmonic variety, whose modulations may be
whose balance may seem
comes immediately
to life
when
sym-
to be excessively
considered in
detail in relation to the tonal structure of the whole.
its
every
Then
simple tonic, subdominant, and dominant harmonies of the part will
move towards
a
the first
dominant or other closing tonality that
will maintain a certain tension in relation to the sonata as a
whole
;
moving back toward the basic tonic of the piece, even if it consists of the same melodic material and the same harmonic progressions, will sound different, and to a certain exand the second
half,
tent new, in relation to
its
function in the larger sense.
Many
a
and big in performance, or merely small and trifling, depending on the performer's grasp of tonal organization. Here again Longo's dynamics, or anyone else's, are of no help. There is no genuine agent of musical sensibility but the performer's ear and musical intelligence, as editors of "practical editions" of music would do well to realize. What is necessary in performing every Scarlatti sonata is a continuous and unfailing Scarlatti sonata can
sound
full
sense of direction in terms of the piece as a whole.
The
inflection of dissonant passing notes,
nonharmony tones
in
changing notes, and
general demands a word, because
is
fre-
quently allied with the controlling of rhythm and tempo bv
off-
beats.
A
it
consonant passing note tends to be rhythmically inactive. *
315
'
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS It
moves forward more or
on.
When
less automatically
and cannot be leaned
notes are both off the beat and dissonant they can often
be dwelt on and compensated in the following consonance without perceptible interruption of rhythmic continuity. These are the notes par excellence which can be used to change or influence a
tempo, the notes on which can be based a tempo rubato that
is
not
otherwise justified by melodic contour or by change of rhythmic
On
nonharmony tones can be based a whole fabric and rhythmic cross-relations between voices. For example in sixteenths moving against eighth notes, the offbeat sixteenths can be used to set up a counterbalance and opposition to values.
dissonant
of syncopations
movement of the eighths. Frequently in such continuously moving passages, especially those containing accented passing notes, the
the question of off or on the beat
The
or dissonance. establish
is
subsidiary to that of consonance
irregularly falling dissonances can be used to
an irregular rhythmic surface pattern that lends color
and variety
to the basic
rhythmic structure.
In this connection might be mentioned the notes inegales of
French music, the practice of playing the second and fourth, of a group of short notes shorter than the
thus rendering
more
J J J J
similar to
and
first
J. 3«l.3,
This procedure
etc.
the French called 'pointer les croches, or doubles croches, as the case
might
be.
etc.,
third, etc.,
etc.,
Nearly every French instruction book of
comments upon it. (See St.-Lambert, Les For a digest and quotations from the principal treatises see Arger, Les Agrements et le Rhythme, and Borrel, Interpretation de la Musique Francaise.)
the eighteenth century Principes
du
Clavecin, for example.
All these treatises attempt to account for this practice on the basis of meter.
The
conscientious
modern
revival of this practice how-
ever has a tendency to produce an intolerable two-by-two grouping of notes which destroys all genuine phrasing.
of this practice
is
that
it is
to a certain extent has
age by
a
more
French authors (see Couperin,
was peculiar
own
explanation
been followed in every school and
all sensitive musicians, despite
this style
My
or less unconscious procedure that
the remarks of
UArt de Toucher
le
every
Clavecin) that
French school and that the
to the
in
some of the Italians
did not share the French habit of writing evenly notes that were
intended to be played unevenly. •
316
•
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS my
In
opinion this practice of notes inegales
meter only to the extent that trast to the passive
My
downbeats
is
conditioned by
treats the offbeats as active in con-
it
in the
manner
have outlined above.
I
further explanation of the notes inegales
is
that they are very
largely conditioned by melodic contours and above all by their function as dissonant passing tones. If their inequality
is
graded
so as to correspond to the degree of dissonance or consonance they
represent in relation to the main voices, the unpleasant
harmony or
two-by-two grouping
to the concomitant
disguised and the
is
larger phrase emerges flexible but undistorted. In other words, the
eighteenth-century treatises simply account inadequately for this well-established practice, as for
explain
it
this sense,
only in terms of meter. is
remote than
less
It
is
I
and from the treatment of
have recommended
dis-
in Scarlatti.
often produced on an
is
instrument incapable of swelling or diminuendo. clash intensifies the basic
harmony
against notes otherwise in repose, causes
sympathy
The momentary
like a crescendo
laxes into consonance like a diminuendo.
first
CBC
CDC)
or
would have with
it
re-
them
to appear to swell
This
is
why
or main note of a three note changing-note
(for example
pressive value
and then
This occurs frequently
like the sustained notes of the voice.
accenting the figure
in
with dissonant passing notes or changing notes that the
musical equivalent of a swell within a note
in
to
purports to be from the handling
it
of offbeats in small note values
sonant passing tones that
many others, by attempting The French doctrine, viewed
diminishes the ex-
often
a stress
on the second or
dis-
sonant note, especially in moderate or slow tempo. This faulty inflection
and missing of the expressive value (and indeed of the
mechanical usefulness in maintaining a tempo or establishing physical coordination) of passing or in that school of
changing notes
playing which concentrates
is
its
especially
common
principal stresses on
and main beats rather than on what prepares and follows them. much emphasized that in slow movements all flexibilities and liberties depend on such notes, that it is the management and compensation of such notes that can keep a fast movement from running away or a slow movement from dragging. Most
first
It
cannot be too
questions of
tempo are not rooted
are traceable to faulty phrasings. *
in
tempo. Most faulty tempi
The more
3*7
'
sensitive a musician, the
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS more
likely
is
one single faulty phrasing or
inflection to upset the
rhythmic balance of a phrase, or indeed of a
among
piece.
Arguments
musicians concerning tempi are almost never really con-
cerned with tempi j they spring from misunderstanding or ences in the inflection of germinal details.
Once the
differ-
basic inflections
upon or unconsciously discovered, the argument conis generally forgotten. The way to correct a tempo, tempo cerning are agreed
whether with a pupil or with an orchestra,
metronome
is
not to consult the
or resort to an artifically rigorous or regular beat,
but to discover the cause of the difficulty. Given a pupil free of physical handicaps of coordination
reasonably competent,
it
is
and who
is
who
is
technically
frequently possible to correct a tempo
without once mentioning the word tempo or resorting to any form of counting.
Of prime importance
in
maintaining a tempo, undertaking a
rubato, or negotiating a ritard
is
the recognizing of an enchainment
of rhythmic impulses communicable
Most
ritards
are undertaken
too
from one voice to another. and then rendered con-
late
vincing by dynamic inflections, by corresponding crescendos or
diminuendos.
namic ritards
On
inflection
and
more than
limited dy-
becomes more than ever necessary
to root all
instruments incapable of
it
alterations of
tempo
in the basic musical structure.
If they are not musically correct, there is no way of rendering them even superficially convincing. On instruments without appreciable dynamic variation, the alteration in tempo of a series of notes of the same rhythmic value is singularly unconvincing except where justified by their melodic contours or their harmonic context. On such instruments notes of the same rhythmic value,
not otherwise qualified by melodic contour, can generally be effectively altered in
tempo and duration only in and dissonance
relative functions of consonance
them.
A
slowing
dependent on
its
down
of an even series of notes
relation to the to be is
found
in
nearly always
dissonances. In the case of notes of varying value,
most successful ritards or fluctuations of tempo on such instruments depend on an identification of the points at which indivisible rhythmic impulses begin, and on the manner in which they are enchained and transmit themselves to other voices. These points are to be discovered in breaks of diatonic •
318
•
motion and
in
changes of
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS rhythmic values from long to short. tempo, or
final ritard
measures before the
eral
An
may depend on an final result
entire rubato, change of initiative
undertaken sev-
becomes perceptible.
should
It
be noted, moreover, in connection with ritards at final cadences that
most such
ritards are
commonly undertaken
too late in rela-
the harmonic enchainment, and that they frequently
tion to
fail
dominant, and relax too soon
to maintain the tension of the
—
in
other words, before arriving at the tonic. Harmonically speaking,
uncompensated by dynamic
cadential ritards
all
begin
inflection
harmony, in other words from the beginning of the enchainment of chords which forms the from the
last separable division of
part of the cadence. In a progression 16, IV, V,
initial
ample,
it is
gression
altered to 16, II %, V,
is
the dissonance II %,
and
make any change
too late to
added
I,
for ex-
after the 16. If the pro-
I, it is still
possible to dwell
to relax thereafter.
In the light of the foregoing general principles of phrasing,
and
ulation,
on
subdominant, as represented by the
to the
inflection, let us consider a
the keyboard player
may
few
practical
ways
enlist his resources of legato
in
and
artic-
which
staccato
in their services.
The
enormous damage to and Alberti basses, Scarlatti
sustaining pedal of the piano can do
Scarlatti's music.
Even
in arpeggios
has often conceived his figuration in terms of lines, as instrumental
melodies and not mere blurred fillings-out of harmony.
He
does
not wish thick washes of color. In playing Scarlatti, the piano
pedal should be used for heightening and varying of color, not for sustaining of notes that cannot be sustained with the fingers.
Used otherwise color which
it
risks substituting a
Scarlatti
confused uniformity for the
has composed into his music by breaking
harmonies and alternating their components. (Few players succeed in extracting the color that is
within a piece, so preoccupied are
they with irrelevant concepts of beauty of tone and with the imposition of a color
Even the
from without
—most often the piano pedal.)
the figures that at the harpsichord can be sustained under
hand often sound better when played as lines. Their melodic more color than would a blur of harmony. It was
contours add traditional,
however, throughout harpsichord literature to leave
to the player the optional sustaining of .
3
i
9
•
broken harmonies lying
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS under the hand, without their necessarily being indicated in the notation. In such a piece as Sonata 260 an extreme of overlapping even
legato,
In Venice xin 13
in diatonic passages, is desirable.
(K. 526) Scarlatti has written out the overlapping legato of a two-voice passage in broken
harmony
second appearance he writes
at its
at its first appearance, but
in the simpler
it
open two-voice
notation, leaving the player to assume the sustaining as in the parallel passage. \%Allegro
(Example
5)
Comodo]
SAls
Ex.
xm
Venice
5.
13 (Longo 456) K. 526
One color forte,
of the most potent means of obtaining fine shadings of from any keyboard instrument, be it harpsichord, pianoor organ, and of heightening the relief of small harmonic
details inherent in lines,
is
the overlapping not only of tones out-
harmony, but of diatonic passages. Effects of crescendo and diminuendo can be obtained both on harpsichord and organ by lining
allowing a diatonically adjacent tone momentarily to clash with its
neighbor.
middle of a
A
scale
crescendo
perceptible
by grading from the
can
be
staccato or
obtained
in
the
from the legato
of juxtaposed notes to the overlapping of them. Particularly on
the harpsichord, overlapping can be used to cover the sharp attack of one note by the continuing
sound of the preceding. I often momentarily overlap a dissonance and its resolution for the purpose of concealing the attack of the second note and of achieving
the appearance of a diminuendo. It
is
possible to give scales the inflections of their underlying
harmonies by overlapping. For example •
320
•
in a
C
major
scale
played
PERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS as related to a
C
major
may dwell on
triad, I
all
the
nonharmony
tones according to the dissonance they form with the triad, whether appears as a dissonance or not the actual triad is sounding. The
D
of a second with the I
would play the
C
(were
I
D in relation
playing a modal scale in the following E)
to
sound
G, but
like a
subdominantj the same for the
would make the most
I
B
of the
;
D F
emphasis because
tion to the E, but with relatively little to
the
A
minor
in relait
tends
in relation to the
as a leading tone resolving
to the C.
To
this
kind of coloring, the two-voice writing of Scarlatti
more than
particularly susceptible. Such coloring, far
is
actual filling
up of chords or sustaining with piano pedal, expands the harmonic implications of Scarlatti's lines and lends them an appearance of richness which they lines.
(The same
One organ
is
do not possess when played
of the principal expressive is
literally as
mere
true of all the Bach two-part Inventions.)
means of both harpsichord and
the obtaining of stress or accent by allowing the attack
of a note to be preceded by a brief silence. In
many
a passage that
vocally constitutes an indivisible melodic unit, dissonances at the
keyboard can be heightened
in relation to
lows by detaching immediately beforehand.
what precedes and
Many
fol-
dissonant passing
notes that could be expressed smoothly in the voice or on a stringed
instrument with a slight swell gain their full value at the harpsi-
chord or organ (quite against theoretical musical logic), by being
An unbroken legato tends to cover by the continuing sound of the preceding note the attack of a note needing stress. A detached.
general rule in both harpsichord and organ playing
is
to overlap
those notes which need to be minimized and to detach those notes
needing special
stress.
At the harpsichord,
notes against sixteenths,
many an
for example, in eighth
offbeat sixteenth note completely
covered by the previous sixteenth sounding simultaneously with the accompanying eighth note, judicious
common the right
detachments, in
Scarlatti in
u
Qr,
J?$3^J3
needs to be brought out by
etc.
,
Passages
are
extremely
which a melodic sixteenth-note figure
hand can be completely covered by the
in
attacks of the
accompanying chords in the left. The solution is to minimize the detachment of the repeated chords so that one covers slightly the attack of another,
and
to detach before elements, generally dis.
32I
.
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS sonances and cross accents or offbeats in the melody which need to
be brought out. Yet the solution at the organ of such passages exactly the reverse
is
they are to be played on one keyboard. There
if
the melody notes need to be held longer in order to be heard and the chords to be detached in order not to cover everything else
with their sustained sound.
EXPRESSIVE RANGE At the beginning to
which
Scarlatti
is
myself. For years
and
striking
I
commonly
subjected. I have been guilty of
it
considered the Scarlatti sonatas extraordinarily
brilliant
to achieve the
but
I
of this chapter I spoke of the "type casting"
and knew that a few of them were bound effect at the end of a harpsichord recital,
maximum
thought that too much of their excessive brilliance was
fatiguing: that
it
was possible
tude toward Scarlatti
is
them.
to tire of
the early notes for this book a
remark
likely to be
I
even discovered
in
to the effect that one's atti-
changing and unstable, that
Mozart and Bach was Nothing could have impossible. been more false. The excessive brilliance of the sonatas was indeed fatiguing when too many of them were played in a row, because like too many players of Scarlatti, I played them largely as virtuoso pieces. I saw relatively little of what was actually in the music. During the ten years in which I have been occupied with this book, my attitude has changed. This was owing partly to close study of the music and its background, to my visit to Spain, and perhaps to a maturing process taking place within me. In studying
a constant devotion like that aroused by
the music, in going through the complete sonatas several times in
chronological order and writing and revising
made an seemed
effort
to escape
to
me,
my
commentary,
understand everything that thitherto to
I
had
understand everything that did not make
first aroused an adverse judgment. After my visit and during the completion of the biographical part, I
sense or at to Spain
prepared performances of forty or of what
I
fifty
of the sonatas in the light
had learned and was learning. The
no longer of virtuosity piled on
result
was a discovery,
virtuosity, of striking but
ephemeral
"happy freaks," but instead of an inexhaustible variety of pression inherent in the music, running the •
322
•
gamut
ex-
of a complete
TERFORMANCE OF THE SCARLATTI SONATAS artistic personality.
The
reader can have at best but a moderate
and months
idea of the days, weeks,
I
have spent with
Scarlatti.
this period I can honestly say, that, despite the labor
At the end of
of this book, I never once reached a saturation point, I never once tired of Scarlatti, that at the I
end of the longest periods of drudgery
have been repeatedly surprised, dazzled, and delighted by Scar-
latti's
music.
This
the evolution
is
own
reader's
I
hope by
book
this
feelings about Scarlatti.
My
to
own
have aided
in the
evolution has been
one from thinking what most people have thought about Scarlatti
and are
since the eighteenth century
still
thinking, to the point
of view represented in every page of this book. I insert these re-
marks
into a chapter
on performance, because
Scarlatti
sounds the
way he is played. I heard Scarlatti, even in my inner ear, in the way in which I formerly played his music, which was the way in which nearly everyone else plays
some measure of what has become a restoration of the pairwise
posing on it is
I
hear Scarlatti com-
clear in writing this book.
With
arrangement, with the attempt to ex-
it
formulas from without, what has become clear
perfectly possible, which I once doubted, to play a
program of
Scarlatti sonatas
sorting to artificial
means
Another thing that book and in
Now
inherent expressiveness from every piece instead of im-
tract the
that
it.
have tried to put into performance
pletely differently because I
in
I
is
whole
without falling into sameness or
re-
to give the impression of variety.
would
performance
is
like to
have demonstrated
in this
that one can use one's brain without
any way hampering one's capacity for sentiment or expression.
show what has been demonstrated and constantly forcenturies, that hard work and scholarship are not dangerous that the more highly developed the society in which one lives the more necessary they are. I would like to have demonI
hope
gotten
to
for
j
strated the simultaneous possibility not only of a completely hard-
headed workman's analytical and technical approach
to music, but
warm, imaginative, and even romantic willingness to transcend syntax and literal meaning, to move humbly and fear-
also of a
lessly in the
realm of the unexplainable.
•
323
•
ILLUSTRATIONS
2.
Alessandro Scarlatti, by an
Bologna, Liceo Musicale. Photograph
unknown
Frick Art
painter
Reference
Library
3.
New
Italian
Harpsichord Museum
York, Metropolitan
of Art
§6 no
il^*!
Q
3
.
*
N N CJ
3~
£?
U 0
1729, fatti dall* Esattor Pma P. 7.
Bibl.
Filza 105V.
[For
facsimile of autograph portion, see Fig.
19.]
Domenico* s Departure from the Vatican. S. Petri in Vat., Diari - 30 - 1658-1726 more legible copy in Diari- 34 - 17 15-1734).
1719, Seft.
3.
Rome, Arch. Cap.
'
333
'
(later,
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND "Per
essere partito per l'lnghilterra
Cappella
di S.
il
Maestro
Pietro, fu fatto
HIS OFFSPRING
Sig.
il
Maestro
Scarlatti
Sig.
di
Ottavio Pitoni, che
era a S. Giovanni in Laterano." i
J 28. List of Musicians in the Portuguese Royal Chafel. Walther, Musicalisches Lexicon, Leipzig, 1732, p. 489. (Although not, properly speaking, a
foregoing
document,
I insert
it
here to supplement the
Domenico's
concerning
information
musicians
at
the
Vatican.)
und vornehmsten In-
"Portugall. Verzeichniss der Capellmeister
strumentisten in der Konigl. Portugiesischen Capelle zu Lissabon, an.
Romer. Joseph Antoni, ViceAvondano, erster Violinist, ein Genueser. Antonio BaghetU, erster Violinist, ein Romer. Alessandro Baghetti, zweyter Violinist, ein Romer. Johan Peter, 1728.
Capellmeister,
Scarlatti,
ein
Capellmeister, ein Portugiese. Pietro Giorgio
zweyter as,
Violinist, ein Portugiese,
dritter Violinist,
ein
aber von Teutschen Eltern.
zweyter Hautboist, ein Franzose. Veith, vierdter Hautboist, ein
Thom-
Florentiner. Latur, vierdter Violinist,
Bohme. Ventur, Braccenist, ein Ludewig, Bassonist,
Braccenist, ein Catalonier.
Violoncellist, ein Catalonier. Laurenti,
Violinist,
und
und
erster
Catalonier. Antoni, ein
Bohme. Juan,
Violoncellist, ein Florentiner.
Paolo, Contra- Violinist, ein Romer. Antonio Josefh, Organist, ein Portugiese.
Floriani,
Tenorist, ein in dieser
ein Castrat und Romer. Mossi, wohl noch einst so viel Instrumentisten befinden; und die Anzahl der Sanger sich auf
Discantist,
Romer. Es
Capelle sich
sollen
40 Personen belauffen, so mehrentheils Italianer sind." [On p. 546 Walther says of Domenico: "Diesen beriihmten Romischen Capellmeister hat der Konig von Portugall an. 1728 in Dienste genommen, und ihm zu seinen Reise-Kosten 2000 Thaler auszahlen lassen. s. die Hallische Zeitungen nro. cxxn." Walther is obviously wrong about the date of Domenico's Portuguese appoint30
bis
ment, but the subsidy for his journey may have had something to do with the following document.] 1728, May 75. Domenico* s Marriage Certificate. Rome, Arch. Vat., Sez. Vicariato di Roma, Sta. Maria in PubLiber Matrimonium 1679-1757, fol. 7orv. "Dominus Dominicus Scarlactus cum Domina Maria Catarina
licolis,
Gentili
Tribus denunciationibus praeter missis dispensatis ab Illustrissimo Reverendissimo Domino meo vicegerente ego Sextilius de Caiolis Rector ecclesiae Parochialis Santae Mariae in Publicolis de licentia Illustrissimi et Reverendissimi Domini mei vicegerentis data ex officio et
Domini rentis
Basilij Quintilij notarij
mensis
Maij
Sancti Pancratij
;
et
Eminentissimi
quam apud me
servo
vicarij [
sub die 14 cor]
In
ad Altare Assumptionis Beatae Mariae '
334
*
Ecclesia virginis
D
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
Dominum Dominicum Scarlatti fib'um bonae memoriae romanum de Parrochia Sancti Mariae in Monterone Dominam Mariam Catarinam Gentili filiam Domini Francisci
interrogavi
AJexandri
equitis et
Mariae Gentili Puellam romanam de mea Parochia, eorumque consensu habilo coniunxi
in
matrimonium per verba de
presenti, vis et
volo ad predictam Ecclesiam et Altare Sancti Pancratij, et vigore
Domino Canonico Joanne Monterio memoriae Antonij Freitas Guimeranensis de Parochia Santae Mariae in Aquiro Lusitano et Domino Jacobo Cavalli filioque Federici Jacobi Veronensis de Parochia Santae Mariae in Monterone testibus, qui interfuerunt praedicto matrimonio." [The praedictae licentiae Presentibus
Brano
bonae
filio
orthography of the original reproduce
is
so
confused that I do not attempt to
punctuation. I have written out
its
abbreviations.]
all
[7729, or iyjo. Baptismal Certificate of Juan Antonio Scarlatti.] [The date of birth of Domenico's eldest child mentioned in later documents may probably still be discovered in the archives of Sta. Cruz in Seville. We know that he was born in Seville. (See the
document
March
of
2,
1747.)
Dicionario Biografico of Jose lisboeta,
Alegria
51), annotating the
(p.
Mazza, mentions
that:
um
manuscrito da Biblioteca de £vora,
"Num
diario
langou a
escriba
Muzico Escarlate com a molher fermosa e continuam os seus grandes ordenados.' Data de 27 de Dezembro de 1729. Talvez se trate de alguma visita a Lisboa depois de ter partido na comitiva da sua Real discipula para Madride." This
seguinte nota: 'chegou o
dous
filhos se Ihe
report,
if
indeed
it
has any foundation in fact, can only be interpreted
Juan Antonio and another Scarlatti child who was dead by February 12, 1735, and hence not mentioned in the mutual testament of Domenico and Catalina Scarlatti to which reference is
as referring to
made
in the notice of Catalina's death,
7737, March
9.
Seville, Sta.
May
6,
1739.]
Bafttsmal Certificate of Fernando Scarlatti. Cruz, Baptismal records, Libro 8, fols. 36V and 37r.
(Copy in Madrid, Arch. Hist. Nac, Carlos III No. 1799, fol. 14.V, which reads as follows:) "En nueve dias del mes de marzo de mil setecientos y treinta y un r anos, yo el D D. Xpt Romero, Pro. de Licencia del D r D. Xpt Alvarez de Palma Cura de esta Iglesia Parroquial de Sta. Cruz de Sevilla catequize y puse oleo y cresima por haberle echado agua en casa yo en caso de necesidad a Fernando Nicola Jose Alexandro Julian, hijo de D. Domingo Escarlati, natural de la ciudad d". Napoles 1
.
y de su
DV
1
.
.
Catalina Gentili, natural de
madrina
del
catecismo
Da
obligaciones y lo firmamos ut supra D. Cristobal Romero." *
Roma
Ana Manteli
335
— *
r .
su legitima a
la
D. Xpt
1 .
qual
.
muger
fue
adverti
sus
Alvarez v Palma
'DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND HIS OFFSPRING IJS 2 ) dfril 20. Record of Payment
Due
Scarlatti
from
the Sfanish
Court.
Madrid, Archivo General de Palacio, Felipe V, Legajo 292, 20 de Abril de 1732 corresfonde al Legajo n° 2 de dicha Jornada. (Published
Mesillas de la Jornada de Andaluzia. 2a Relation desde
by Solar Quintes,
144.)
p.
"A D. Domingo
Maestro de Musica de la Prinzesa 90 Reales diariamente, le corresponden en 418 dias ultimos de dicha Jornada de Andalucia 37.620 rs. en quenta de los quales tiene rezivido por la Maestria 24.200 Rs. y se le restan deviendo. 13.420" [As transcribed by Solar Quintes.] [17S 2 ) d-fril 20, to 1733, June 12 .] Record of the Same. Madrid, Arch. Gen. de Palacio, Registros 561, Relazion del Imforte de Naziones extraordinarias ocasionadas for los Criados de la R Casa en la Jornada que hizieron sus Mag', a Badajoz y las Andalucias el ano de 1729 [unnumbered fol. 5r]. "A Dn. Domingo Escarlatti Mro de Musica de S. M. siendo Escarlati,
nra. Sra. al respecto de
.
.
.
l
.
Vn
8
le Restan deviendo de los 37620 r de con su mesilla de 90 r8 al dia devengo en los mismos 418 ultimos de la mencionada Jornada. 13,420"
Principe se
.
[1732-1735. Baftismal Certificate [Has not yet been found.]
of
Mariana
.
Scarlatti.]
[1735, Feb. 12. Mutual Testament of Domenico and Catalina Scarlatti.']
[Has not been found. Mentioned on
May
6,
in the notice of Catalina's
death
1739.]
[1736-1737- Baftismal Certificate of Alexandro Scarlatti.] [Has not yet been found. I could find neither this nor that of Mariana Scarlatti in the archives of San Martin in Madrid.] 1738, March
8.
Decree
of
Joao V Citing
Scarlatti for the
Order
of
Santiago.
Lisbon, Archivo da Torre do
Tiago, mago
I,
no.
5,
letra
Tombo,
Habilitagoes da
D. (Published
in
Ordem
de
S.
Archivo Historico
Portuguez, Vol. V, pp. 457-458.) [Declares Scarlatti eligible by reason of purity of blood, quality, and parts, and evidently dispenses him from presenting the customary proofs.] 1738, March 22. Order of Joao V to a Qualified Ecclesiastic in Madrid. Lisbon, Archivo da Torre do Tombo, Chancellaria da ordem de S. Tiago, liv. 28.0, fls. 366 e seguinte. (A copy, published, with abbreviations, in Archivo Historico Portuguez, Vol. V, p. 458.) [Request to receive Scarlatti into the Order of Santiago, and to
personal
supply a report for the archives of the Order.] '
336
'
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
1738, March 22. Order of J oao V to a knight in Madrid of the Order of Santiago , or of Another Portuguese Order. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. (Copy in Lisbon, Archivo da Torre do Tombo, Chancellaria da ordem de S. Tiago, ibid., published in Archivo Historico Portuguez, ibid.) [Order to assign two sponsoring knights and to initiate Scarlatti according to the ceremony indicated by the royal notary.] 1738, March 22. Order of J oao V Dispensing Scarlatti from the Customary Yearns Noviciate. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. (Copy in Lisbon, ibid., published in Archivo Historico Portuguez, Vol. V, pp. 458-459. Spanish translation also in the Scarlatti family papers.)
[Addressed to a qualified Scarlatti
be admitted
ecclesiastic
in
Madrid, requesting that
immediately, according to the ceremony in-
dicated by the royal notary, and that a report be filed in the archives of the Order.] 1738, March 22. Decree of J oao V, by Virtue of a Papal Bull, Relaxing the Customary Restrictions on Clothing and its Richness. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. (Copy in Lisbon, ibid., published in
Archivo Historico Portuguez, Vol. V, p. 458.) [Permits Scarlatti "para que possa trazer vestidos do pano
e seda de
quaisquer cores, anneis, joyas, cadeas e habito de ouro, comtanto que ."] na capa o traga de pano y 1738, April iq. Authorization by Catalina Scarlatti of Domenico s Entry into the Order of Santiago. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. (Notary's certified copy.) [Signed at Aranjuez before the notary, Pablo Martinez.] .
[1738, March, Afril.]
.
Form
of
Ceremony
for Initiation into the
Order
of Santiago.
Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. (Together with and notes, omitting the Latin responses.)
a
Spanish transla-
tion
[Supplied by the Portuguese royal notary, Lourenco Vas Preto
Monteiro.]
[1738, Afril.] Historical Accounts of the Order of Santiago. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. [Supplied
to
Scarlatti
Joachin
by
Fernandez Solana de
Mal-
donado.]
1738, April 21. Certification of Scarlatti's Reception into the Order of Santiago by his Sponsor, Joachin Fernandez Solana de Maldonado. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. [The ceremony took place before the high altar of the convent of S. Antonio de los Capuchinos de el Prado on April 2 1 between four and five in the afternoon. Co-sponsor was Pedro Garcia de la Vega.] '
337
•
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
1738, April 21. Certification by the Chaplain Nicolas Filiberti of Scarlatti's Receftion into the Order of Santiago on Afrit 2i f 1738. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. [Certification of the various necessary measures taken in connection with it. There follows, dated May 15, 1738, an additional certification by Joao Pereyra da Gama, chaplain of the convent of Palmella
Order
of the
hood
of Santiago, authorizing the entry of Scarlatti's knight-
Order.] 1738, April 21 Account of the Reception of Scarlatti into the Order of SantiagOy by the Madrid Notary Matheo Albo Rivero. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. 1738, May 75. Certification by Joao Pereyra da Gama of Scarlatti's in the archives of the .
Knighthood in the Order of Santiago. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. (One-fourth missing.) 1 7 38j Nov. 13. Baptismal Certificate of Maria Scarlatti. Madrid, San Martin. L°. 33. [Baptisms, April 1, 1735, to December 31, 1739],
"Maria
fols.
346V
-
347r.
Escarlatti Gentili
M
de Parroq 1 de San Mar. de a Treze de Novre. de 1* mil setez y treinta y ocho anos; Yo fr. Mauro Plaza Then Cura de dha. Igl a Bautize a Maria, del Patrocinio, Juana, hija
En
la
Ig la
.
.
.
tos
.
.
Lexma nat
1
nat
1
.
.
Dn
Domingo
Escarlati Cavallero del Orn. de Santiago, y a de la Ciudad de Napoles; y de Cathalina Gentili Escarlatti, de la Ciudad y Corte de Roma; nacio en nuebe de dho. mes y
de
.
.
D
.
d0 Casas del Noviciado de ano; Calle ancha de San Bern .
110
Dn
la
Compania
de Jesus; fue su Pad Gaspar Gentili Abad y Comendador de San Felize de Ettalauto, aquien adverti el parent 00 Espir 1 Test 8 .
.
.
Fran 00 Herrera, y Manuel Bayon; y .
.
lo firme
P de Mauro Plaza" J 1 '39y
May
6.
Death Notice
of Catalina Scarlatti.
Madrid, San Martin, L°. 17 De difuntos desde /°. de Enero de 1738 h~ta 30 de Junio de 174 3, fols. 1 09V - nor. "D a Cathilina Gentile muger que fue de D n Domingo de Escarn Fran 00 Gentile, y late, y natural de la Ciudad de Roma, e hija de D n d0 na la a de D Maria Rosete Parroq de Esta Ig calle ancha de S Bern on casas de Administraz otorgo poder para testar en compania del dho no Real, en doze de febrero de mil su marido ante Manuel Alvarez ss tos setez treinta dandosele el uno al otro, y se nombraron por y y cinco Testam tlos y por herederos nombraron, a Juan Ant 10 Fernando, y .
;
,
,
Maria Ana Margarita Escarlati, sus hijos lex mos rezivio los s t08 sacram t08 murio en seis de Mayo de mil setez y treinta y nueve en a de la Buena Esperanza el R. Sitio de Aranjuez: Enterrose en la Igl de la Villa de Ocana en donde pago la fabrica." [The mutual testament mentioned here has not been found. The Archivo Historico de tos
,
,
•
338
•
— DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND Madrid contains no papers
Protocolos in
HIS OFFSPRING the
of
above-mentioned
notary.] I
739> J une J 0. Copy from Lisbon of Royal Decree Concerning Domenico's Portuguese Revenues. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. [Provides that in case of Domenico's death they shall be divided equally
I
I
among
his legitimate offspring.]
739> November 23. Cofy from Lisbon of Royal Decree Assigning Scarlatti 47,1 19 Reis Annually. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. [Alludes to the preceding document of June 10.]
to
743> January 75. Baptismal Certificate of Maria Barbara Scarlatti. Madrid, San Martin, Libro 34 [Baptisms, January 1, 1740, to
June 30, 1744], fol. 319^ "Maria Escarlati, Ximenez
En
la
Ig
.
.
R
d
a treze de Enero de mil Juan Allen, Presvitero, con Miguel de Herze Abad y Cura proprio
.
Yo D n
1
.
.
.
u Bautize a Maria, Barbara, Xaviera, Vitoria de la Conma n hija Lex de D Domingo Escarlati, nat de la Ciu d de
de dha Ig ception,
M
Parroq 1 de S n Mar. de
la
cientos y quar *. y tres; mo Licencia del P e . Mro. fr. sete
.
1
.
.
D
.
a
.
d Napoles; y de Anasthasia Ximenez, nat de la Ciu de Cadiz, n nacio en doze de dho. mes y ano Calle de Leganitos Casas de 1
.
.
.
D
110 D n Gaspar Gentili Comendador de la Joseph Borgona, fue su Pad n Abadia de S Felix Aelauto, a quien adverti el parent 00 espir Test 8 .
.
1
.
.
,
Antonio Mantel, y Dom°. de
la
Plaza
;
y lo firme
Dn
.
Juan Allen"
1744, March 1. Renewal of Royal Decree Concerning Scarlatti's Portuguese Assets. Lisbon, Archivo da Torre do Tombo, Chancellaria de D. Joao V, liv. in - fs 37V. (Published in Archivo Historico Portuguez, Vol. V, p. 459-) [Additions dated July 9, 1744, and Sept. 2, 1745. Assigns Scarlatti's Portuguese assets to be divided equally among his legitimate children in case of his death.]
IJ4 5, March 50. Baptismal Certificate of Rosa Scarlatti. Madrid, San Martin, L°. 35 [Baptisms, July 1, 1744, to June 29, I749l> fol. 81. u Rosa Escarlati, Ximenez. d En la Yg la Parroq de S n Mar. de a treinta de Marzo de te t0 u mil setez *. y quar y cinco; Yo fr. Benito de Hermida then
M
1
.
.
.
.
.
Cura de dha.
Yg la
hija lex"", de
Dn
de
D\
.
.
.
Bautize a Rosa, Christina, Anasthasia,
Domingo
Escarlati, nat
Anasthasia Ximenez, nat *
1 .
339
de '
la
1
de
Ciu
la
d .
Ramona,
Ciu d de Napoles, .
v
de Sevilla. Nacio en
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
D
n nueve de dho. mes y ano Calle de Leganitos casas de n no Fran 00 Maria Gentile, a quien Joseph Borgona fue su Pad 00 espir Test 8 Marcos Juarros y Domingo de la adverti el parent Plaza y lo firme
veinte y
D
.
.
.
.
1
.
,
.
Hermida"
Fr. Benito de
IJ4Y, March
Madrid,
Matriculation of Juan Antonio Scarlatti
2. Certificate of
at the University of Alcala
de Henares.
Scarlatti family papers.
[Refers to Juan Antonio as "Natural de la Ciudad de Se villa," and as "Clerigo de Prima tonsura, y que en la Unibersidad de esta
Ciudad de Alcala de
dicha
Don Juan Antonio
ha
Henares,
Dos anos que
Escarlati
cursado el
dicho
el
primero
fue
el
Proximo-pasado de Mill Sete cientos y Quarenta y Seis en la r facultad de Sumulas del Angelico D Santo Thomas de Aquino, y en este presente de la fecha logica," and testifies as to his good .
character.]
IJ4J, July 12. Baptismal Certificate of Domingo Scarlatti. Madrid, San Martin, L°. 35 [Baptisms, July 1, 1744,
1749],
fol.
"Domingo
to
June 29,
322.
Ximenez
Escarlattiy
la d Ig Parroq de Sn. Map. de Ma a doce de Julio de mil t08 r n te siete, setez cuar el Christoval Romero Cura del yo y y la a a e de Sevilla; con liz Sacrario de la St del dh. R. P Mr5 Ig Fr. Sebastian de Vergara, Abad y Cura prop del Rl. Monast. y Parrocuia de S n Mrn de esta Corte, bautize a Domingo Pio Narciso
En
1
la
.
.
.
D D .
.
.
.
.
.
,
.
Ramon Alexandro Genaro, hijo leg mo de D n Domingo d Cavallero del Orn~ de Santiago nat de la ciu de Napoles,
Christoval
D
.
.
1
Escarlati
.
.
d a 1 Anasthasia Ximenez, Parrado, nat de la Ciu de Cadix. y de Nacio en once de dho mes, y ano; calle de Leganitos, casas de .
.
Dn
adm., Fue su Padrino Corps, y Presv ., y
le
Dn
adverti .
Fern 00
el .
.
Julio
parent
00
Moda esp
1 .
cadete de las testigos
D
n .
R
8 .
Guardias de
Juan de Ziordia
firme—
Escarlati, y lo
D Dn r
.
.
Xstoval Romero."
1748, March 22. Power of Attorney Granted by Scarlatti to Fernando Ferrer a de Silva in Lisbon, autograph signature. Madrid, Archivo Historico de Protocolos, 16343 [the papers of the notary Gaspar Feliciano Garcia], fol. 6orv. [In connection with Scarlatti's Portuguese assets.] iy49, May 11. Baptismal Certificate of Antonio Scarlatti. Madrid, San Martin, L°. 35. [Baptisms, July 1, 1744, to June 29, 1749], fol. 522V. "Antonio Escarlati Ximenez En la Yglesia Parroquial de s n Marn de Madrid a once de Mayo y
.
*
340
'
—
— DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND D
HIS OFFSPRING
n
Juan Joseph Ziordia y de mil setezientos y quarenta y nueve, yo mo P e Mro fr. Joseph del Mirafuentes Presbytero, con lizencia del R n 1 Benito, y Presidente de este dho Rio, Mro Gen de la Religion de s n Bautize a Antonio, Manuel, Martin. de s R Monast ., y Parroquia n mo Domingo Escarlati, Cavallero del de Miguel, Ramon hijo lex a Anaorden de Santiago, natural de la ciudad de Napoles, y de stasia Ximenez Parrado, natural de la Ciudad de Cadiz, nazio en ocho de dho mes, y afio, Calle de Leganitos, Casas de la Diputacion .
.
.
.
,
1
.
.
D
.
.
D
n
de
s
.
Dn
Sebastian, fue su padrino
adverti
el
Parentesco espiritual,
test
Juan Antonio
.
os .
Dn
.
Silbio
.
Escarlatti, a quien
Panego, y
Dn
.
Gaspar
Gentil, y lo firme.
Dn
Juan Joseph Ziordia Mirafuentes" I749t Oct. ig. Testament of Domenico Scarlatti, autograph signature [For facsimile, see Fig. 20.]. Madrid, Archivo Historico de Protocolos, 16343 [Papers of the notary Gaspar Feliciano Garcia], fols. 7541* -755V. .
"Testamento e 19 Oct
En
Dn
Domingo Scarlati En el Nombre de Dios
.
.
todo poderoso
Amen:
Sepase por esta
Testamento, Ultima y postrimera Voluntad, como Yo D n Domingo Scarlati, Cavallero del orden de Santiago, residente en esta corte, hijo legitimo y de legitimo matrimonio de D n Alexandro Scarlati, y D a Antonia Ansaloni, su muger ya difuntos, d vecinos que fueron de la ciu de Napoles, de donde soy natural, marido que he sido en primeras numpcias, de D a Cathalina Gentil y a el presente lo soy en segundas de D Anastasia Maxarti: Estando con salud, por la bondad Infinita de Dios nro S r en mi entero Juicio 10 d qual su divina Mag ha sido servido repartirme, y natural entendim creyendo firmemente en el sacro santo misterio de la Santissima Trinidad, Padre hijo y espiritusanto, tres Personas distintas y un solo Dios Verdadero, y en los de la Encarnacion y Resurecion de r nro. S Jesuxsto. Verdadero Dios y Hombre, y en todos los demas que
publica escriptura de .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
crehe y confiesa, la santa Madre Iglesia, Catholica, Apostolica Romana, vajo de cuya fee y crehencia, he vivido y protesto vivir y morir como hijo suyo, aunque indigno, y haviendo entrado en temerosa consideracion, de que la muerte
me puede
arrevatar la
vida
con
improviso accidente, y deseando en el ultimo tranze de ella, no tener cuydado alguno temporal que me embarase pedir a Dios nro. Senor
Verdadero perdon de mis culpas: otorgo que hago y ordeno, mi t0 testam en la forma siguiente Lo primero encomiendo mi Alma a Dios nro. S r que la crio y redimio con el infinito precio de la sangre de su hijo nro. Senor Jesuxsto, y el cuerpo sea restituido a la tierra de que fue formado Es mi voluntad que quando la de Dios nro. S r fuere servido .
.
.
'
341
*
'DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND HIS OFFSPRING llevarme de esta presente vida, mi cuerpo sea vestido 6 amortajado el manto capitular de la referida orden de Santiago, como cava-
con
y sepultado en la Iglesia, parte, y sitio que (6 adonde Yo dajese prevenido en memoria que dejare a parte) a cuya eleccion dejo la forma y disposicion de mi funeral y entierro: En cuyo dia siendo ora competente, y si no en el siguiente, se me dira misa cantada de Requien con Diacono[s], Vigilia, y responso, y mas cinquenta resadas, pagadas llero
que soy de
ella,
pareciere a mis testamentarios,
razon de
estas a
R
tres
8
de
.
Von
.
por
la
limosna de cada una, y
sacada la quarta parte de ellas tocante a la Parroquia, las demas
se
celebraran, en donde y por quien pareciere a mis Alvaceas las mandas forzosas y accostumbradas y Santos Lugares de
A
8 Gerusalem, dejo para todas ellas de limosna por una vez, seis R de on V con que las desisto y aparto del dfo. y accion que podian tener a .
.
mis vienes r Declaro dejare una memoria firmada de mi mano, o de la de d n Presvitero, Capellan de Torres, de su Mag Romero Xstoval
D
D
.
.
.
res
Reyes nuevos de Toledo, residente en esta corte, y uno de mis testamentarios que adelante nombrare, en mi poder, 6 el suyo, en donde pasare a expresar prevenir, ordenar y en su real
capilla de los S
.
se me ofrecen y en adelante ocurrieren, pudieren ofrecer, quiero que lo que en ella se contubiere y
Declarar, las otras cosas que
y
me
se
continuare, se guarde cumpla y execute en todo tiempo imbiolablemente, como parte y porcion de este mi testamento segun y en
forma que si en el a la letra fuera expresado, con el qual originalmente luego despues de mis dias se pondra y protocolizera Dejo y nombro por mis Alvaceas testamentarios, a los mencionados
la
D Dn r
.
en
Xstoval
.
Maxarti, el
Romero
Poder
para que
que por
de Torres, Presvitero capellan de su
Magd
.
Reyes nuevos de Toledo, y D a Anastasia mi muger, a los quales y cada uno de por si Insolidum, doy y Facultad que en tal caso se requiere, sin limitacion alguna, entren, y se apoderen de todos los vienes hacienda y efectos mi muerte quedaren, y los vendan y rematen, o la parte
su real capilla de los S
res
.
.
Almoneda o
fuera de ella, y de su procedido, contenido en este mi testamento, y que se contubiere en la citada memoria, que dejare, como parte y porcion
necesaria, en publica
cumplan y paguen de
el,
pasado
cuyo cargo el
ano
lo
les
dure todo
el
tiempo nezesario, aunque sea
del Alvazeazgo, por que desde luego lo prorrogo por
que hubieren menester t0 despues de cumplido y pagado todo lo que en este mi testam dejo expresado, y que se contendra en la tal memoria que dejare, en el remanente que quedare de todos mis vienes hacienda y efectos,
todo
el
Y
.
raizes y muebles, creditos, dros. y acciones, havidos y por haver, y
que por qualquier razon 6 causa, '
342
me puedan •
y pudieren tocar y
—
—
VOCUMESTS OS SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
nombro por mis unices y universales herederos, a n Fernando: D*. Mariana: D n Alexandro: Juan Antonio: D y D\ Maria Scarlati, mis cinco hijos legitimos, y de la nominada Cathalina Gentil, mi primera muger, y a D*. Barbara: D\ Rosa: D B Domingo: y D n Antonio Scarlati, tambien mis hijos legitimos, y de la expresada DV Anastasia Maxarti, mi actual y segunda muger, y a los demas que constante mi matrimonio con la susodicha fuere Dios pcrtenecer dejo y
Dn
.
.
.
.
.
servido darme, para que
todos nueve,
Yendirion de Dios y la mia:
Dn
Y
lo
ayan y hereden con
respecto de que los referidos
Dn
la
D\
Antonio Scarlati, mis hijos Barvara: D*. Rosa: Domingo: y hallan en la edad pupilar, desde luego valiendome de leyes y dros. de estos reynos, elijo y nombro por tutora y curadora de sus .
.
se
D\
Anastasia Maxarti, mi muger su personas y vienes, a la predicha madre, relevada de dar fianzas algunas, por la gran satisfacion que
tengo de su buena capacidad y Xstiano proceder, y
sin
que
las de,
pido y suplico al Senor Juez ante quien esta clausula se presentare la discierna dho. cargo, que asi es mi voluntad
Revoco anulo, y doy por ningunos, y de ningun valor
ni efecto,
todos otros qualesquier testamentos, cobdicilos, poderes para testar, y otras ultimas disposidones, que antes de esta, aya hecho y otorgado, por escripto, de palabra, 6 en otra forma, para que no valgan ni hagan fee,
en juicio ni fuera de el, y solo quiero subsista y valga por tal mi ultima disposkion y voluntad, este mi testamento que al presente hago, y la referida memoria que dejare, como parte y pordon de el, en aquella via y forma, que de derecho, mejor lugar aya: En cuyo testimonio lo otorgo
asi, ante el presente escrivano en la villa de Madrid, a diez y nueve dias del mes de octubre de mul setedentos quarenta y nueve arios, siendo testigos llamados y rogados, D". Juan Joseph Ciordia Mirafuentes, Pres\itero, Joseph de la Rera, Andres Pasqual, Juan Antonio Alvarez, y Miguel [Mieria?], vecinos y r residentes en esta corte, y el S otorgante a quien Yo el Ss" doy fee que conozgo, [lo firmor] .
D".
Domineo
.
Scarlatti
Antemi Gaspar Feliciano Garda"
[The
separate memorial, to which Scarlatti alludes, has not been
found. Solar Quintes, p. 148, states that he vainly searched the papers of the above notary for the years 1 749-1762, and those of his successor,
Francisco Miranda.]
7757. Note
of Scarlett?* DomtciU. Madrid, San Marcos, Matricula de San Marcos aneio de San Martin del ano 175 1, fols. 34, 36, 54. [Bauer, p. 20, states that this document indicates that from the beginning of 1750 Scarlatti and his family lived in the Calle de San *
343
'
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND Marcos anejo "in
casas de
D
Madrid
to find this record in
n
HIS OFFSPRING
Sebastian de Espinosa." I
in
was unable
1948.]
[17 52, Sfring.~\ Letter from Scarlatti [to Don Fernando de Silva y Alvarez de Toledo , Duke of Huescar, later twelfth Duke of Alba]
.
AUTOGRAPH. Madrid, Museo Luciani,
Subira;
Alba. (Published in facsimile
Archivi and
in
in
Berwick y Alba;
in
Domenico
Scarlatti
[Torino,
I939]-) [For
facsimile, see Fig. 39. See also Chapter VII; and Subira, 46-48, Plates V to VIII. The left hand margin of the Scarlatti letter shows signs of once having been bound with the original voice
pp.
Hymns of Pierre du Hotz to which Hymns are the work of a copyist. Their
The
parts of the
it
of the
horizontal format
refers.
scores is
same as the vertical of Scarlatti's letter. At the end of the writtenout title and text of the Hymn to Fernando, Grand Prior of Malta, is s Novembris Anno Domini MDCCXCIV." the date: "Matriti Kal the
.
On in
the back of the letter, at the margin, sideways,
is
an inscription
"Ano de 1752 / Scarlati, Musico de M." "En la carpeta referente a los dos
an eighteenth-century hand:
clavicordio y compositor de S.
Subira, pp. 46-47, notes: mencionados documentos musicales de Pierre du Hotz, ambos autografos, se halla esta nota, escrita por un archivero del siglo XVIII: '. El Archivo puso en mano del Duque mi Senor, difunto abuelo de V. E., estos Laudos la Semana Santa del ano 1752, y los tuvo en " . .* su poder hasta el lunes 20 de agosto de 1770. manuscript instruthe Essercizi and the The manuscript copy of mental parts of four cantatas by Pergolesi in the Alba collection were destroyed during the Spanish Civil War. The latter were suspected by .
.
.
Luciani
(Alia scoferta degli autograft di Domenico Scarlatti) Scarlatti, but this seems doubtful to me.]
to
have been written by
7752, March to
3.
Fernando
Power
of Attorney in
Scarlatti
Connection with the Transfer Assigned to Juan
of a Benefice formerly
Antonio.
Madrid, Archivo Historico de Protocolos 16344, fol. 72. (Pub149-150.) [This benefice in the parish church of Alijar, archbishopric of Seville, was assigned to Juan Antonio Scarlatti on Dec. 31. 1749. Juan Antonio having died in the meantime, and the benefice having lished by Solar Quintes, pp.
Scarlatti, a "clerigo de menores ordenes," and administrator, grants a power of attorney
been given to Fernando
Domenico, in
as his father
connection with
its
administration to Francisco Baquero, curate
of the Sagrario of the cathedral of Seville. Signed before the notary, Gaspar Feliciano Garcia. The signature is presumably autograph.] *
344
*
'DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND HIS OFFSPRING I
J 53, October 3. Plenary Indulgence Granted Scarlatti and and Relatives by Pofe Benedetto XIII.
Madrid,
J u ty
i~JS4'
Wife
family papers.
Scarlatti
Power
9-
his
Granted by
of Attorney
Scarlatti
Nicolas
to
Olivier in Lisbon.
Madrid, Archivo Historico de Protocolos 16347,
fol.
254. (Pub-
lished by Solar Quintes, p. 151.)
[In connection with Scarlatti's Portuguese assets. Signed before Gaspar Feliciano Garcia. The signature is presumably
the notary,
autograph.] I
D
eatn Notice of Domenico Scarlatti. 757> J u h 2 3n Madrid, San Martin, Libro de difuntos de la Parroquia de S Martin que da frincife en 1°. de Marzo de 1756 concluye en 75 de Diciemb. de ij6 3, fol. 62. "D n Domingo Escarlati, Cavallero del or~n de Santiago, Marido a que fue de primeras Nupzias de D Cathilina Gentili, y de segundas a Anastasia Maxarti, y nat. de la Ciudad de Napoles, lo hera de D n e hijo de D Alessandro Escarlati, y D a Antonia Ansaloni (difuntos) Parroq 110 de esta Iglesia, Calle de Leganitos, Casas de adm on ., otorgo to no ante Gaspar Feliciano Garcia, ss su Testam R. en nuebe de Octubre de mil setecientos quarenta y nuebe, en el que senala Cinquenta Missas, su lim a a tres r s nombro por Testamentarios a la .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
Da
Y
.
,
dha.
Anastasia, su muger, y
.
Cap
Torres, Presbytero,
an .
de
al
S.
D or D n .
M
8
Christoval
.
R
en su
.
1 .
Romero
Capilla de los
de res
s
.
Reyes nuebos de Toledo. Y por Herederos nombro 2 D n Juan n Antonio, D Fernando, D a Mariana, D n Alexandro, y D a Maria n mos Escarlatti, sus hijos lex y de la referida su primera muger, y a D Domingo, D n Antonio, D a Barbara, y D a Rosa Escarlati, tambien moB tos sus hijos lex y de la citada su segunda muger. Recivio los s 108 08 Sacram cinquenta murio en veinte y tres de Julio de mil setez .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
y
siete,
enterrose en
el
secreto, con licencia del s [
I
7S7> J u h
2 3-
Conv to or .
.
de
n s
Norberto, de esta Corte, de
.
Vicario."
Document on Death, Testament and
Burial of Scar-
latti.]
(Mentioned by Bauer,
pp.
49-50, as
Desposorios y Difuntos ano de 1757.
document
in
•
among
." I
the
was unable
"Legajos de to trace this
1948.)
Roque de Galdames.]
[Signed, I
.
757> Sept. i8 y iq, 20, 22, 30, Oct. 30. Accounting of the Portion of Scarlatti
y
s
Estate Allotted to Maria Scarlatti, and of the Royal Widow and Children.
Pension Accorded Scarlatt?s
Madrid,
Scarlatti family papers.
"Para
D
a .
•
Maria
345
Scarlatti
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND Dn
Roque de Galdames. Escrivano de
sala de los senores Alcaldes de
HIS OFFSPRING
S.
M.
Camara En
de
la
Corte, y de los Reales Bureos y Casas de las Reinas Reynante y Viuda Nuestras Senoras (que Dios guarde) etc. Certifico que
su casa y
Dn
haviendo fallecido
Domingo
veinte y tres de Jullio de este ano, en serbicio de la
Scarlatti,
El
dia
Reyna Reynante
nuestra senora (que Dios guarde) bajo la disposition del testamento
que tenia otorgado En esta Corte, el dia diez y nuebe de Octubre de mill setecientos quarenta y nuebe, ante Caspar Feliciano Garcia
M. dexando por sus hixos lexitimos, y herederos, a a Fernando, D a Maria; D Barbara; D a Rosa; D n Domingo, y Antonio Scarlatti, sus hixos, y por la Representacion de D n Alexandro que tambien lo fue, y havia fallecido, a D n Alexandro Domingo Scarlatti su Nieto, A pedimento de D a Anastasia Gimenez Parrado su Viuda, Con su Zitacion y asistencia, y la de los demas Interesados, y por la de los Menores, Con la de su Curador [adlitem ? ] Lorenzo Joseph de la Camara, Procurador de los n reales Consexos; En Virtud de Autos del senor D Pedro de Castilla Caballero, de los consejos de Castilla y Guerra de S. M. y Juez del Real Bureo y Casa de la Reyna nuestra senora, durante la ausencia escrivano de S.
Dn Dn
.
.
.
del S
or
Marques de Monterreal, a presencia de
.
ante mi
el
scrivano,
Infraescripto
Imbentario de todos
los vienes,
dio
se
su senoria, y por y Finalizo el
principio,
Alhaxas, y efectos que dejo, y n Domingo, se prozedio a
hallaron por Fallecimiento de dho
D
.
Conformidad y
tasacion de ellos, por los Maestros, que de
se la
Judicial-
mente, nombraron todos los Interesados, y a la practica de las demas Correspondientes diligencias; En cuio Estado se les notifico, que para la Liquidacion, quenta y Particion que entre ellos debia haver, de lo que a cada uno, por sus Derechos Correspondiese, nombrasen, el Contador, 6 Contadores que juesen de su aprobacion; y haviendo hecho en mi el infraescripto, y azeptadolo en forma debida, teniendo presentes todos los Autos,
Con
arreglo a
ellos,
y
los
Supuestos Necesari-
Forme dha
Liquidacion, y por Consiguiente, las debidas Hixuelas a Maria Escarlatti, a siendo una de ellas a cada Interesado, os,
Y
D
.
quien segun dicha Liquidacion tocaban por razon, de sus lexitimas,
Paterna y Materna, treinta y ocho mill, quatrocientos sesenta y ocho rrB y m°. de vellon, se la hizo pago de esta Cantidad, En los efectos, Dinero, y Alhajas que se expresan, y su tenor Con el de las tasas de dhas Alhaxas, Es en esta forma .
Haver de D* Maria hixa de
Dn
habida en
Por
la lexitimia
el
.
Materna como siete
mrs de *
D a CathaCinquenta y
hija de
lina Gentili, catorce mill novecientos,
un Reales, y diez y
Scarlatti,
Domingo Scarlatti, primer Matrim
vellon.
346
.
.
.
l4(///)95 1.17
— DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND de
Por
la lexitimia
Dn
Domingo
.
Paterna,
como una de
los hijos
D a Cathalina,
dha
Scarlatti y de la
HIS OFFSPRING
veinte y tres mill quinientos, diez y seis r nuebe mrs de vellon. . .
8
y diez
23(7//) 5 16.19
.
Importa
el
Haver de dha
Da
38 (///) 468.2
Maria
.
expresados Treinta y ocho mill quatrocientos, 8 sesenta y ocho R y dos mrs de vellon, y de esta
los
.
Cantidad,
se la
hace pago, en los expresados vienes
Credito, y Dinero Imbentariados, y Tasados, en la forma Siguiente
Primeram te
se la
cientos y cinco rr
B
Pago. hace pago en diez mill quatro-
que
En
corresponden
la
el
Cre-
Ciento y quarenta y cinco mill seiscientos 8 y settenta y un rr de Portugal Asimismo se continua, el pago, en dos mill ciento dito de los
io(///)405
quarenta y dos rr 8 y veinte y nuebe mrs de vellon, que En efecribo dinero, la tocan de los treinta mill
que quedaron existentes, respecto a que mill de su metad, se han adjudicado, a
los quince la referida
D\ Anastasia, y los otros quince mill, se reparten con igualdad entre los siete herederos. En un Relox de Bolsillo de 6ro, de nueba Imben8 on cion, Tres mill r de v En ocho Camisas [Hereafter I omit the .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
tonia
(//)l04
bata
quatro pares de Enaguas
.
Mangas
dos pares de
.
En En
.
.
.
(//)°37
.
Almilla de Co-
de
(//)oo4 (//)o20
.
quatro pares de Calzettas
quatro Panuelos de
.
.
.
musulina y una cor-
(//)030
.
.
En Tres toallas y un Peynador En un par de Buelos de Cambray En dos pares de Buelos ordinarios En quatro pares de bueltas y quatro escotes En dos Debantales de Cambray En quatro Debantales de Lienzo En Cinco Panuelos de Faldriquera En dos Capotillos En una Mantilla En dos Zagalexos, uno de Lienzo, y otro .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
En En
.
.
.
.
.
(//)o40 (//)oo8 (//)oo6 (//)oi5
.
.
.
.
dos pares de Guantes de Ylo
347
.
.
.
de
(//)oi6 (//)o04
.
dos Pares de medias viexas
(//)o2o (//)oo4 (//)o04 {/ /)o'jo
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
(//)c»38
.
.
vaieta
3(///)ooo
.
written-out figures.]
En En
2(///) 142.29
.
.
(//)oc»4
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
En una media vata de Coton ... En dos sabanas quasi nuebas En tres Cortinas de Estopa En quatro Almoadas ... En una Manta de vaieta blanca En una Colcha de Cotonia En un Cobertor de Pano En dos Vasquinas de tafetan Negras En dos Casacas de Griseta En dos Briales de Griseta En un Brial biexo En una Cotilla de Damasco azul En dos Paletinas, y dos Petos En un Manto viejo En dos Sabanas vien tratadas En otras dos sabanas En dos Almoadas En quatro Serbilletas, vien tratadas alistadas En una Colcha de Tafetan de [Nubes ] ... En tres colchas de Terliz de Francia y dos .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
(//)o32 (//)oi8 (//)o6o
.
.
.
(//) I 35
.
.
.
.
(//)oio (//)o6o
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
(//)°30 (//)o8o (//)o45 (//)o6o (//)oo2 (//)o20 (//)oo6 (//)oo8 (//)o6o (//)o6o (//)oo6 (//)o24 (//)°5 2
?
Fundas...
(//)i8o
En En En En
un colchon de lana, con sus Fundas (//)o6o una Marmita de Cobre, su peso siete libras (//)o56 uno de los Cantaros de Cobre (//)°9^ un Calentador de Azofar (//) 0I 5 [Marginal note, by Margarita Gentili:] "lo llevo mi hijo" En un velon de Azofar (//)oi4 En un Chocolatero (//)oc>4.i7 En dos Garrajones de Cobre i//)°3% En una Sarten (//)oo4 En una Copa de Azofar que pesa doze libras, (//)o8i y ocho onzas En una Tetera de Plata, su peso un marco y Cinco onzas (///)i6o En una Salbilla de Plata grande, con sus Contornos (//)865 En tres Cubiertos de plata, Compuestos de Cuchara, tenedor y Cuchillo {//)S 00 .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
En
.
.
.
dos Candeleros de Plata pequenos su peso dos
onzas, y una ochaba Flamenquilla redonda, su peso Tres marcos, y Seis ochabas En un Plato, su peso, dos marcos, dos onzas y Tres ochabas
marcos,
seis
.
.
.
(//) 44 2
En una
.
.
.
.
.
.
'
348
*
(///)495 {//)3>^V l l
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND En
otro Plato, su peso, dos marcos, dos onzas,
y Tres ochabas
En
.
.
un marco,
siete
onzas y quatro
.
.
.
(//)3°7
.
otro su peso
ochavas
En En
HIS OFFSPRING
otro su peso, dos marcos y seis ochavas su Aderezo de Cruz, y Arracadas que tienen .
ocho piedras, y
treinta y
chorreras
.
.
Cruz y
la
.
.
(//)3 10 (//)335
[fazo ?], con
i(///)o20
.
[Marginal note, by Margarita Gentili:] "la cruz la di a la virgen del colegio de Monterrey y las a arracadas a Nra S de Monserrate." En una Sortixa, de dos Diamantes y un Rubi En la Venera apreciada en treinta y seis mil .
.
.
doscientos y siete rr
8
de v
on
.
(//)o24
repartidos entre los
.,
herederos la corresponden, y se le adjudican, 8 on cinco mill Ciento y settenta y dos rr de v
siete
En azul
... .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
[Marginal note, by Margarita Gentili:] "Le di a mi hijo quando fue a Barcelona" En un Cofre, de terciopelo encarnado En una Cama de tres tablas dadas de verde, y dos pieis de Yerro En dos Quadros grandes de Prespectiba de .
Roma En
.
.
.
.
.
72
(//)o20 (//) J 5°
i(///)500
.
otros Cinco que
tres viejas
En
.
l
(//)345 (//)3 00 (//)i64 (//)o40
_
En un Buro de Nogal, con sus Cajones En Zien Arrobas de Lena En un vaul, con sus dibisiones para Plata
.
S(///)
oro Esmaltados de
tres pares de votones de
.
.
representan
dos viejos y
l(///)500
.
quatro Prespectibas de Mariano
hechadas
.
.
.
En dos Damesanas, enrexadas En dos Taurettes. de los diez y ocho iguales En quatro Taurettes de vaqueta encarnada En seis sillas de Paxa, Color de Cafe En un tocador de palosanto En dos Escaparatitos, con dos mesitas y .
.
.
.
.
vidrios
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
(//)240 (//)o32
.
En quatro Barillas de Yerro En un maleton viexo, y otro .
.
.
de los de vaqueta
nuebo [Marginal note, by Margarita Gentili:] "estos n los llevo mi hijo D Gaspar a Barcelona" En una de las Libreas .
.
2(///)400 (//)024 (//)450 (//)o66 (//)o30 (//)500
.
(//)i8o
.
.
.
.
*
349
'
(//)o8o
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
[Marginal note, by Margarita Gentili:] "se rompio con el uso" En un espexo de marco dorado, de tres quartas de ancho En dos Cornucopias Con su luna En tres Cortinas, mediante que las quatro se las .
.
.
Da
llebo la viuda
En
.
Anastasia
Gimenez
.
.
.
(//)900
.
dos Tablas de Manteles grandes
adamascadas En una salbilla de Plata [Marginal note, by Margarita Gentili:] "Esta te de la lampara." [ ] es q En Cinco Cortinas de Canamazo .
.
(//)o6o (//)$$2
.
.
.
(//)l8o (//)o30
.
.
.
.
la
.
.
En En
dos espexos
.
.
(//)o30 (//)520 (//)o52
.
.
.
dos teteras de Azofar ... [Marginal note, by Margarita Gentili:] llevo mi hijo" En unas Puertas Vidrieras .
.
"las
(//)°57
.
3 8(////) 4 68.2
De la Liquidacion referida, se dio Traslado a todos los Interesados por auto de Siete del Corriente, y haviendo se les notificado pusieron Con
su respuesta, cuio tenor,
S
el
del auto de Aprobacion, orden de
M,
y auto, en que se manda guardar, y Cumplir, es como se sigue [In margin, above:] Nota. En las Pensiones y Gracias de los
Reyes nfos S re8
.
incluso lo de Portugal corresp
i2(//)4o6
en .
annualm te a
esta
8
y 31 mrs de vellon on 08 Notificaz a los Interes y su respuesta En la Villa de Madrid a diez y ocho dias del mes de septiembre de
Interesada
r
.
.
n0
Cinquenta y Siete, yo el ss de Camara de la sala y de esta Commision, notifique el auto de Traslado que antecede a n a Anastasia Gimenez Parrado, y Macarti Viuda de Domingo mill setecientos
D
.
D
.
Da
Barbara; D* Rosa, n Domingo, y Antonio Scarlatti, sus quatro hijos, v del dho su difunto marido de los que se halla tutora, y Curadora de Personas n Fernando, Scarlatti, maior de veinte y cinco anos, A y vienes; A Scarlatti, n
D
por
Si,
y por la Representacion de
D
.
.
.
D
Da
Margarita Gentili Abuela de D\ Maria Scarlatti, y su tutora y Curadora; a D a Maria del Pilar Perez viuda de D n Alexandro Scarlatti, como Madre Tutora y Curadora de la Persona y vienes de D n Alexandro Domingo Scarlatti, su hixo, y del dho D n Alexandro su difunto Marido; tambien notifique dho auto, a Lorenzo Joseph .
.
.
.
.
Y
de la Camara, Procurador de los rr8
D Dn
y
.
D\
Da
.
consejos,
Dn
Como Curador
Dn
Domingo,
de
Antonio, n Alexandro Domingo, los cinco, hijos y nieto, del expresado Domingo Scarlatti, a todos en sus Personas, q nes dijeron, que
Expresados,
los
Barbara,
Rosa,
.
.
.
*
350
*
.
— DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
con su respectiba asistencia y consentimiento, se ha formado por el presente escrivano la liquidacion, Quenta, Particion, e hijuelas antecedentes, y que sin embargo de que las tienen reconozidas, haviendolo buelto, a executar nuebamente, hallan estar en todo conforme, sin
agrabio alguno, por lo que en su devida aprobacion,
no
se
les
ha
menor
reparo, y en todo la tienen consentida y nuebala contienten, pidiendo que respecto, a haver y a recivido
ofrecido
mente
el
y passado a su parte y poder realmente, y con efecto, la dha D*. a Barbara, Anastasia, lo que asi a ella, como a sus quatro hixos, n n Antonio, les ha correspondido, y Domingo, y D* Rosa;
D
D
D
.
.
.
n Fernando lo suio, y tambien con conel citado D a sentem t0 de su hermana D Maria y su Abuela D*. Margarita lo de la dha D*. Maria Scarlatti, y la expressada D\ Maria del Pilar Perez, n Alejandro Domingo q. unos y otros, lo perteneciente a su hixo D asi en Dinero, como en Alhaxas, y vienes, a exception de lo perteneciente al Credito y debito de los ciento y quarenta y cinco mill,
adjudicado
.
.
.
8
y seis mrs de Portugal, por dejarlo, asi n prebenido en la testamentaria memoria, el dho Domingo Scar-
un
seiscientos settenta y
r
D
.
Esto no obstante que el referido Credito, se halla En el dia disposicion de su recobro, y quando le tenga, deberan percebir Interessados, el todo de lo que les va adjudicado, v de la parte
latti;
sin
x
los
que
se
Cobrase, lo que a cada uno perteneciese
dejado de percebir en
la
la parte
Joya tasada por
el
8 .
tambien han va adjudicada treinta
de vellon, mediante a que esta
dia prohindibisa exsistente
DQ
en poder de
de los testamentarios del dho
no poderse
Y les
Thasador Joseph Serrano, en
el
mill doscientos y siete rr
;
que a dhos Interesados,
Dn
.
dibidir, percibiran, a su
Cristobal
y
seis
se halla
En
Romero, uno
Domingo, de la que vendida por tiempo Cada uno de los a quien
les toca, y va adjudicado, 6 lo que si tubiese vaxa, pueda Corresponder, Prebiniendose que en la nominada Joya, nada va adjudicado, a la expresada D a Anastasia, por ser Alhaxa Correspondiente, Como otras en que tampoco la ha tenido, al primer Matrimonio, con Cuias adbertencias, attendiendo a la Zerteza de todo lo expresado, y al nuebo Consentimiento, que prestan para la aprovacion de dha Quenta y Particion, y de las Hixuelas que Comprehende; todos unanimes y Conformes, y cada uno por la accion que representa, piden, y suplican, al sor Juez que de estos Autos Conoze, ponga en ellos a la referida, quenta y Particion su debida approbacion, mandando que a cada Interesado, se les de para en guarda de su Derecho las Copias que pideren, v lo Firmaron, de que Certifico DV Anastasia Gimenez Macarti Maria del Pilar Perez
va adjudicada lo que
les
.
.
—
— Fernando
Scarlatti
— Roque
—
de
Galdames
Auto de Aprovacion
En
la Villa de Madrid, a diez v nuebe dias del mes de Septiembre n de mill settecientos Cinquenta y Siete: El sor Pedro de Castilla
D
*
351
*
.
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
Cavallero, de los Supremos Consexos de Castilla y Guerra de S M. y Juez propietario de los Reales Bureos y Casas de las Reynas Reynante, y viuda nras senores (que Dios guarde) Durante la Dixo que por quanto, ausencia del senor Marques de Monterreal se han concluido y executado, de Conformidad, de las partes, las quentas y Particiones de los vienes, y efectos que quedaron por n Domingo Scarlatti, entre su mujer D a fin y muerte de D a a n Anastasia Gimenez, y sus quatro hijos, D Barbara, D Rosa, D Domingo, y D n Antonio Scarlatti, de este segundo Matrimonio, y D n Fernando, y D a Maria Scarlatti del primero, y repressentando n Alexandro, su hijo D n Alexandro Domingo Scara su Padre D latti su nieto, y a nombre de este, y demas menores, su Curador [adlitem ?], de las quales, haviendose dado Traslado no se les ha ofrecido reparo, ni agrabio alguno, por lo que las han consentido, y pedido, su aprovacion Por tanto las debia de aprovar, aprobo, y a ellas, ynterponia E Interpuso Su authoridad y Judicial Decreto para su maior validacion y subsistencia, y Condenaba, y Condeno a las partes, a estar y pasar por ellas en todo y por todo, y mando, que a cada una, se le de la Copia que pidiere, de su hijuela, para guarda de su Derecho, otorgando Carta de Pago en Forma, In n Domingo Scarlatti por su testam t0 vajo respecto de que dho D
—
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
Y
.
.
cuia disposition murio, dejo, a la referida su
Tutora y curadora de
Da
expresados sus quatro
los
relebada de Fianzas, cuio
muger
Cargo
les esta
.
Anastasia por
menores,
hixos
discernido, y se
obligo a
cumplirle con Juramento y en Forma, y recibido y llebado a su poder, los vienes y efectos de sus Hixuelas, en attention, a no haverle,
dejado Frutos por alimentos de
Tres
senalar, y senalo,
que su Madre,
les asista
Dn
[adlitem ?] sus Pensiones,
en forma,
.
que
yntereses pupilares,
referidos su hijos, le
los
Ducados annuales
en sus Colejios, y
Lorenzo de
como
Con
cientos
la
debia de
a cada uno, con
se los satisfara, su
Camara, por mesadas, o
Curador
tercios,
de
Cobrando, para todo lo qual le abilita residuo lo vaia poniendo en los Gremios a
las fuere el
Con
ynterbencion del presente Secretario para que
D
a en todo tiempo Conste, y lo mismo practicara, Con la pension de n Fernando, los TresMaria Scarlatti, entregando, a su hermano cientos Ducados para sus alimentos, y subsistencia en su Colejio, y el Residuo en los Gremios Como ba dispuesto, con la misma ynter.
D
bencion, y con la obligation ordinaria de restituirlos, cada y quando mande por este Juzgado, para poner los en estado, 6 en carrera
se les
a su tiempo, y otorgando a este fin, las obligaciones Correspondientes, y para que en los Thessorerias de sus Magestades, Catholicas, y Fidelisima les tengan por partes lexitimas para su percepcion, y Cobranza, como a d a Anastasia; y a D n Fernando, para las suias, se les dara testimonio autentico y en forma de este auto, Con Insercion de los R". Decretos de estas Mercedes Con que Sus .
.
*
352
*
—
D
——
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
—
HIS OFFSPRING
D
n dignaron onrrar, la buena memoria de Domingo Scarlatti, y expresion del Plan, de la Prorrata, que toco a cada uno, por este su auto, su senoria, asi Con los demas Insertos necesarios;
Magestades,
lo
mando Ofn de
se
y Firmo S
M
Y
—
n
Pedro de
Castilla
—Roque
de
.
Galdames
Haviendo hecho presente a s M. el auto de V S que debuelbo, se ha servida aprobarle siendo de su real agrado que VS. tenga a su Cuidado la puntual Observancia de el, y unico manejo y distribucion de las Pensiones de los menores, entregando las suias a la viuda, y a n Fernando, todo Judicialmente, para que en qualquier tiempo
D
.
Conste, Cuidando asimismo de que los menores, no salgan
motibo que de su real orden participo a V. S, para su cumplimento: Dios guarde a VS muchos anos como deseo. Buen Retiro a veinte de Septiembre de de sus respectibos Colexios para ebitar Distracciones;
mill
senor
Cinquenta y Pedro de Castilla
setecientos
Dn
Siete
—El
sin
Lo
Conde de Valdeparaiso
Auto
M
Guardese y Cumplase en todo y por todo lo resuelto por S que se comprehende en el Papel antecedente, del senor Conde de Valdeparaiso, su fecha, veinte del corriente, y en su consequencia, y la aprobacion que incluie se ponga en practica todo lo contenido en el auto que Zita, executandose, segun y en la forma que en el se prebiene El senor D n Pedro de Castilla Caballero, de los Supremos, Consexos de Castilla y Guerra de s M. y Juez del Real Bureo y Casa de la Reyna nuestra senora; Lo mando y senalo, en Madrid, a veinte y dos dias del mes de septiembre de mil settecientos Cinquenta
—
y Siete
—
— Roque
Esta rubricado
Segun que originales,
de Galdames
Consta y Concuerda Con sus del Real Bureo de mi para que conste en fuerza de lo prebenido
lo relacionado eynserto
que lo quedan en
la
escrivania
Cargo a que me remitto, Y y mandado en el auto ynserto, por lo que corresponde Maria Escarlatti, A su ynstancia, y la del expresado
a la diha
D
Da
.
n
Fernando del mes de
Doy la presente en Madrid, a treinta dias Septiembre de mil settecientos Cinquenta y siete Roque de Galdames su hermano.
Nota
Que despues de sacadas las hixuelas, se pago el papel sellado y amanuense, y quedaron liquidos de resto que partir de la Cuenta de testamentaria Diez mill quatrocientos treinta y un r 8 de que 8 tocaron a la sr\ Viuda Cinco mil doscientos quinze r y diez y 8 siete mfs que se le pagan En tres mill r para mudarse y dos mill
—
doscientos quinze los siete
r
herederos
septimos que mil setez
08
.
—
8 .
—
se les
.
Y
a cada uno de y diez y siete mrs en dinero; 8 Setezientos quarenta y cinco rr dos mrs y tres
r pagaron efectivamente. Madrid y 6ct *. treinta de
cinquenta y
siete
— •
Rezivi estos, settecientos, quarenta, y
353
*
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND cinco
HIS OFFSPRING
dos maravedis, y tres septimos"
reales,
[a
rubric,
this
last
sentence in a different hand]
*757> Seft. i8> *9> 20) 22 i 30, Oct. 50. Accounting of the Portion of Scarlatt?s Estate Allotted to Domingo Scarlatti, and of the Royal Pension Accorded Scarlatti^ Widow and Children. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers.
Dn
"Para .
is
.
[Text
.
Domingo
in itself so inconsistent as to
an orthography which
defy consistent transcription, with that
accounting prepared for Maria Scarlatti.]
the
of
Scarlatti
identical, except for variants of
Uno
Interesado, y siendo.
Dn
de
ellos.
Dn
Domingo
.
"...
a cada
Scarlatti, hixo, del
mencionada D\ Anastasia, a quien segun Corresponden por su haver, veinte y 8 tres mill quinientos diez y seis r , y diez y nuebe mfs de vellon, se le hizo pago de esta cantidad, en los efectos Dinero y Alhaxas que se expresan, y su tenor con el de las tasas de dhas Alhaxas Es en esta forma
dho
.
Domingo, y de
la
expresada Liquidacion
la
le
D n Domingo Scarlatti D n Domingo Scarlatti,
Haver de hixo de
.
havido en
Por
Dn
la lexitimia
Domingo
.
como uno
Paterna,
Scarlatti, difunto da
Gimenez. su seg 'quinientos diez y
de v
Segundo Matrimon
el
.
seis
de los hixos de
Da
y de
.
Anastasia
Mujer, Veinte y tres mill reales, y diez y nuebe mfs
on .
.
.
Importa
el
Haver de dho
Dn
.
Domingo,
los
2 3 (///)5i6.i 9 23(///)5i6.i9
expresados, Veinte y tres mill quinientos diez y seis 8 r y diez y nuebe mfs de vellon de Cuia Cantidad se le
hace pago, en los expressados vienes, Credito, y
Dinero Imbentariados y Tassados, en sigu
la
forma
te .
Pago.
Primeram te cientos y
Cinco
hace pago, en diez mil quatro
se le r
8 .
de
Vn
.
que
le
Corresponden en
el
Credito de los Ciento y quarenta y cinco mill seis8 cientos y settenta y un rr de Portugal Asimismo se Continua el Pago en Dos mill ciento
io(///)405
8 y quarenta y dos rr y veinte y nuebe mfs de Vellon, que En efectibo Dinero, le tocan de los treinta ,
mill que
quedaron
referida
D
a .
respecto a que han adjudicado a
existentes,
quince mill de su mitad
se
los la
Anastasia, y los otros quince mill, se
reparten con igualdad Entre los •
siete
354
herederos *
.
le .
.
2(///) 142.29
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND En
HIS OFFSPRING
Venera grande Tassada En
la
mill, doscientos
rr
siete
y
s
treinta y seis adjudican, Cinco
se le
.
Catorce mfs
mill Ciento y setenta y dos, y
.
5
.
.
(///) 172.14
En una
Flamenquilla su peso, tres Marcos y [Hereafter I omit the writtenquatro Ochabas .
.
.
out figures.]
En un
(//)49 2
Trinchero redondo su peso
Marcos
tres
y Cinco ochabas En dos Japonzitos para Frasquitos su peso .
ochabas
.
.
(//)oi8
(///)o84
.
En una Moneda Adarmes
quatro
.
En
.
.
y
(//) 375
.
en que esta pintada una Caveza
(//)o6o
.
Moldura
otro del Dilubio Unibersal, con
antigua
En En
.
.
Onza
de oro que pesa una
.
En un Quadro de Lutero
siete
Cuchara, y tenedor de plata que dice .
.
(//)420
.
.
En una Scarlatti
.
(//)8oo
.
otro que representa la Prizina
.
.
(//) 180
.
dos Quadros Companeros que representan un
Rio con Jente
.
.
.
En dos de vattallas En otros dos Companeros de los antecedentes En dos Mesas de Piedra grandes doradas En otra mas dorada Cubierta de Vaqueta En otra Chica verde En un vanco En tres Camisas, nuebas y viejas En Cinco Camisas ynteriores En tres pares de Calzetas En dos Almoadas de Coruna En dos Justillos En dos Almoadas de Coruna En dos Corbatines y dos Gorros En tres Servilletas En una Colcha de Indiana En un vestido de Gala En una Casaca de Pano En una Chupa de varragan En una Casaca de Barrag n En una Chupa de varragan azul En dos pares de Calzones de lo mismo En una Bata de Damasco En una Bata de Ratina En una Almilla de Ante .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
•
.
355
*
.
.
.
.
.
(//) 150
.
.
(//)o6o (//)o6o (//)o6o
.
(//)o20 (//)oo8 (//)oo3 (//)o30 (//)c>50
(//)oo9 (//)oo8 (//)oo8 (//)oo8 (//)oo6 (//)ooj.[lj'\
(//)o50 (//)i25 (//)oiO (//)o20 (//)oo8.[i7] (//)oi5 (//)oi5 (//)020 (//)oio (//)oio
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND En En En En En En En En En En En En En En En En En En
un sombrero de Gala un par de medias una Capa de Pano, y otra de [Lamparilla un Colchon de Coti, bien tratado un [Corte ? ] dado de verde una Colcha de Indiana .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
Con
lana
otras dos sabanas
otras dos
.
.
Almoadas
dos Toallas
.
dos serbilletas
.
seis
el
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
es
de plata
.
.
.
.
Cuchillos .
.
.
.
iguales,
.
(//)020 (//)oo6 (//)o 5 o (//)o 7 5 (//)o 9 o (//)0 3 2 (//)°75 (//)026 (//)034 (//)oio (//)oo8 (//)oo8 (//)02 4 (//)02 4 (//)450 i(///)28 5
•
07)375
.
Dos Cucharas
.
.
.
lisos
.
dos Quadros que representan un Rio tres
.
.
.
.
.
.
un Puno de vaston de oro tres
]
.
Taurettes, de los diez y ocho iguales
Coche
?
.
.
.
un Espadin, que no una peluca .
.
.
.
otro Colchon, tambien de Coti
dos Fundas
y dos Tenedores En un Catre
En En
HIS OFFSPRING
.
.
.
Cucharas, y una Espumadera de Cobre
.
.
(//)36o (//)o6o (//)o 9 o (//)Qi3
»3(///)5'6 [In margin, above:] Nota. res
Reyes nfs Inter
d0 .
En
Incluso lo de Portug
s
i2(//)4o6
r
8
Pensiones Concedidas por los
las 1
Corresp
n .
annualm te
.
a
este
y 31 mrs.
[Except for orthographical variants, the remainder of this docuthe same as that prepared for Maria Scarlatti.]
ment reads
1 J 59, December Scarlatti.
9; iy6o } Jan. 21. Marriage Certificate of Fernando
Madrid, San Martin. (Copy in Archivo Historico Nacional, Carlos No. 1799, fols. I3r- I4r.)
III,
1760, June 10. Receift by Margarita Rossetti Gentili for a Loan from
Fernando Madrid,
[The share
Scarlatti.
Scarlatti family papers.
loan of
4224
reales de vellon to be repaid
(a seventh), as heir of Maria Scarlatti
from Margarita's
(who had
evidently
"Venera" valued at 36207 reales de vellon, or in the eventual payment by the royal hacienda of a sum owing from the "Jornada que Sus Magestades hizieron a Sevilla," namely thirteen thousand four hundred reales. (This evidently refers to the sum that we have noted as owing to Domenico Scarlatti for the period from April 20, 1732, to June died in the meantime), in the eventual sale of a
12, 1733-)] •
356-
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
1762 f July 75. Testament of Margarita Rossetti Gentili. Madrid, Arch. Hist. Nac, Carlos III, No. 1799, fols. 23r-3iv. [A copy. Some difficulty was experienced in drawing it up because of Margarita's illness, advanced age, and apparently, touchiness. Fernando Scarlatti seems to have excused himself from having her in his house. She preferred to pass the rest of her days in the
house and company of
"D n
Eugenio Cachurro,
R
duria gfal de la distribucion de la Scarlatti, his wife.
1
oficial
de la Conta-
Da
Hacienda," and of
Barbara
Passages quoted in Solar Quintes, pp. 141-143.]
1763. December 15. Declaration of Inventory of Estate of Margarita Rossetti Gentili.
Madrid,
Scarlatti
family papers.
on August 24, 1763. The Scarlatti family papers include a number of documents from the years 1762 and 1763 concerning her last illness and death, and correspondence between her son, Gaspar Gentili and Fernando Scarlatti.] [She
1
died
766 June f
16. Petition of Antonio Scarlatti to
Become
a Cadet in the
Infanteria de Soria.
Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. [Mentions his mother, apparently
as not yet deceased, and mentions hundred ducats a year.]
receiving a royal pension of four
1768\ June 14. Commission
Domingo
of
Scarlatti in the Infanteria
de
Soria.
Madrid,
Scarlatti family papers.
7769, July 26. Baptismal Certificate of Francisco Scarlatti. Madrid, San Martin. (Copy in Arch. Hist. Nac, Carlos III, No. fols. I2v- I3r.) [He was born July 24, 1769, at Calle de Leganitos No. 8. His godmother was Maria Antonia Escarlati, (otherwise unidentified).]
1799,
7777, June 12. Certification that Domingo Scarlatti Secretaria de la Nueva Esfana from 176 1 to 1763. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers.
1782 y Feb. 75. Death Notice
of
Da
.
Worked
Lorena Robles, Wife
of
in the
Fernando
Scarlatti.
Madrid, San Martin. (Copy made March 12, 18 19,
in
Scarlatti
family papers.)
[She died, "Calle de Leganitos, casas de
178 3 y Afril
12. Inventoried Receipt
los
Premostatenses."]
Given by Alexandro Maria Scar-
for his Share in the Estate of Margarita Gentili. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers.
latti
*
357
'
DOCUMENTS ON SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
1794, Sept. 17. Testament of Fernando Scarlatti. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. (Copy in Arch. Hist. Nac, Carlos III, No. 1799, fols. I5r- I9r.) [In Carlos III, No. 1799, fol. ir, Fernando Scarlatti is qualified de la Contaduria gen de Salinas."] as "Oficial 1
.
.
.
,
Death Notice of Fernando Scarlatti. 1794, Madrid, San Martin. (Copy made March 12, 18 19, Sept. 20.
in Scarlatti
family papers.)
[He died at Calle de Leganitos No. 13.] 1794, Seft. 26. Power of Attorney, from Antonia
to
Francisco Scar-
latti.
Madrid, J 799>
J une
Scarlatti family papers.
2 5>
Mutual Testament
of
Domingo
Scarlatti
and Maria
Severa de Alverdi. Madrid, Scarlatti family papers. [A copy, dated April 15, 1801, after the death of Maria Severa de Alverdi. Here Domingo's mother, "Anastasia Ximenes Parrado" is
He
referred to as deceased.
Ximenes." Antonio 1802, August
5.
Scarlatti
Testament
is
of
calls
himself
mentioned
as
Maria Perez,
"Domingo
Scarlati
y
an executor.]
Widow
of
Alexandro
Scarlatti.
Madrid, [Filed in
Scarlatti family papers.
May, 1803,
after her death.]
1820, June 23. Proofs
of Nobility of Francisco Scarlatti. Madrid, Archivo Historico Nacional, Carlos III, No. 1799.
[Francisco Scarlatti, "Ministro Honorario con antiguedad en el Consejo de la Real Hacienda, Gentil Hombre y Contador General de la Real Casa y Patrimonio," nominated to the order of Carlos III on Sept. 4, 1 8 1 7, with a right to the first vacant place. Proofs approved on June 23, 1820. This volume includes transcripts of the baptismal certificate of Francisco Scarlatti, the marriage and baptismal certificates of Fernando Scarlatti, his testament and that of Domenico and of Margarita Rossetti Gentili, the baptismal certificates of Domenico and Catalina Scarlatti and their marriage certificate, Alessandro's death notice, the marriage certificate of Francisco and
Margarita Gentili (1699), the epitaph of Alessandro and a report on his tombstone with a drawing of his coat of arms, records of Domenico's knighthood, and documents concerning the Robles family.
The Scarlatti family papers include a number of documents that were evidently gathered by Francisco Scarlatti at this time. Some duplicate the above, and some were evidently not considered necessary for inclusion. Among them are notes on the Tuscan Scarlatti •
358
•
2
DOCUMENTS OS SCARLATTI AND
HIS OFFSPRING
family which were evidently considered irrelevant, and an extensive series
of
documents and notes concerning the GentQi family, the first wife. A document from Sta. Maria in
forebears of Domenico's
Rome, dated May
Publicolis in
8 19,
1
7,
testifies
that the
parish
Margarita Rossetti lived in the palace of the Marchese Costacuti "nobly, and with splendor, employregisters indicate that the family of
ing servants, a cook, and maids."
dated April 22, 18 19, in the
testifies
A
document from the same source, Maria Gentfli lived
that Francesco
same palace from 1697 to 1699. The on the Robles and Aldama
also include notes
I
am
told by
members
Scarlatti family papers families.
of the Scarlatti family that the portrait of
work of Goya, Lopez, Madrid. Solar Quintes, pp. 152-153, reveals the existence of a series of documents showing that Francisco Scarlatti had inherited his grandfathers tendency to financial irregularities. He was disastrously mired in debt, and owed even the rent of his apartment at 33, calle de Leganitos.] Francisco Scarlatti, allegedly the composite
and
others,
still
exists in
igi2 [date of last entries]. Carlos mi ultima voluntad. [Ms.] Madrid, Senora Rosa Rallo.
Scarlatti:
Historia de familia y
[Includes a history of the Scarlatti family and an autobiography.
On
page 2
is
given the following account of Domenico, one that
obviously highly inaccurate, especially in father
and
to
Florentine
connections,
its
is
references to Domenico's
and
in
its
supposition
that
Catalina was Domenico's second wife.]
"Caso a
disgusto de su padre, que era musico celebre y vico en
Florencia, capital del
Gran Ducado de Toscana, donde radicabon Duque. Hace
sus bienes y titulo de Baron, con honores y corona de
pocos anos aun existia su palacio en Florencia, con annas sobre la el Gobierno italiano en sus dependencias. Nacio Napoles y su esposa D\ Catalina Gentfli Rosetti en Roma (segundas nupcias) Tengo el retrato de este abuelo y el de su esposa ( I ) y muchos papeles de familia, con las armas y arboles genealogicos,
puerta, disputandolo
en
.
etc.
Era
caballero de
Santiago.
[Footnote:]
En Marzo
fueron cedidos estos dos retratos en 700 pesetas."
•
359
*
de
191
APPENDIX
III
Documents Concerning Instruments
The
inventory of the Ottoboni estate runs to four thousand pages. (R.
Archivio
di Stato in
marzo 1740,
prot.
Roma. Atti del notaio Ang. Ant. de Caesaris, 1838 & 1839. The instruments are mentioned
5 in
1838, fols. 88v, 1 25V, 134™, 1 75V, i82rv, 298V, 698™, 704™, 723r.) Besides the organ, fourteen harpsichords and one small spinet are mentioned. prot.
The
organ
principali voci
is
704™): "Un organo
so described (fol.
umane
corista
voce puerile, e tutto
flauto, cornetto,
il
con due
suo ripieno
12 con suo tiratutti, mostra di stagno, tastatura credenza di noce lavorata a specchi scorniciata, e ornata mo d'intagli di legno tutti dorati con arma dell'E defonto stimato scudi seguito di registri n°.
d'avorio,
tre cento
Of
—300—
."
the fourteen harpsichords eight
were constructed "d'ottava
stesa,"
range of keys, not the short octave in the bass that was so common in the seventeenth century. Two were small harpsichords of two registers. Of the remaining twelve, six had two registers and six had three. One of the large harpsichords was made by Giuseppe Mondini. It is described (fol. 298V) as "longo dodici palmi" and "d'ottava stesa a tre registri." The cases of all these instruments are so fully described that it might be possible to identify some of them if they are still in existence (See Cametti, / Cembali del Cardinale Ottoboni). The harpsichord painted by Pannini (whose signature, incidentally, frequently appears in the protocol as one of those concerned in settling Ottoboni's estate) is described (fol. I34rv) as follows: "Un Cimbalo a ottava stesa a tre registri con cassa levatora con a cassa sportello piegatore dipinto a prospettiva da Gio. Paolo Panini e d dipinta al di fuori a chiaro oscuro e dorata a oro buono con piede that
is,
with the
full
.
intagliato
The
con festoni
e putto,
tutto indorato stimato
il
—
harpsichord case painted by Gaspard Poussin
[scudi]
60
—
(161 3- 1675)
." is
described (fol. i82rv) as:
"Un Cimbalo, anzi una Cassa da cimbalo senza cimbalo dipinta a tempera dentro e fuori da Gasparo Pusin rappresentante Paesi con doratura liscia intorno; e serratura dorata con sua chiavetta con piede di d°. Cimbalo con Putti n°. 3. con festoni al d'intorno, et Aquila in mezzo ." (This is not the same as the case 70 a due teste il tutto dorato. of the harpsichord painted by Gaspard Poussin now in the Palazzo
— —
Rospigliosi in vicini
Rome,
property of the Princess Pallavicini.
instrument has one manual, two eight-foot
a-half-octave range from
G
without the '
360
*
G
stops,
sharp to c
3
.)
The
Palla-
a three-and-
See also Fig. 3.
'DOCUMENTS CONCERNING INSTRUMENTS INVENTORY OF QUEEN MARIA BARBARA^ INSTRUMENTS
B.
Madrid, Library of Royal Palace VII E 4 305 Testament of Maria Barbara of Braganza. Appended inventory of estate. Fol. 228r to fol. :
23
m
Clavicordios
Un clavicordio de Piano echo en Florencia todo lo interior de Zipres; Cassa de chopo dada de color de palosanto, teclado de Vox, y ebano, con cinquenta y seis teclas, y pie torneado de aya. Otro clavicordio de nogal con cinco registros, y quatro ordines de la
cuerdas para pluma, teclado con cinquenta y
seis
teclas de
ebano, y
nacar, pie de pino en tres columnas con adorno de talla.
Otro
alamo bianco y
clavicordio de pluma, la cassa de
lo interior
de
zedro, y zipres con sesenta y una teclas de ebano y nacar con pie torneado de aya.
Otro
clabicordio de
pluma que antes
fue de piano echo en Florencia,
de zipres y lo esterior dado de color berde con cinquenta y teclas de ebano y hueso en pie torneado de aya.
lo interior seis
Otro
clavicordio de la
misma manera y color berde echo tambien en pluma con cinquenta teclas de
Florencia que fue de piano, y aora es de ebano y hueso en pie torneado de aya.
Otro clavicordio de nogal con tres ordenes de cuerdas para pluma con cinquenta y ocho teclas de ebano y hueso en pie torneado de aya. Otro echo en Flandes dado de charol obscuro con tres ordines de querdas para pluma teclado de ebano y hueso en pie torneado de aya. Otro
clavicordio de nogal con tres ordenes de cuerdas para
teclado con cinquenta y
pluma
de ebano y hueso en pie torneado de
seis teclas
aya.
Por
Dn
.
Gregorio Garcia de
la
Vega, que
esta presente
&
expresso
que amas de los citados clavicordios havia dexado Su Magestad otros quattro que estaban dos en Aranjuez y dos en S n Lorenzo de los quales tenia puntual noticia y segun la que ahora se imbentarean asauer. .
.
.
.
Un clavicordio de Piano echo en Florencia de cipres dado de color encarnado teclado de Vox y ebano con quarenta y nuebe teclas en pie torneado de aya, que esta en Aranjuez. Otro que lo esterior es de alamo bianco y lo interior de zedro y zipress con dos ordines de cuerdas para pluma teclado de ebano y nacar con sesenta y una teclas en pie torneado de aya que tambien esta en Aranjuez. Otro Clavicordio de Piano de Zipres color berde teclado de Box y ebano con cinquenta y quattro teclas y pie torneado de Aya el qual se halla en el Real sitio de San Lorenzo. Otro Clavicordio de pluma la cassa de alamo bianco y lo interior de cedro y cipres tecleado de ebano y nacar con sesenta y una teclas en pie torneado de Aya que tambien esta en el Sitio de San Lorenzo. •
361
•
DOCUMENTS CONCERNING INSTRUMENTS MUSIC AND INSTRUMENTS Bologna, Archivio Notarile. Testamento di me, D. Carlo Broschi r n detto Farineli consegnato al Sig Notaro Lorenzo Gambarini questo di 20 Febraio 1782. [pp. 20-22]
—
D
Ora come
passo a specificare quelle cose che voglio conservate in essere
mio fideicommisso,
parte principale ed essenziale del
detto di sopra di eccettuare
degne da conservarsi
affine
vendite perche
dale ordinate di
e
che ho
le
giudico
perpetuare la mia gratitudine verso la
sorgente dalla quale mi sono venute dai Principi Sovrani, e
Magnanimo Trono
innumerabili munificenze del Luminoso e colle quali
fui
cumulato mentre
vissero
miei Clementiss.
li
di
ml
fra
le
Spagna Augusti
Reali Patroni.
Nel suo Testamento Sua Maesta
Regina Maria Barbara (che sia Spagnola sta fra le mie scritture, n si degno di farmi un legato che dice. Item Comando che a Carlo Broschi Farineli, il quale mi ha servito semfre con molto zelo e jedelta se li dia Vanello di diamante grande rotondo giallo } e tutti li in cielo)
il
la
traslato del quale in lingua
.
miei
libri
e carte di musica, e tre cembali,
.
D
.
uno
di registro, altro a
marteU
Questa distinta, e pia memoria fenna, li migliori. essendomi stata consegnata con tutta formalita dalli Sig rl Ministri Taa a gati del Re, cioe il sudetto anello per mano della Sig Giuseffe Geldruta de Gama Camerista della defonta Sua Maesta Regina e le 16 pappelliere (o siano armarii di musica) con li tre cembali per mano linoy
ed
altro a
.
.
.
.
1
del Sig
".
Dn
—
Gregorio Garzia della Vega
quella di color torchino con le
con galloncino d'oro
al
Armi
tra le quali
16
D
—
papelieri v'e
Reali, e foderata di velluto verde
frontale di tutte le nicchie, nelle quali stanno
delli spartiti di Musica, e di libri stampati Spagnola delle Opere di Metastasio, tutti li quali libri manuscritti o stampati tengono le coperte ricamate in oro, in argento, con sete di varii colori e che le sere di rappresentazione le Loro Maesta (che siano in Cielo) tenevano avanti di se nel Real Palchetto ed acciocche resti sempre vivo, e si conservi in perpetuo con la mia
collocati
li
libri
manuscritto
in lingua Italiana e
la Memoria dei Magnanimi Monarchi comando che tale luminoso legato sia uno de
gratitudine
voglio e
miei
Benefattori,
capi di questo
mio
fideicommisso da conservarsi perpetuamente, e che di questo distinto
monumento ne debbono mente quella
non
avere la piu vigilante, ed esatta cura particolar-
ne prestare fuor di casa a chicchesia, libro ne cembali, (i quali tengono come le descritte fafelliere le armi di Spagna dipinte.) e tener questi raccommandati a buono ed esperto accordatore di cembali con tenere tutto il complesso di musica gelosamente conservato ed in buon ordine per servirsene familiarmente divertendosi solamente fra dilettanti e professori amici sempre nella medesima camera dell'archivio di musica della quale alcuno,
di
ne carte
di
fidare,
musica,
362
DOCUMENTS CONCERNING INSTRUMENTS musica
si
trova fra
mie carte
le
il
suo inventario in lingua Spagnola, nella
quale conservazione voglio che vada compresa sica
con
li
cembali con
tre altri
le
mie armi,
tastatura movibile che cala, e cresce
movendola
il
altri
miei
carte di
libri e
mu-
piu grande de quali tiene la
mezzo tono
per
commodo
di
chi
alzando 6 portanto la detta tastatura verso gl'acuti, e calando verso il basso. Altro cembalo di minor grandezza che si piega in tre parti e che si riduce in un corpo dentro la sua cassa. Altro piccolo che egualmente si piega e si ripone
canta,
nella sua
sul fatto al bisogno delle voci
lavorato nella etna intarziato
cassetta
graziosamente
in tutto
cassetta quadrata
il
suo complesso;
e dipinta
'
di piu
una
debani e
matreperla
ed altra spinettina nella sua
cassetta bislunga coperta di pelle
panno torchino con uno deWautore A matt. Altro violino (d'amore) a cinque corte del Granatino (Autore Sfagnolo) ad uso di violino, o di viola. Altro violino di Strdvario [sic] in altra cassetta a forma di violino e formando tutti capi soprascritti un complesso di concerto privato e domestico lo stimo meritevole che sia conservato come ho disposto di sopra. [Farinelli's spelling and punctuation. His capitalization is too ambiguous to be followed consistently.] rossa contornata di chiadetti [chiavetti?] foderata di
due
violini
cioe
i
—
D.
INDICATIONS FOR REGISTRATION IN SCARLATTI'S
ORGAN PIECES I.
Manual Changes
in
Venice v 22 (K. 287)
Uffer
Lower
Uffer
Lower
Measures:
Measures:
Measures:
Measures
10
20
-
-
I
-
10
35-37
14
-
20
39-42
[22] -28
48-49
29-30
50-51
37-39
14
42-48
[22]
28-29
49-50
30-31
51 31
-52
52-54
-[32]
[32] -34
54-57 34-35
363
DOCUMENTS CONCERNING INSTRUMENTS 2.
Manual Changes
Venice v 23 (K. 288)
in
Uffer
Lower
Uffer
Lower
Measures:
Measures:
Measures:
Measures:
1 -
56-63
11
15
64-67
28-31
74-77
44-47
85-88
12 16
-
-
68-73
27
78-84
32-43 48-55
89- 100 101
3.
Registration in Venice
Org
.
Measures: [1
vn
3 (K.
-
328)
Org
Fl°.
no
.
Measures:
Measures:
Fl°.
Measures:
[57-62]
-13]
62
I3- J 7
-
64
64-66
17-25
66-68
25-27
27-29
68-70 29 "3 1
70-72
31-35
72-74
35-39
74-78
78-84
39-43
84-86
43-45
86-88
45-50 50-51
88-92
51-52
92-96 52-54
96-97
54-56
97-98 98 100
364
-
102
-
100
APPENDIX Ornamentation
IV
in Scarlatti
THE APPOGGIATURA THE SHORT APPOGTHE LONG APPOGGIATURA THE TRILL THE TIED TRILL THE TRILL WITH TERMINATION THE UPPER APPOGGIATURA AND TRILL THE LOWER APPOGGIATURA AND TRILL THE RHYTHMIC THE TREMULO THE REMAINING ORNAVALUES OF THE TRILL MENTS NOT INDICATED BY SIGNS! THE MORDENT, THE TURN, THE SLIDE, THE ACCIACCATURA, ARPEGGIATION ADDITIONS TO SCARLATTl's TEXT PECULIARITIES OF RHYTHMIC NOTATION SOURCES OF INFORMATION
GIATURA
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
•
*
SOURCES OF INFORMATION Like most Italian composers, Scarlatti never used a completely codified and articulate vocabulary of musical ornamentation such as that which came into existence in France at the end of the seventeenth century, and which permitted Couperin and Rameau to indicate with a high degree of precision their intentions for the improvisatory realization of musical embellishments by the player. Scarlatti's indications for improvised ornamentation confine themselves to trills and appoggiaturas, generally without further qualification. Yet there is no reason to suppose that he expected the player, like the Italian violinists and singers of his day, to add any embellishments not indicated in the text, except for the supplementing of an occasional trill or appoggiatura. Like Bach, but even more completely, Scarlatti realized his keyboard figurations
and decorations in the written notes. For Scarlatti's music, or for that matter for any Italian keyboard music of his time, there is available no such body of information concerning the execution of ornaments as can be found in the treatises and manuals of the French school and its imitators. From the end of the seventeenth century to the end of the eighteenth, Italian and Spanish treatises dealing with ornamentation are rare, especially in contrast to the numerous such publications which appeared in other countries. The principal treatises that have any historical connection with Scarlatti's ornamentation are those of Penna, Gasparini, Tosi, Herrando, Geminiani, Tartini, Lorenzoni, and Sabatini, all of them too elementary or too remote to be of much use. To a certain extent, however, the treatises of Quantz and Agricola may be considered to have some bearing on with the Italian-inspired internaIt is not possible, as in the case of Couperin, Rameau, much of J. S. Bach, and the later German eighteenth century, to cite chapter and verse in reconstituting an "auScarlatti because of their association tional school of
opera and instrumental music.
thentic" execution of the ornaments in Scarlatti.
•36J
•
Yet
there
is
no
availa-
ORNAMENTATION
IN
SCARLATTI
show that Scarlatti's treatment of trills and appoggiaturas any way exceptional to the common practice of his time. On the basis of Scarlatti's own methods of notation and of the variants in parallel passages and between different manuscripts, it is possible to arrive at a set of principles that give every appearance of being close to Scarlatti's intentions. Nothing is drearier, or more frequently false, than a historical reconstruction of musical style which attempts to overprove its authenticity. What is really important is to know how to identify as nonobligatory those practices which are genuinely foreign or which stem from a later age, and how to distinguish between those cases which are determined by fixed principles founded on historical fact and known practice and those in which the taste and judgment of the player is the evidence to
ble
was
in
sole arbiter.
For the sake of clarity and consistency I have adopted the method and most of the terminology of the best and most representative of all mid-eighteenth-century treatises dealing with ornamentation, C. P. E. Bach's Versuch. It has no direct historical connection with Scarlatti; it
deals with
much
that
from a Franco-German
is
not to be found in his music; and
tradition with
it
stems
which he was never associated; treatment of trills and appog-
seems to occur in Scarlatti's is not clearly and authoritatively discussed in Bach's treatise. Moreover this treatise in reprint and translation has the advantage of
but
little
giaturas that
being currently available as a central point of departure for eighteenth-
century ornamentation, and
in relation to which variations of practice can be more easily described. In the following pages I draw heavily on Agricola's expanded translation of Tosi's treatise on singing. It forms an admirable bridge between the Franco-German tradition of C. P. E. Bach and the current international style of Italian opera singing. Agricola avowedly adopts the method and terminology of C. P. E. Bach in dealing with ornamentation, but his examples are drawn largely from the kind of music which was being performed at the opera in Madrid in Scarlatti's time. Like C. P. E. Bach's Versuch, it has the advantage of consolidating and clearly exposing representative mid-eighteenth-century practice. Neither work can be accepted as binding historical evidence for the performance of Scarlatti's ornaments, but both contribute highly valuable reflections of a contemporary practice that despite its obvious divergences cannot have been too remote from Scarlatti's own. My approach to Scarlatti's ornamentation, unlike that which I would make to that of the French composers or to Bach, makes little attempt at justification by specific historical examples, except for passages clearly indicated by Scarlatti himself. Rather it is based on a knowledge of all the eighteenth-century treatises concerning ornamentation and on a long experience in eighteenth-century practice as therein represented.
in
any
style
Although
my
conclusions
may
be debated in those passages which per•
366
•
ORNAMENTATION
IN SCARLATTI
mit several ways of treatment, I can give assurance in any debatable ways of treatment current in
case to have adopted at least one of the Scarlatti's time.
In the following discussion of Scarlatti's ornamentation, all examples Scarlatti are quoted from a collation of the Venice and Parma manuscripts. Hence they frequently present an aspect quite different from that of Longo's edition. This latter is unfortunately misleading
from
with
respect
and systematization of tion
Longo's prefatory recommendations in part on his own alteration
ornamentation.
to
for the execution of the
ornaments, based
founda-
Scarlatti's indications, are so lacking in
eighteenth-century practice that they must be completely
in
my
regarded. (It should be understood that
Longo's
jection of or disagreement with
dis-
frequent expressions of re-
edition should in
no way be
interpreted as disparagement of his conspicuous qualities of sensibility, of his
enormous labor of
love, or of the extraordinarily high tradition
of Neapolitan piano playing that he represented.
of the most distinguished musicians of the past
have espoused practices
in
connection with eighteenth-century music
that can only be characterized as unqualifiedly
own
For that matter, many and present centuries
inevitable errors, our generation
is
wrong. But
despite
our
a better position than the
in
preceding to rediscover eighteenth-century practice and to free
it
from
accretions of a later age.)
THE APPOGGIATURA At
practice, with a few largely (most particularly the Nachschlag as described by Quantz 1 and deplored by C. P. E. Bach), 2 is the principle that all ornaments begin on the beat, namely that they subtract their value from the note which they precede. To this practice Scarlatti seems consistently to subscribe; he seems to have written out all anticipated
the
of
basis
eighteenth-century
negligible exceptions
appoggiaturas. Scarlatti
always indicates the appoggiatura with a small note,
or other of the following ways:
Jf^^J)
J
generally linked to the main note by a slur: sages
and variant manuscripts
the slur
is
J.
The
^J, but
in
one
appoggiatura
is
in parallel pas-
frequently omitted, probably by
oversight of the copyist. (In the examples in this chapter I have not in-
and Parma
dicated variants between Venice
Bach, and frequently inconsistent and careless
of these
many
Like
slurs.)
parallel
many
in the inclusion
other composers,
in the insertion of
passages and sequential figures they are omitted
was undoubtedly expected. Sometimes,
parallel passage
mav demonstrate
1
2
Scarlatti
trill.
(See
as in
where
Bach, a
an appoggiatura to be interchangeable
Example 44.)
Quantz, Chapter VIII, Par. 6; Tab. VI, Figs. 5, C. P. E. Bach, Chapter II, Sect. 2, Pars. 24, ?$. '
is
appoggiaturas. In
their execution
with a short
or omission
367
*
6.
ORNAMENTATION The
IN SCARLATTI
value of the small note indicating the appoggiatura
sistently indicated.
Example
For a conspicuous example
is
never con-
of such inconsistency see
I.
[^Allegro]
*
An
Ex.
i.
eighth-note appoggiatura in Parma.
Venice in
Scarlatti
is
u
(Longo 273) K. 216
as inconsistent in this respect as
Bach recommended always
Bach and Mozart. (C. P. E. value to be given the ap-
indicating the
poggiatura by the value of the small note, and did so in in the
shown by
is
its
parallel passages to correspond
(Example 2) But he
realization.
\Mlepo\
™76
* Written
2.
m
*,
examples
"'
ir
Parma.
in If
the intended value of
tf'V
J.
\* J*
to
seldom consistent. (Example 3)
is
f
r
** Written
Ex.
all his
Versuch.) In some cases Scarlatti's notation of the appoggiatura
in
Parma.
Venice xi 17 (Longo 304) K. 470
[Allegro] Jtr
* Quarter-note appoggiaturas in Parma.
Ex.
3.
Venice xv 30 (Longo 186) K. 127
Moreover there
is
variance
considerable
among
notation of appoggiaturas. Scarlatti's inconsistency
manuscripts is
such that
in all
the his
appoggiaturas could well be reduced to a unique formula. (I have however respected the original notation in the following examples and I
have
given
account of
be clearly understood that
variance }r •
among
manuscripts.)
It
should
a variant of the eighteenth-century
is
368
•
ORNAMENTATION
IN SCARLATTI
notation of the sixteenth note, and that although for short appoggiaturas (see
modern grace
the
The
note.
Example 13),
is
it
frequently used
has nothing to do with
it
only factor that determines the value to
be given a Scarlatti appoggiatura
context within the piece
is its
itself. 3
C. P. E. Bach distinguishes between two kinds of appoggiaturas, the short appoggiatura which is fixed in value (i.e. as short as possible) and which corresponds to the modern grace note performed on the beat; and the long appoggiatura which is variable in length, according to its context.* This distinction is perfectly applicable to the Scarlatti appoggiaturas.
THE SHORT APPOGGIATURA The
Bach
short appoggiatura, as C. P. E.
says,
is
generally applicable
to fast notes, to triplets or other notes intended to retain their notated
rhythmic identity.
5
Many
themselves form
in
of the examples he gives apply to notes which
dissonances
against
another
voice.
Agricola has
the following to say about short appoggiaturas:
"All appoggiaturas are assigned to the time of the main note they its written value, therefore together with the bass and the other accompanying voices of this main note. Accordingly they all belong in the time y not of the preceding, but of the following note 2 precede, according to
and
this
note loses of
its
"Some appoggiaturas
duration what
assigned to the appoggiatura.
is
.
.
.
and no matter what the value of any notes they precede, or what the tempo, they are of uniform value. They absorb as little as possible of the duration of the main note. Yet it is understandable that they occur mostly only before short notes, because their purpose is to increase the animation and brilliance of the melody. If therefore in a fast tempo an appoggiatura should precede each of the four following melodic figures: (Example 4) are quite short,
Ex. 4
These appoggiaturas should be executed not thirty-seconds, in order that the listener figures instead:
Ex. 3
* B
ibid.,
Chapter
(Example 5)
5 II, Sect. 2.
See also Agricola, pp. 60-61. C. P. E. Bach, Chapter II, Sect. 2, Pars. '
369
1
'
1,
as sixteenth notes but as
may
13.
not hear the following
ORNAMENTATION
IN SCARLATTI
which would be against the intention of the composer, if otherwise he 6 (See however Scarbe accustomed to write correctly and precisely." the appoggiaturas Example version of in latti's own 17, and his apparent suggestion in Example 27, measure 40.)
"When two
descending leaps of a third succeed each other, the ap-
poggiaturas that
Should
still
fall
between are generally invariable
a third succeed them,
it
is
variable.
in value [i.e. short]
(Example 6)
Ex. 6
Some famous performers
prefer to include the
of the preceding note, in the the appoggiatura
may
first
French manner, but
in
two
in
such a
the time
way
that
be given a slight breath in order to distinguish
it
from an afterbeat of the preceding note and that it may otherwise be treated like any other appoggiatura. They execute this example thus: (Example 7) Lento
Ex. 7
Thereby they wish to from that of another which the
first
note
is
distinguish the expression of these appoggiaturas
on the same notes, of and which is particularly (Example 8)
really written-out figure
shorter than the second,
characteristic of the so-called
Lombard
Style.
Ex. 8
Yet they admit
first note should be sounded were an appoggiatura. Other famous performers, however, include these above-mentioned appoggiaturas in the time of the following note, according to the general rule. Yet they prefer that these appoggiaturas, especially before long notes and in an
that in this figure the
stronger and sharper than
if
it
Adagio, be not too short, but rather that they absorb a third of the following note, in other words as much of the note as the first of a group of triplets, were that main note to be imagined so divided. They would execute the above example thus: (Example 9) 6
Agricola, p. 60. '
370
'
ORNAMENTATION
IN SCARLATTI
3
A.
Ex. 9 "Appoggiaturas which stand before value
[i.e.
short]."
triplets are
always invariable
in
7
"Yet, before long notes on downbeats, not all appoggiaturas are long, some rare cases short appoggiaturas can be introduced before long notes. For example: (Example 10) since in
Ex. 10
"However
such appoggiaturas as these are not taken as short as
the invariable, yet also not according to the rule for the variable. are
midway between
the other two."
Here follow a few examples in some of these
terpreted to illustrate
They
8
Scarlatti
sonatas that
principles.
may
(Examples II
be into
13)
\Mleg J.
Ex. 11. Venice xiv 9 (Longo 20) K. 51 [^Allegro]
*t=— f-r-
55
^—r y"uLs Ex. 12. Venice T
r~ n
iHJ., pp. 67-68.
17
JT-l
i.
j_
(Longo 239) K. 188 'ibid., p.
72
37
ORNAMENTATION
IN SCARLATTI
[tAllfgrelto]
Ex. 13. Parma xv 35 (Longo 404) K. 548
THE LONG APPOGGIATURA For the long appoggiatura C. P. E. Bach rules,
to the effect that a note
divisible
establishes certain general
by two gives half
its
value
9 and that one divisible by three gives two thirds. But he cites many exceptions, and the exceptions are so numerous in Scarlatti that I mention this rule only as a point of departure. Scarlatti
to the appoggiatura
is
so inconsistent in notating his appoggiaturas that frequently within
the
same
piece a passage indicating appoggiaturas in small notes will
be found fully written out in lessness gives us a fairly Scarlatti expected the
its
parallel.
Fortunately
this
very care-
complete idea of the various ways
in
which
long appoggiatura to be treated. Let us examine
the following passages, all
drawn from such
cases.
(Examples 14
to
18) (See also Example 2.)
[
*
ft
n
10,
9,
5,
30,
2,
14,
33,
3,
7,
13, 35, 29,
22,
6,
19,
20. 8. PIECES / POUR LE / CLAVECIN / Comfosees / PAR / DOMENICO SCARLATTI. / DEUXSIEME volume. / Grave far L. Hue. / Prix 9 It / A PARIS / r Le Cterc Rue S Honore, entre la Rue du Roule,
M
Chez
l
.
.
et la
/
Rue de
l
}
Arbresec ; a S
tc
ir
Genevieve au I
.
.
sure le
devant / Le S' Le Clerc rue du Roule, a la Croix d y Or. / y e Boivin rue S*. Honore a, la Regie d Or. / .
M
Avec
.
Privilege du Roy. [ca. 1742] Cambridge, King's College, Rowe Music Library Paris, Bibliotheque Nationale [later imprint]
Contents: K. 36, 39, 24, 26, *,
[*:
The
fugue
Roseingrave, Vol. II,
17, in
F
28,
15,
16,
27, 42, 38,
21,
18, 23, 41. minor, by Alessandro Scarlatti, published by
25, 37,
11, 40,
p. 9.]
Except for minor deviations, such as omissions of ornaments, this volume, although better engraved, is a straight reprint of Roseingrave's texts, even to the extent of leaving untranslated the indications for disposition of hands, L and R, which Roseingrave had translated from the (Manca) and (Destra) of the Essercizi. This thoroughly discredits Hopkinson's otherwise unfounded hypothesis (pp. 52-53) on which he has based his consequently incorrect chronological listing of first publications of Scarlatti sonatas, that this and other Boivin publications were the sources from which Roseingrave's edition and the Essercizi were taken. 0MC0 scar9. pieces / Pour le / clavecin / Composees / par / D latti / Maitre de Clavecin du Prince des Asturies. / troisieme elle volume / Prix 9 It en blanc / Gravees par Vendome / a
M
D
.
M
.
Paris /
{Madame,
M M
Avec
T .
elUs .
Boivin rue
S*.
Honore, a
la
Regie d'Or.
Clerc y rue du Roule y a la Croix d'Or.
le
Castagnerie,
Privilege
rile
des Prouvairs.
du Roi. [presumably between 1742 and 1746]
Paris, Bibliotheque Nationale.
Contents:
[Spurious],
K. 49,
[Spurious],
33,
96,
97,
55,
[By
Galuppi], 48, [Spurious]. 10. Six
/ DOUBLE FUGUES / For the / ORGAN or HARPSICHORD / M r roseingrave, / To which is added Sig r Dominico
Comfos y d
by
Scarlatti's
Celebrated Lesson / for the Harfsicord } with several Addi-
.
y
'
407
*
.
KEYBOARD WORKS
M
by
tions
r
/ / London. Printed for
Roseingrave.
Walsh,
I.
in
Catharine Street, in the Strand./ New Haven, Yale School of Music. .
The
.
.
is K. 37, also published in Roseingrave's (1739)- Newton (p. 144) says of Roseingrave: "Unless the plural is a misreading, the 'Dublin Journal' seems to record his playing of several sonatas with his own additions, in 1753." 11. LIBRO DE XII / SONATAS / MODERNAS para CLAVICORDIO / Compuestas por / el senor d. domingo scarlati / caballero del ORDEN de / SANTIAGO Y / MAESTRO de LOS REYES / CATHOLICOS /
XLll
D.
Lesson mentioned
Suites de Pieces
FERNANDO EL
for the Editor
New
&
VI.
Y / DONA MARIA BARBARA / / LONDON / Printed JOHNSON facing Bow Church Cheafside.
sold by J.
Haven, Yale School of Music.
Amyand to John Worgan, August from the Worgan manuscript. See Appendix V A
[License granted by Claudius 13, 1752.] Published 5, also
Chapter VII.
Contents: K. 106, 107, 140, 116.
55, 117,
53, 101, ioo, 105,
44, 104,
r / sonatas / For the / harpsichord / Composed by / Sig Domenico Scarlatti / vol. III. / / London Printed for John Johnson at the Harp & Crown in Cheapside, / London, British Museum. This collection was obviously issued as a supplement to Johnson's reprint of Roseingrave's first two volumes. (See Newton, p. 148.) The
12. Six
.
.
.
.
advertisement mentions "Scarlatti's 12 Sonatas" (Hopkinson, 63), so that the following notice in The Daily Advertiser, January 1753, probably refers to this collection. "This Day will be ready
title
Dominico
deliver to the Subscribers, Sig.
Scarlatti's
new
p. I,
to
Sonatas for
the Harpsichord: Therefore those that have subscrib'd are desir'd to
send for their Books to
Mr. Johnson's Musick Shop,
Church, Cheapside." On the other hand, Newton advertising to
show
(p.
148)
that this collection
cites
facing
Bow-
evidence from title-page
appeared between
1756 and
1760. Only a careful collation of all known copies, however, would permit the accurate deduction of the date of first issue of a music publication
from title-page advertising, change during successive
to frequent
since
that
material
was
subject
reprintings.
Reprinted, together with Roseingrave's two volumes: [Same title, with "Pr. 6 s /-" added after "Vol. III." on the same line] / London, Printed and sold by preston and son at their Warehouses 97 Strand.
New Haven, Yale School of Music. Contents: K. 298, 120, 246, 113, 247, 299. 13. VI SONATE / PER IL CEMBALO SOLO, / CompoSte / dal / Sig"* Don Domenico Scarlatti, / Cavalier di San Giacomo / in Madrid. / •
408
'
KEYBOARD WORKS ma
/ Alle Spese di Giovanni Ulrico Haffner, / Sonatore di [ca. 1753, to judge Norimberga. / N ro lxxvii. Stor fe. from other Haffner plate numbers dated by Deutsch] Brussels, Bibliotheque du Conservatoire. Opera
Liuto
I
.
in
.
.
.
.
Contents: K. 125, 126, 127, 131, 182, 179.
Opera 14. XX / sonate / Per Cembalo / Di varri Autorri / [Advertised, according to HopkinVenier Prima. / a Paris / son (p. 68) in a Venier catalogue of 1775.] Washington, Library of Congress. Nos. 13 and 14 of this collection are by Scarlatti (K. 180 and 125). [Hopkinson (p. 67) cites an earlier issue, ca. 1765, und?r the im.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
Vernandez, Bayard and Castagneri. seum, King's Music Library)] print of
(London,
Mu-
British
15. LIBRO DE XII / SONATAS / MODERNAS para CLAVICORDIO / Compuestas por / el senor d. domingo scarlati / caballero del ORDEN de / SANTIAGO Y / MAESTRO de LOS REYES / CATHOLICOS / D. FERNANDO EL VI. Y / DONA MARIA BARBARA / LIBRO II / / LONDON / m Printed and Sold by Owen Bookseller and Music Printer, be- / -tween the Temple-Gates, and at the Editors House N°. 23 Rathbone / Place: where may be had, libro I. being xn Sonatas, by the same / Author published by the Editor some time since, also vi new Sonatas / for the Harpsichord composed by 1. worgan m. b. [License to John Worgan dated June 13, 177 1.] Cambridge, Kings College, Rowe collection. (Hopkinson p. 63) Contents: K. 298, 43> Il8 47> 57> I2 3» 49> II 5, U9> 4°,
W
.
>
99, 141.
Edited by Dr. John Worgan. See Chapter VII. 16. Libro de / VI sonatas / Modemas fara clavicordio / Comfuestas for / EL senor d. domingo scarlati / Caballero del Orden de Santiago y / maestro de los reyes catholicos / d. Fernando
EL VI / Y / DONA MARIA BARBARA / Libro JOHNSON .
.
/
.
.
/ LONDON
.
.
.
.
du Conservatoire. (Cat., Vol. IV, p. 278. title from the Welcker
Brussels, Bibliotheque I
VI
.
have taken the orthography of the above
plate.)
Reprints:
[Main
London
title
Market Opposite
"libro vi:"] / Price
as in preceding. After
Printed and the
Sold
John welcker
by
Opera House /
.
.
.
[Between
n°. ca.
9
in
7
the
-6 / Hay
1776 and 1777,
according to Hopkinson, pp. 63-64.]
New York
A
Public Library.
catalogue of the publisher, Bland, dated
vertises "Scarlatti's Six Sonatas.
such an edition
As Newton
is
at present
points out
Book
the 6th.
known (Hopkinson,
March
25, 1786, ad5/-," but no copy of
p.
64).
153-154), the designation "Libro vi"
(pp. *
409
*
KEYBOARD WORKS be interpreted only in relation to the five previous English publica-
may
two volumes, Worgan's two, Vol. III." and Johnson's "Six Sonatas Contents: K. 125, 179, 182, 131, 126, 127. 17. pieces choisies / De Divers Auteurs / Pour le Clavecin ou tions of Scarlatti sonatas: Roseingrave's .
.
.
Forte-Piano. / Contains Sonata K. 113. This publication without imprint .
.
.
is described by Hopkinson (p. 68) from a copy in his possession, as containing an Ouverture by C. Ditters and an arrangement of Haydn's London Symphony (B. & H. 69) preceding the Scarlatti sonata. Because of the Haydn, composed in 1779, he dates it ca. 1780. 18. QUATRE / OUVERTURES / Composees / PAR GUGLIELMI, WANHAL, / diters, et haydn; Arrangees / Pour le Clavecin ou FortePiano / et / DEUX SONATES / PAR / CLEMENTI, et SCARLATI. / .
.
.
/ a Paris / Chez M. Bailleux London, British Museum, Hirsch .
.
The
.
Collection.
contents include those of the preceding Pieces Choisies,
among
K. 113 (Hopkinson, p. 68). 19. The / beauties / of / dominico scarlatti. / Selected from his Suites de Legons, / for the / Harpsichord or Piano Forte / and Revised with a Variety of Improvements / by / Ambrose pitman. / [London, Preston, 1785, according to HopkinVolume the first /
them
the Scarlatti sonata
.
.
.
son (p. 64)]
London,
The
of fifteen (p.
are
British
Museum.
contents are described by
Newton
sonatas already published
64) says that he has seen only K. 31, 13, 5, 23, 1, 19.
20. Scarlatti's
154-155) as consisting But Hopkinson containing six sonatas. These (pp.
Roseingrave.
by
copies
/ Chefs-d'oeuvre, / for the / Harpsichord or Piano-
Forte; / Selected from an Elegant collection of Manuscripts, / in the Possession of / muzio clementi. / / London: / Printed for the .
Editor
Muzio Clementi,
Maker, /
Cf? to
.
.
Mr. Broadwood
be had at
}
s
Harfsichord
in Great Pulteney Street, Golden Square. [1791, according
Hopkinson (p. 65)] Washington, Library of Congress. Contents: K. 378, [spurious, Czerny 195], 380 (transposed), 490, 400, 475, 381 (transposed), 206, 531, 462, 463, [by Soler, No. 5 in his XXVII Sonatas (London, Birchall) Czerny 196]. Gerstenberg (pp. 36-37) cites a Paris edition of the same collection: "Douze Sonates Pour Clavecin ou Forte Piano. Composees dans le stile du celebre Scarlati par Muzio Clementi. Opera 27. Paris: Lobry.
to
;
Berlin, Preussische Staatsbibliothek.
21.
Two
Favorite / Sonatas /
and Sold by
J.
By / Scarlatti Pr: / London. Printed Whitcomb Street, near Coventry
Cooper. N°. 39. •
410
•
KEYBOARD WORKS 1792, according to Hopkinson (p. 65), who owns the only copy known to me.] Contents: K. 32 and 33, and a sonata beginning: Street, [ca.
^Allegro
22. Thirty / Sonatas y / for the / Harpsichord / or / PianoForte; / Publish* d (by 'permission) from Manuscripts in / the Possesr Domenico sion of Lord Viscount Fitxwilliam y / Composed by / Sig .
8 / / Price 15 /- / London / Printed for R*. Birchall at his Musical Circulating Library 133 New Bond Street / Of whom may be had / Soleras 2j Lessons 15/0. [Lord Fitzwilliam dated his copy 1800 (Newton, p. 155).] Published from the manuscript now in Cambridge, Fitzwilliam Museum 32 F. 12. Contents: K. 478, 492, 445, 454, 455, 372, 373, 236, 237, 438, 446, 533> 266 26 7> 3 66 3 6 7> 520, 524, 490, 386,
Scarlatti.
—
>
>
401, 387, 525, 517, 534, 535, 545, 552, 553,
54.
Boston Public Library. y 23. Clementi s / Selection
of / practical harmony, / for / Organ or Piano Forte; / Containing / Voluntaries , Fugues, Canons &* other Ingenious Pieces, / By the most eminent composers. / To which is prefixed an Epitome of Counterpoint / by the / Editor. London, Printed by Clementi, Banger, Collard, Davis & Collard, ... [4 vols., first issue ca. 1811-1815. There exist varying
the
.
.
.
imprints.]
Vol. II contains K. 41, and K.
domenico Scarlatti, D.
is
30 (with note: "The following, by fugue.").
the celebrated cat's
THE
EDITIONS OF CZERNY, LONGO, GERSTENBERG, AND NEWTON
Sammtliche Werke fur das Piano-Forte von Dominic Scarlatti. Wien: Tobias Haslinger, [1839]. According to StassofT (p. 2on), this edition was published largely from the volumes now in Miinster, which Santini loaned for this purpose. (See Appendix V A 3.) At Santini's house in Rome, Cramer in 1 837-1 838 and Liszt in 1839 "played piano or organ pieces of the old schools, and most of all particularly the pieces of Domenico Scarlatti, whose Cat Fugue, such an original and admirable masterpiece, was always one of the most decided favorites of this select and intelligent music-loving audience." (Stassoff, p. 20) In 1837 in London, incidentally, Ignaz Moscheles was actually performing the Cat Fugue I.
Redigirt von Carl Czerny.
411
•
KEYBOARD WORKS on the harpsichord. (Harding, pp. 88-89) Nos. 191, 192, and 200 are by Alessandro Scarlatti; No. 196 by Soler; and No. 195 certainly not by Domenico Scarlatti. (See Appendix VII B.)
and other
Of
pieces by Scarlatti
this edition,
Czerny's edition his
editions of
(less carefully
annotated, hence
Bach) formed the
basis
for
many
less disturbing
than
of the subsequent
nineteenth- and twentieth-century collections of Scarlatti sonatas.
In
order to further their sinking into a well-deserved oblivion, I pass over
them in silence. However, the preface to Hans von Biilow's edition (Achtzehn aus gewahlte Klavierstiicke, Leipzig: Peters, [1864]) should be mentioned, along with Robert Schumann's surprisingly unsympathetic comments at the appearance of Czerny's edition. They mark the lowest ebb of Scarlatti's fortunes in the two centuries since his death. (Schumann, Vol. I, pp. 400-40 1 2. Opere Complete per Clavicembalo di Domenico Scarlatti. Criticamente rivedute e ordinate in forma di suites da Alessandro Longo. Milano: Ricordi, [i9o6ff.]. This is the most nearly complete of existing editions of the Scarlatti sonatas. In ten volumes and a supplement it includes 545 sonatas, published from the Venice, Vienna, and Fitzwilliam manuscripts, and from the original edition of the Essercizi. It does not include Sonatas
204
K. 41,
452, 453, nor the concluding The manuscript sources of these pieces appear to have been unknown to Longo. Unfortunately, Longo's numbering, and his arrangement of the sonatas in suites, completely disrupts the chronological and stylistic sequence of Scarlatti's keyboard work. Numerous inaccuracies and copious insertion of editorial markings render a more satisfactory complete edition of the Scarlatti sonatas urgently 80, 94, 97, 142-144, portion of Sonata 357.
a or
b,
desirable.
An
indispensable supplement to Longo's edition
is
the Indice Temati-
co {in ordlne di tonalita e di ritmo), Milano: Ricordi, 3.
Domenico
Scarlatti.
Four Sonatas
1
937.
for Harpsichord. Transcribed
from the manuscripts, with a brief introduction, by Richard Newton. London: Oxford University Press, [1939]. This includes Sonatas 42-44 of the Worgan manuscript (K. 142144), previously unpublished, and a sonata from a manuscript by Charles Wesley (British Museum Add. 35018 f. 55b) which I cannot accept as genuine Scarlatti. See Appendix VII B 5. 4. Domenico Scarlatti. 5 Klaviersonaten herausgegeben von Walter Gerstenberg. Regensburg: Gustav Bosse Verlag [1933]. This forms a "Notenbeilage" to Gerstenberg's Die K lamer komfositionen Domenico Scarlattis and includes Sonatas K. 452 and 454 from the Miinster manuscript, Sonatas K. 204 a and b from the Parma manuscript, all previously unpublished; and the complete version of Sonata K. 357 from the Parma manuscript. •
412
•
APPENDIX
VI
Vocal Music OPERAS
A.
L'OTTAVIA / RISTITUITA / AL TRONO / MELODRAMA / DELL' CONVO / DEDICATO / IllustrtSS. &? Eccellentiss. S'vgfiora, / D. CATARINA / DE MOSCOSA, OSSORIO, / URTADO DE MENdoza, / sandoval, Y rocas. / Contessa di San Stefano de / Gormas, (Rome, &c. / in napoli 1703. / Per il Parrino, & il Mutio. / . Bibl. Sta. Cecilia 11662) 1.
AW
ABB. GIULIO
.
[On Scarlatti."
p.
appears the note:
8
The
dedication
Arte con stromenti
Del
Sig3".
Domenico
Pietro a Maiella,
is
"La musica
del
e
Sig.
.
Domenico
signed by Nicola Barbapiccola.]
deWOfera
intitolata
Ottawa
ristituita al
(Naples, Bibl. del Conservatorio
Scarlatti.
Trono. di San
32-2-33)
[Contains thirty-three
arias,
among them two
duets.
The
re-
mainder of the music is unknown.] 2. il giustino / drama per musica / da Rappresentarsi nel Regio Palazzo in quest' Anno 1703. / per il giorno natalitio / di filippo
quinto / Monarca
delle
Spagne. / dedicato /
AW
Eccellentiss. Si-
gnor. / marchese di viLLENA, / duca d'ascalonia, & c. / Vicere, e Capitan Generale / in questo Regno di Napoli. / in napoli 1703. /
Per il Parrino, & il Mutio. / (Bologna, Bibl. Universitaria Segn. A. V. Tab. I, F. Ill, 37, 4) [The author of the libretto is not named on the title page, but his preface on the sixth unnumbered page reveals him as the librettist of UOttavia, the Abbate Giulio Convo. The libretto is a revision of the Naples performance in 1684 of the drama of the same title by Conte Nicolo Beregani, which originally had music by Legrenzi. On unnumbered page 8 of the libretto is stated: "Musica del Sig. Domenico .
.
.
But the preface on unnumbered page 6 states that certain marked S were by the first author. Although he is not named, this was presumably Legrenzi. (See Sartori, Gli Scarlatti a Nafoli, pp. 374-377.) Eight of these arias are so marked, among them one, E un foco amore, which was also set by Scarlatti. Of the fifty-two arias in the libretto which were apparently set by Scarlatti, only twenty-four survive in the Naples ms. On unnumbered page 7 of the libretto
Scarlatti." arias
appears the note: "Ingegniere,
Among of
e
Pittore
il
Giuseppe Scarlatti."
Sig.
was Tommaso Scarlatti playing Amantio. The impresario was Nicola Barbapiccola.] r Scelta di arte con stromenti del Giustino. Del Sig Domenico the performers listed
.
(Naples, Bibl. del Conservatorio '
di
San Pietro a Maiella, 32
413
*
the part
Scarlatti. - 2 -
33)
vocal music [Contains twenty-four arias, among them three duets. The remainder of the music is unknown.] 3. l'irene / drama per musica / Da rappresentarsi nel Teatro Illustriss. ed Eccellentis. di / S. Bartolomeo di Napoli / dedicato / Sig. IL SIGNOR / D. MERCURIO ANTONIO / LOPEZ, FERNANDEZ, PAcheco, / acugna, giron, e porrtocarrero, / Conte di S. Stefano de Gormaz, &c. Maestro di / Campo, &c. Capitano delle Guardie Alema- / ne, Figlio dell' Eccell. Signor Duca d' / Ascalona, Marchese di Vigliena, &c. / Vicere, e Capitan Generale in / questo Regno di (WashNapoli. / in napoli 1704. / Per il Parrino, & il Mutio. /
AW
.
ington, Library of Congress, Schatz
.
.
9539)
page A3 of the libretto appears the note: "Sappi, in tanto, che fer non dejraudare alia lode (che degnamente e dovuta al Sig. Gio: Battista Pullaroli frimo Compositore della Musica) si segneranno VArie
[On
del
medesimo
latti."
The
col segno S.
dedication
is
Tutte Valtre sono del
Sig.
Domenico Scar-
signed by Nicola Barbapiccola.
The
libretto
is
an adaptation of a text by Girolamo Frigimelica Roberti.]
Maiella,
Scarlatti.
DeW
Irene. [Next line and a half crossed out] (Naples, Bibl. del Conservatorio di San Pietro a
Arte con stromenti.
Domenico
32-2-29)
arias. Remainder of music unknown.] la / silvia / dram ma pastorale / Per il Teatro Domestico di Sua Maesta / la regina / maria casimira / di polonia. / comPOSTO, E DEDICATO / ALLA MAESTA SUA / DA CARLO SIGISMONDO CAPECI, / E POSTA IN MUSICA / DAL SIG. DOMENICO SCARLATTI / IN roma, Per il Rossi, 17 10. / (Rome, Dr. Ulderico Rolandi)
[Contains thirty-three
4.
.
.
.
[Cametti (Carlo Sigismondo Cafeci p. 60), without citing , source, gives the date of performance as January 27, 17 10. The music .
is
.
.
unknown.] 5.
TOLOMEO / ET / ALESSANDRO, / OVERO / LA CORONA DISPREZdramma per musica / Da rappresentarsi nel Teatro Dome- /
zata /
Regina / maria casimira / di polonia / composto, e DEDICATO / ALLA MAESTA SUA / DA / CARLO SIGISMONDO CAPECI, / Tra gli Arcadi / METISTO OLBIANO. / E POSTO IN MUSICA / DAL SIG. domenico scarlatti. / in roma MDCCXi. Nella Stamperia di An- / tonio de' Rossi alia Chiavica del Bufalo. / (Rome, Bibl. Casana1 tense, Commedie 492 f ]) stico della
.
.
.
[Cametti (op. cit., p. 60), without citing source, gives the date of performance as January 19, 171 1. Rolandi, p. 4, mentions librettos of the same title but without mention of poet or composer, for performances at Fermo in 1713 and at Jesi in 1727. This opera was performed also for the Arcadia. (See Chapter III.) The Arcadians pub-
commemoratory volume entitled: rime / di diversi autori / PER LO NOBILISSIMO DRAMMA / DEL / TOLOMEO, ET ALESSANDRO / Rappresentato nel Teatro* Domestico della Sacra / Real Maesta / DI /
lished a
•
414
•
vocal music MARIA CASIMIRA / REGINA DI POLLONIA, / DEDICATE / ALLA MAESTA roma, Per Antonio de' Rossi alia Piazza di Ceri. 171 1. / (The dedication is dated April I, 17 11.)] TolomeOy et Alessandro / o vero / La Corona disfrezzata, / Of era / Del Sig: Carlo Sigismondo Cafeci / Musica / Del Sig. Domenico Scarlatti / Uanno / 171 1. (Rome, the late S. A. Luciani) sua. / in .
.
.
[First act only,
in
full
—and
The
score.
cover bears the inscription:
"Ad'Uso CS." At
first I was was in the hand of Domenico Scarlatti, but, after several weeks' study and comparison of it with samples of Domenico's handwriting, I came to the conclusion that it was not an autograph but a copy, prepared perhaps for the librettist. (See Luciani, Un'ofera inedita di Domenico Scarlatti. See also Chapter III. For facsimile, see Fig. 22.)] 6. L'ORLANDO, / OVERO / LA GELOSA PAZZIA. / DRAMMA / Da rappresentarsi nel Teatro Domestico / della regina / maria casimira / DI POLLONIA. / COMPOSTO, E DEDICATO / ALLA MAESTA SUA / DA carlo sigismondo capeci / Suo Segretario / Fra gli Arcadi metisto olbiano, / E posto in Musica / DAL SIG. DOMENICO SCARLATTI, / Mastro di Caffella di sua maesta. / in ROMA, Per Antonio de' Rossi / alia Chiavica del Bufalo. 1711. / (Rome, Bibl. Casanatense, Commedie 461 f 1 ])
"dominicus capece"
the fly leaf:
inclined to agree with Luciani's opinion that this manuscript
.
.
.
[Cametti {of. cit., p. 60), without giving source, states that this opera was performed during Carnival of 171 1. The music is unknown.]
tetide / in sciro / dramma per musica / Da rappresentarsi Teatro Domestico / della regina / maria casimira / di polLONIA / COMPOSTO, E DEDICATO / ALLA MAESTA SUA / DA CARLO sigismondo capeci / Suo Segretario / Fra gli Arcadi metisto olbiano, / E posto in Musica / dal sig. domenico scarlatti, / Mastro di Caffella di sua maesta. / in roma, a Spese di Antonio de' Rossi, / e si vende dal medesimo alia Chiavica / del Bufalo. 17 12. / (Rome, 2 Bibl. Casanatense, Commedie 45 1 [ ]. This copy of the libretto is incomplete after Act ill, Scene 3. Pp. 49-64 are missing, through a binder's y mistake, and replaced by pp. 49-64 of L Orlando.) [Cametti {of. cit., p. 60), without citing source, gives the date of performance as January 10, 1 7 12.] Arie della Regina I J 12. In Arie diverse, fols. ir-6v, 57r~90v. (Naples, Bibl. del Conservatorio di San Pietro a Maiella, 34-5-14) [Ten arias from Tetide in Sciro, including two terzets. Of the 7.
nel
.
instrumental parts,
all
.
.
but the basses are missing in these scores.
The
remainder of the music for this opera is unknown.] 8. IFIGENIA / IN AULIDE. / DRAMMA PER MUSICA / Da rappresentarsi nel Teatro Domestico / della maesta / di maria casimira / REGINA VEDOVA DI POLLONIA / COMPOSTO, E DEDICATO / ALLA maesta sua / da carlo sigismondo CAPECI / Suo Segretario / Fra •
415
•
VOCAL mUSIC Arcadi metisto olbiano, / E posto in Musica / dal sig. domenico scarlatti, Mastro di Caffella di Sua Maesta. in roma, Per Antonio de' Rossi, e si / vende dal medesimo alia Chiavica / del Bufalo. 17 13. /
gli
.
.
(Rome,
.
XII 21)
Bibl. Sta. Cecilia
[Cametti {of. cit., p. 60), without citing source, gives the date of performance as January II, 17 13. The music is unknown. For mention of Juvarra's scene designs see Chapter III.]
ifigenia / in tauri. / dramma per musica / Da rappresentarTeatro Domestico / della maesta / di maria casimira / REGINA VEDOVA DI POLLONIA / COMPOSTO, E DEDICATO / ALLA maesta sua / da carlo sigismondo capeci / Suo Segretario / Fra gli Arcadi metisto olbiano, / E posto in Musica / dal sig. domenico scarlatti, / Mastro di Cappella di sua maesta. / in roma, Per Antonio de' Rossi, e si vende / dal medesimo alia Chiavica del 9.
si
nel
Bufalo / Panno 17 13. /
.
.
(Rome,
.
Casanatense,
Bibl.
Commedie
451H) [Cametti {of. cit., p. 61), without citing source, gives the date of performance as ca. February 15, 17 13. The Biblioteca Santa Cecilia has a libretto for a performance of this opera at the Teatro Carignano
Turin during Carnival 17 19. (Accademia Chigiani, Gli Scarlatti, The music is unknown.] 10. AMOR D'UN OMBRA, / E / GELOSIA d'uN AURA. / DRAMMA PER musica / Da rappresentarsi nel Teatro Domestico / della maesta / DI MARIA CASIMIRA / REGINA VEDOVA DI POLLONIA / COMPOSTO, E DEDICATO / ALLA MAESTA SUA / DA CARLO SIGISMONDO CAPECI / Suo Segretario / Fra gli Arcadi metisto olbiano / E posto in Musica / dal SIG. domenico scarlatti / Mastro di Caffella di sua maesta. / in roma, Per Antonio de' Rossi, e si / vende dal medesimo alia Chiavica / del Bufalo. 17 14. / (Rome, Bibl. Casanatense, Commedie 451 [ 3 ]) in p.
85.)
;
.
.
.
[Cametti {of. cit., p. 61), without citing source, gives date of performance as ca. January 20, 1 14.] 10 b. NARCISO / DRAMA / DA RAPPRESENTARSI NEL / REGIO TEATRO
D'HAYMARKET, / PER / LA REALE ACCADEMIA DI MUSICA / LONDRA. / per Giovanni pickard, mdccxx. (London, British Museum 163. g-
16)
[A
Paolo Rolli, the as
Amor d un Ombra. The dedication is signed by reviser of the libretto. The list of "Interlocutori" reads
revision of
follows:
Narciso,
y
Signora
Durastanti;
Cefalo,
Signor
Benedetto
Mr. Gordon; Eco, Mrs. Anastasia Robinson; Procri, Mrs. Turner Robinson. This is followed by the note: "La Musica e del Signor Domenico Scarlatti." According to Burney {A Baldassarri;
Aristeo,
General History of Music, Vol. II, p. 703), the performance took place on May 30, 1720, and was conducted by Thomas Roseingrave.] songs / in the New / opera / Call'd / narcissus / as they are •
416
•
VOCAL {MUSIC perform'd at the / kings theatre / For the Royal Academy / Compos'd by / Sig r Dom: co Scarlatti / With the Additional Songs / Composed by M: r Roseingrave / London, Printed for & sold by I: (Washington, Library of Congress, Walsh. 1500 .S285N3) :
.
.
M
.
[Short score, without the recitatives. It includes two
airs
and two
The remainder of the music is unknown.] AMBLETO / DRAMA / Per MuSl'ca / DA RAPPRESENTARSI / Sala de' Signori Capranica / nel Carnevale dell' Anno /
duets by Roseingrave. 11.
Nella
vendono a Pasquino nella Libraria di Pietro / Leone all'Giovanni di Dio. / In Roma, per il Bernabo, l'Anno (Rome, Dr. Ulderico Rolandi) 1 7 15. / [By Apostolo Zeno, who is not mentioned in the libretto. On p. 7 the "Attori" are listed as: Ambleto, II Sig. Domenico Tempesti; Veremonda, II Sig. Domenico Genovesi; Gedone, II Sig. Giovanni Paita; Gerilda, II Sig. Innocenzo Baldini; Ildegarde, II Sig. Antonio Natilii; Valdemaro, II Sig. Gio. Antonio Archi, detto Cortoncina; Siffrido, II
mdccxv. /
Si
Insegna
S.
di
.
.
.
Francesco
Sig.
Vitali.
On
p.
8 appears the note: "Ingegniere, e Pittore
Pompeo Aldobrandini."] re [Aria] Del Sig : Domenico Scarlatti NeW Ambleto. [Text:] Ne
delle Scene. II Sig.
mia sfortunata frigonia [from Act I, Scene 8]. (Bologna, Bibl. Liceo Musicale Ms. 47, fols. 39r - 42V) [This is followed in the manuscript (fols. 43r - 45r) by an
la
del
DD
completely noted aria bella,"
in
A
which does not appear
in-
major, *%, with the text: "Si Candida in the libretto
nor
in
Zeno's Poesie
si
Dram-
matiche (Venezia, 1744). 12. la dirindina, farsetta per musica. (Seconda Edizione. In Lucca mdccxv, Per Leonardo Venturini.) (Brussels, Bibliotheque du Con[Title
servatoire.)
[Note
s
at
end:
Domenico
Scarlatti,
Postilla, p.
201.)]
from Luciani,
"La musica che a
Postilla]
eccellente di questa farsetta e del Sig. volentieri ne fara
tutti
comodo." (Luciani,
[Ms. copy, Rome, Dr. Ulderico Rolandi: // Maestro di CafIntermezzo / ... da jarsi nel Teatro di Cafranica / In Roma il re Girolamo Gigli. In the Rolandi copy of the libretto of 17 15 del Sig Ambleto appears the note on p. 7, but crossed out in pen: "Intermedj. / La Sig. Dirindina. II Sig. Domenico Fontana. / D. Carissimo. II Sig. Michele Selvatici. / Liscione. II Sig. Tommaso Bizzarri Sanose [?]. / Musica del Sig. Domenico Scarlatti." This intermezzo was evidently withdrawn from the performance of Ambleto, and substituted by the Intermedj Pastorali. The music is unknown.] 13. INTERMEDJ / PASTORALI / DA RAPPRESENTARSI / Nella Sala de' rl Sig Capranica / nel drama / dell' ambleto. / Si vendono a Pasquino nella Libraria di Pietro / Leone alPInsegna di S. Giovanni di Dio. / In Roma, per il Bernabo, l'Anno 17 15. / (Rome, Dr. fella
.
.
Ulderico Rolandi) *
417
*
.
.
vocal music [On
page 2: "Attori. / Elpina.
Signor Domenico Fontana.
/ unknown.] 14. Berenice / regina di egitto, / o vero / Le Gare di Amore, e di Politica / dramma per musica / Da recitarsi nella Sala de' Signori Capranica / nel Carnevale dell' anno 17 18. / dedicato / AW Iir a & Ecc ma Signora, / la sig. contessa / ernestina / di galasso, / Nata Contessa di Dietrechstein. / Ambasciatrice di S. Maesta Cesarea Cattolica / alia Santa Sede. / / In Roma, nella Stamperia del Bernabo. 17 18. (Rome, Bibl. Casanatense, Commedie
Silvano. II Signor Michele Selvatici."
II
The
music
is
.
.
.
96).
Sign. Sig.
On
p.
listed the
[7] are
Gaetano Narici; Selene, Pio
Fabri;
Arsace,
Carlo Macciochini;
Michele
zioni.
II
II Sig.
II
Domenico Gaspare
Sig.
.
.
.
delli
Sign.
;
Gizii; Fabio, II Sig.
Geri;
Domenico
Aristobolo,
Menenio,
Scarlatti,
e
II
II Sig.
Nicolo
[8] are mentioned the "Architetto delle Scene. / II Antonio Canavari. / Ingegniere delle Machine, e Trasfigura-
Porpora." Sig.
On
II
Demetrio,
Carlo Scalzi
Sibillina, II Sig. Pietro Ricci;
"Musica
Selvatici.
"Personaggi deH'Opera:" Berenice,
II Sig.
Carlo Bernardi; Alessandro,
Annibale Sig.
.
[By Antonio Salvi, who is not mentioned in the libretto. Salvi's was set by Perti in 1709, and by Handel in 1737 (Loewenberg,
text p.
.
/
Battista
II
p.
Cavalier Lorenzo Mariani.
Sig.
The
Bernabo."
music
is
/
Pittore
/
II.
Sig.
Gio
unknown.]
ORATORIOS, SERENADES, AND OTHER
B.
OCCASIONAL PIECES LA CONVERSIONE DI CLODOVEO RE DI FRANCIA ROMA. A. Rossi 1709. (Rome, Bibl. Vat. [Cametti, of. cit., p. 60]) 1.
.
.
.
de*
[Probably performed in Lent, 1709.]
LA CONVERSIONE / DI CLODOVEO / RE DI FRANCIA. / ORATORIO / DEL SIG. CARLO SIGISMONDO CAPECI. / Posto in Musica / DAL SIGNOR DOMENICO SCARLATTI. / FATTO CANTARE / DA' SIGNORI CONVITtori / del seminario romano. / L'Anno 1 7 1 5 / In Roma, Per Gaetano Zenobi, Stampatore, e Intagliatore / della Santita di N. s. clemente xi. / (Rome, Dr. Ulderico Rolandi) [The music is unknown.] 2. Afflauso Devoto / al nome DI / maria santissima / Cantata a tre Voci / Da recitarsi nel Palazzo della Regina / maria casimira / DI polonia. / Comfosta, e dedicata a Sua Maesta / Da Carlo Sigismondo Cafeci / Suo Segretario. /Detto fra gli A r cadi Metis to Olbiano y / E posta in Musica / Dal Signor Domenico Scarlatti / Maestro di Caffella della Maesta Sua. / In Ronciglione Per il Toselli Stamp. Vescovale, e Pub. 17 12. / (Rome, Dr. Ulderico Rolandi) [Note on p. 3: "Per VAnniversario della Liberatione di Vienna" (September 12, 1683) The music is unknown.] .
.
.
.
.
.
.
•
418
•
VOCAL MUSIC 3. APPLAUSO GENETLIACO / ALLA REALE ALTEZZA / DEL SIGNOR INFANTE / DI PORTOGALLO, / DA CANTARSI NEL PALAZZO / DELL' ECCELENTISSIMO SIGNORE / MARCHESE DI FONTES / Ambasctadore Straordinario della Maesta / Portoghese alia Santita di N. S. Papa / CLEMENTE XI. / POSTO IN MUSICA / DAL SIGNOR DOMENICO SCAR-
LATTI / Maestro di Caffella di Sua Eccellenza. / In Lucca per (Rome, Dr. Ulderico Rolandi) Girolamo Rabetti. 1714. / [Performed, as the text indicates, in honor of the birth (on June .
6,
1
.
.
14) of the Infante of Portugal. On p. 3 appears the note: "inCirce. La Signora Caterina Lelii Mossi. / Aurora. La
7
terlocutori. /
Signora Paola Alari. / Ulisse.
II
Signor Vittorio Chiccheri."
The
music
unknown.]
is
4. CANTATA / DA RECITARSI / NEL PALAZZO APOSTOLICO / LA NOTTE / DEL / SS. m0 NATALE / NeWAnno MDCCXIV. / COMPOSTA / DA FRANCESCO MARIA GASPARRI / Tra gl'Arcadi / EURINDO OLIMPIACO / MUSICA / DEL SIGNOR DOMENICO SCARLATTI. / IN ROMA. mdccxiv. / Nella Stamperia della Reverenda Camera Apostolica. /
(Rome, Dr. Ulderico Rolandi) [The music is unknown.] 5. CONTESA / DELLE STAGIONI, / SERENATA / DA CANTARSI NEL felicissimo / Giorno Natalizio / della s. r. maesta / di / marianna gioseffa / Regina di Portogallo, / nel regio palazzo. / / lisbona occidentale, / Nella Officina di pasquale da sylva, / Impressore di Sua Maesta. / m.dccxx. / (Lisbon, Biblioteca Nacional L. 1.327.
.
.
.
.
.
A) serenatta /
a quatro
voci
Dom co
/ Di
[On singers:
—
verno
unnumbered
the
—
"Primavera D. Luiggi."
is
cori.
/ Primavera
(Venice, Biblioteca
leaf preceding the title are listed the solo
Floriano. Estate
It
Scarllati.
.
Invern. / Estat. Autun. / [added note:] con Nazionale Marciana, Ms. 9769)
—
clear that this
is
the
—
Autunno Mossi. Inwork performed at the
Cristini.
royal palace in Lisbon on September 6, 1720, to celebrate the birthday
Queen Marianna {Gazeta de Lisboa, September 12, 1720). The end of the manuscript (fol. 72v) bears the inscription: "Fine della Prima Parte." The music for the "Seconda Parte" of the printed libretto of
unknown. The work is scored for two solo sopranos, alto, tenor, two trumpets, two horns, flute, and strings.] 6. CANTATA / PASTORALE, / SERENATA / DA CANTARSI NEL GIORNO / DI / S. GIOVANNI / EUANGELISTA, / NEL REGIO PALAZZO / di / Giovanni quinto / Re di Portogallo. / LISBONA occidentale, / Nella Officina di pasquale da sylva, / Impressore di Sua Maesta. / m.dccxx. / (Lisbon, Mario de Sampayo Ribeiro) [The performance of this work at the royal palace in Lisbon on December 27, 1720, is reported by the Gazeta de Lisboa (January 2, 172 1 ) The music is unknown.]
is
chorus,
.
.
.
*
419
'
VOCAL mUSIC J.
SERENATA.
[The performance of this work at the royal palace in Lisbon on September 6, 1722, is reported by the Gazeta de Lisboa (September 10, 1722). Both libretto and music are unknown.] 8.
SERENATA.
[The performance of this work at the royal palace in Lisbon on December 27, 1722, is reported by the Gazeta de Lisboa (December 31, 1722). Both libretto and music are unknown.] 9. FESTEGGIO / ARMONICO / NEL CELEBRARSI IL REAL MARITAGGio / De' molto Alti, e molto Poderosi / Serenissimi Signori / d. ferdinando / di spagna / Principe d'Asturia, / e d. maria / infanta di portogallo, / che Dio guardi, / che si esegui nel real Palazzo / di S. Maesta / A di II. di Gennaio del fresente anno / di 1728. / posto in musica da domenico / Scarlati, Regio compositore. / lisbona occidentale, / Nella Officina de gioseppe antonio (Rome, Bibl. Sta. Cecilia 6387) di sylva. / m.dcc.xxviii. / [The music is unknown. Bound in the same volume as the Sta. .
.
.
Cecilia copy are other librettos for official celebrations of the Portuguese
court: //
D.
Chisciotte,
1728;
Dramma
Pastorale, 1726; // Sacrifizio
Diana, IJ22\ GVamori di Cefalo e d'Endimione, 1 722. In these, however, no composer is named. Sampayo Ribeiro ("El-Rei D. Joao, o
di
no composer is named in I.327-A): GVAmorosi Avveni> menti (June 24, 1722); GVAmori di Cefalo e d Endimione (October 22, 1722) (see above); La Costanza gradita (October 22, 1725); Amor nasce da un'sguardo (December 27, 1725); Andromeda (July y 26, 1726); // doffio amor vilifeso (June 6, 1726); L Aurora Gazeta (December 27, 1727). The de Lisboa for October 24, 1 7 20, mentions, without naming the composer, a performance on October 22 of an Italian Serenata, Triunjo das Virtudes. Might some of these works have had music by Scarlatti?]
quinto," p. 8
1
)
lists
further librettos for which
the Biblioteca Nacional in Lisbon (L.
c.
chamber cantatas and arias ATTRIBUTED TO DOMENICO SCARLATTI
partial list of
[Such confusion by
members of
exists in the
cataloguing and attributions of music
the Scarlatti family,
and Domenico's
style in his vocal
music is for the most part so lacking in individuality, that I cannot vouch for the authenticity of the following works. Except for those in
Munster or where
specifically
mentioned, they are
listed in
lished catalogues of the after-mentioned libraries, or in Eitner's
the pubQuellen-
few of those which on inspection seemed too doubtful to include, and I have added qualifying notes and silently corrected mistakes in references to those works I have actually seen. Ex-
lexikon. I have omitted a
cept in the case of the arias in Dresden, the
•
420
'
titles listed
apply to cantatas.]
:
VOCAL fMUSIC Berlin, Preussische Staatsbibliothek
Dorme la rosa, sop. & Onde delta mia Nera,
cont.
&
voice
cont.
[Also in Vienna, Gesellschaft der Musikfreunde, according to Eitner.]
T'amai Clori
1?amai, voice
Two
&
cont.
du Conservatoire:
Brussels, Bibliotheque
cantatas
Bologna, Biblioteca del Liceo Musicale: A chi nacque injelice, alto solo
Ah
troffo infelice
set
Dresden, Sachsische Landesbibliothek, Ms.
Four
B
38.
and instruments.
arias for alto
Se fensi mat se sfe Se tu sarai fedel Consolati
e
(Published
sfera
antiche, Vol.
11,
in
Alessandro
Se vuoi ch'io t'ami [Eitner qualifies these arias as coming from an
He
does not state his reasons. In examining the
librettos
Parisotti,
Arte
Milano, Ricordi)
unknown opera. known published
(with the exception of that of // G'tustino), I have not
located them.]
Florence, Biblioteca del Conservatorio:
A
cantata in a volume entitled: "Stravaganze" (Luciani, Postilla)
London,
British
Amenissimi
Museum:
frati, bass
&
cont.
Selve, caverne e monti, sop.
&
cont.
London, King's Music Library: Se fer un sol momento, two voices & cont. Tirsi caro, two voices & cont. Se dicesse un core, voice & cont. Pur nel sonno almen taVora, voice, two violins & Sosfendi o man fer foco, voice No, non juggire o Nice, voice
Qual
Fille gia fiu
Ti ricorda
Con
O
&
fensier, voice
non
farlo, voice
qual
meco Nice
&
cont.
&
cont.
cont.
cont.
&
o bella Irene, voice
qual cor, voice
&
cont.
&
cont.
cont.
two
cangiata, voice,
violins
&
cont.
vendicarmi vorrei, voice & cont. London, Library of the Royal College of Music:
Di
Fille
Quando
fenso, sop.
&
cont.
Vago il del, sop. & cont. [Dent lists a cantata in Munster by Alessandro, which begins with the same words.] •
421
•
VOCAL 3IUSIC Miinster, Bischofliche Santini-Bibliothek:
two violins & cont. 1702"] Dofo lungo servire, alto, two violins & cont. [Inscribed "2 Lug. 1702"] Other cantatas for voice and and arias for voice and strings attributed to Domenico. Care
fufille belle, sop.,
[Inscribed "Luglio
Naples, Biblioteca del Conservatorio Bella rosa adorata, sop.
&
Sono un alma tormentata,
di
cont.
San Pietro a Maiella:
cont. sop.
&
cont.
Padua, Biblioteca Antoniana: Deh che jate o mie fufille Quando miro il vostro joco Rimirai la rosa un di Paris, Bibliotheque de L'Arsenal: Cantatas Paris, Bibliotheque Nationale:
Al
fin diviene
amante
[Attributed to
Domenico
a ms. note.
in
Not
so listed in
pub-
lished catalogue.]
Parma,
[housed
Biblioteca Palatina, Sezione Musicale
in
the
Con-
servatorio Arrigo Boito]
Ninfe
belle e voi fastori, sop.
[Bears the note: "Fatta
& in
cont.
Livorno dal
Sig.
Domenico Scar-
latti."]
Se sat qual sia la fena, sop. Vienna, Nationalbibliothek:
&
Eight cantatas for sop., two qual mecOy o Nice Se fedele tu m'adori
cont.
violins
&
cont.
O
D'tr vorrei
Pur nel sonno almen Che vidiy oh del Piangete, occhi dolenti
Tinte a note di sangue con falso inganno Washington, Library of Congress: Scritte
E V
y
fur fer mia sventura, sop. & cont. adoro o luci belle, sop. & cont. D.
I.
Miserere [in
G
CHURCH MUSIC
minor, S.A.T.B., concertino, doubling ripieno].
(Rome, Bibl. Vaticana, Basilica Giulia, graph] For facsimile, see Fig. 21.)
V-31
[Separate parts,
auto-
[Thanks to the incipits sent me by Mario de Sampayo Ribeiro, I have been able to identify with this work the Miserere in the Biblioteca de Elvas, which he mentions {A musica em Portugal, p. 65).]
422
;
VOCAL ZMUSIC 2.
Miserere [in
(Rome, later,
E
minor, S.A.T.B., concertino, doubling ripieno].
V-31
Bibl. Vaticana, Basilica Giulia,
[Separate parts, altered
but showing the original])
Confessor [in
3. Iste
G
major, S.A.T.B., organ continuo]. (Rome,
V-32
Bibl. Vaticana, Basilica Giulia,
[Separate parts, later score and
additional parts]; Bologna, Bibl. del Liceo Musicale,
LL. 281)
C
minor, 4 S. 2 A. 2 T. 2 B (double five-part chorus), organ continuo]. (Bologna, Bibl. del Liceo Musicale, 92 4. Stabat
Mater
[in
KK
[score]
Preussische
Berlin,
;
Staatsbibliothek,
Mb. O. 605
[score]
Vienna, Nationalbibliothek 16739. P [Score]; Cambridge, Mass., George B. Weston [Separate parts] Munster, Bischofliche SantiniBibliothek, Sant Hs 3961 [Score, but obviously not the "manuscrit original" as mentioned by StassofT, p. 61]) Published (Roma, De Santis, 1 941) in an edition by Bonaventura ;
Somma, with
a preface by Alfredo Casella. (Casella mentions the excopy in the Ospedaletto in Venice.)
istence of a manuscript
Dominus
a 4. (Rome, Basilica Liberiana [Casella, Mater] ) 6. Missa. (Rome, Basilica Liberiana [Casella> ibid.]) [This is perhaps the work to which Mendel & Reissmann allude (Vol. IX, p. 72): "In Rom componirte S. mehrere Kirchenmusiken, eine vierstimmige Messe (17 12) und ein Salve Regina sind bekannt."] 7. Salve Regina [in A minor, sop., alto, organ continuo]. (Bologna, Bibl. del Liceo Musicale, KK 93 [Score and voice parts, last half of 5.
Nisi quia
preface to Stabat
soprano part missing] 8.
Magnificat
)
D
[in
minor,
S.A.T.B.,
Bischofliche Santini-Bibliothek, Sant e
si
crede originale
/
II
Hs 3959
(continuo)].
(Munster,
[Score, annotated ".
.
.
Basso Organico e stato posto da Fortunato San-
tini"]) 9. Te Deum [in C major, S.A.T.B., concertino, doubling ripieno, organ continuo]. (Lisbon, archives of the See of Lisbon, now in the custody of Mario de Sampayo Ribeiro [Score, late 1 8th century ms.])
[Sampayo Ribeiro
Te Deum
tells
in the Biblioteca
me
that, to the best of his recollection, the
de Guimaraes
{Te
10. Mottetto fer VOgnissanti
(Lisbon,
ibid.
[Separate parts, late
1
is
a
copy of
this
work.]
S.A.T.B.].
Gloriosus) |
8th century ms.])
[Note: In the opinion of Sampayo Ribeiro, the Motetto al S. Sacramento ad 8 voci, and the Salmo (Laudate) ad 8, mentioned by Casella in his preface to the Stabat Mater, are not by Domenico but by Alessandro.] 11. Missa
Quatuor
use
G
Vocum
Palacio Real, Capilla 102,
minor, S.A.T.B.]. (Madrid, [in ic>3v-l38r [Separated parts, copied for
fols.
from one volume] For facsimile of the Et Incarnatus, [In a volume dated 1754.] *
423
*
see Fig. 23.)
VOCAL {MUSIC Dominus, and Lauda Jerusalem^ mentioned by 1 15) as copied out by him, and apparently as by Scarlatti. Whereabouts unknown. 13. Salve Regrna [in A major, soprano and strings]. (Naples, Bibl. del Conservatorio di San Pietro a Maiella, 22-4-2 [Score, bearing the inscription: "Fatta nell'anno 1756."]; Bologna, Bibl. del Liceo Musicale, KK 95. [Score, inscribed: "Ultima delle sue composizione fatta in Madrid poco prima di morire," and: "All'Ottimo Amico ed egregio Professore in Musica il Sig. Luigi Bandelloni F. Santini." A co note at the end reads: "Questa e l'ultima Opera di Dom. Scarlatti Berlin, Preussische Staatsfatta in Madrid poco prima di morire."] bibliothek, Ms. Winterfeld 13. [Score, inscribed: "Ultima delle sue opere, fatta in Madrid poco prima di morire."] Miinster, Bischofliche Santini-Bibliothek, Sant Hs 3514 [Score, with the same annotation as 12. Psalms, Dixit
Soler [Llave de la Modulacion, p.
—
;
;
the preceding, also inscribed: "Fortunato Santini per suo uso."])
424
APPENDIX
VII
Works
Miscellaneous, Doubtful, and Spurious A.
MISCELLANEOUS WORKS ATTRIBUTED TO
DOMENICO SCARLATTI The
1.
Slow Movements from Manuscript Twelve Concerto* s (London, 1744). See Ap-
unidentified "additional
Solo Pieces" in Avison's
V C 4. Two pieces
pendix
in a manuscript collection of donate e fughe fer cem(Bologna, Bibl. del Liceo Musicale, 96, pp. 17-18, 23-26)
2.
KK
balo.
Fuga p.
17
P-
23
3. Ten Madrigali a quattro. (Florence, Bibl. del Conservatorio, according to Luciani, PostMa, p. 201) They bear the note: "Ridotti in questa guisa da Ciccio Durante, ma il canto e il basso sono di Domenico
Scarlatti." 4.
Tre Sonate a Violoncello KK 410) Of doubtful
Musicale, 5.
Cafriccio fugato del Sig
Museum, Egerton Ms. 2451,
(Bologna,
Basso.
e
Bibl.
del
Liceo
authenticity.
r
a dodici.
Scarlatti
.
fols.
(London,
92V- 99r) The twelve
British
parts are not
There is no indication of voices or instruments. Fuga Estemforanea. (Minister, Bischofliche Santini-Bibliothek, Sant Hs 3969 [Score, S.A.T.B., S.A.T.B., no words, and strings], also Sant Hs 3960 as a "fuga a 12" [no voices or instruments indi-
entirely independent. 6.
cated] apparently attributed to Durante) 7. Sonatas 10 and 13 in Ventiseis Sonatas Ineditas, transcribed by Enrique Granados. See Appendix V A 8.
8.
[ca.
A
sonata in
Two
Favorite Sonatas
1792]. See Appendix B.
VC
.
.
.
London ...
Cooper
SPURIOUS KEYBOARD WORKS
Fugue in F minor (Roseingrave II, p. 9; Vienna G 200) by Alessandro Scarlatti. (See Appendix V C 2.) 2. Four Sonatas in Boivin III. (See Appendix V C 9.) 1.
Sonata 1 Sonata 3
J.
21.
in
C
major.
in
F
major. •
425
5
Czerny
{MISCELLANEOUS AND SPURIOUS WORKS Sonata 8 in C major. [This is the third movement of Sonata I in r Sonate fer Cembalo comfoste dal Sig Galuffi. London: Printed for .
Walsh. ... (I owe this discovery to Vere Pilkington.)] Sonata 10 in F major. [This, and the foregoing spurious sonatas in this collection, like Sonata 8, may well be discovered in an eighteenth-century printed collection by another author. I did not find them in the Galuppi collections available to me. I have accepted Sonata 6 of this volume (K. 97, elsewhere unpublished) as genuine Scarlatti.] C 3. [Six] SONATES / POUR LE CLAVECIN. / Par / DOM °. SCARPrince Asturies. OPERA Maitre de Clavecin du des IV. / LATTI / / / I.
.
.
/ A
.
/
Paris,
.
.
.
Boivin
.
.
.
/ Le Clerc
.../...
(Paris,
Bibliotheque Nationale)
[Each sonata
is
in
four movements, except Sonata 4, which
is
in
two voices, and the bass is figured. Their authenticity as works of Domenico Scarlatti is entirely discredited by the fact that the following movements are to be found in Songs in the New Of era caWd Pyrrhus and Demetrius (Alessandro Scarlatti's Pirro e Demetrio) (London), Walsh, Randall, Hare, (ca. 1708). Sonata 2, first movement: Sento fiu dolce il vento (p. 49) Sonata 2, second movement: Ruggiadose odorose violette (p. 22) Sonata 2, third movement: Love thou airy vain Illusion (p. 45) Sonata 4, first movement: Gentle sighs a while releive us [sic] All are noted in
five.
.
(p-
.
15) Sonata
My
.
5, third
was
attention
movement: Rise
first
O
Sun
(p. 2)
called to one of these by
Manfred Bukofzer.]
C
major (Allegro, C), number five in raccolta MUSICALE / CONTENENTE / VI. SONATE / PER IL CEMBALO SOLO / da / a Norimberga. / Alle Spese di Giovanni Ulrico / Opera II Haffner [ca. 1 757, Hopkinson p. 67]. [Gerstenberg (p. 36), on stylistic grounds, rejects this as a work 4.
.
.
Sonata
.
.
.
of
in
.
.
Domenico
Scarlatti.
The
heading of
collection attributed to Scarlatti, styles
Madrid." This appears
di Cristo, in
this sonata, the
him
only one of the
as "Cavalliero dell'
to be the origin
Habito
of assertions to
that effect by later writers.]
F major (Andante, C). (Published by Newton as from a manuscript copy by Charles Wesley. London, British Museum Add. 35018, fol. 55b.) [In my opinion this sonata is a conscious imitation of certain more obvious features of Scarlatti style by someone steeped in Italian music of the later eighteenth century. Passages such as measures 9 to 16, and the handling of dominant and 5.
Sonata
number
in
four,
secondary sevenths render 6.
Sonata
in
it
particularly suspect.]
F major (Andante
cantabile,
%). (Clementi
2,
Czerny
95-) [Gerstenberg (p. 39) quite rightly rejects this sonata as a work of Domenico Scarlatti. It is probably by Clementi.] J
•
426
'
MISCELLANEOUS AND SPURIOUS WORKS 7.
Sonata
196.) This
F major
in
(Allegro, alia breve). (Clementi 12, Czerny
XXVII
Sonata 5 of
is
Sonatas fara Clave for el Padre
Fray Antonio Soler, London: Birchall.
minor (Vienna G 48, Czerny 191). This is part of Higgs manuscript (Yale School of Music), published by J. S. Shedlock in Alessandro Scarlatti, Harfsichord and Organ Music, London, 1908. For the pedigree of this and the fugue in G major, see the notes by Claudio Sartori in Alessandro Scarlatti, Primo e Secondo Libro di Toccate, pp. 1 40- 1 43. 9. Fugue in G major (Vienna G 47, Czerny 192). This is part of 8.
Fugue
A
in
Toccata No. 10
in the
Higgs manuscript (see above). It appears as a in the editions of Domenico's pieces by Biilow (Leipzig, Peters), and Buonamici (New York, G. Schirmer). d0 10. Concerto a cembalo concertato, Violino Imo y Violino II } Flauto d0 do Imo, Flauto II y Corno Imo y Corno II y Viola e Basso. (Berlin, Toccata Settima
in the
Domenico
prelude attributed to
Preussische Staatsbibliothek,
On
Mus. ms. 19679).
stylistic
cannot possibly be accepted as a work by Domenico it
is
by
Giuseppe.
SPURIOUS VOCAL WORKS
C. 1.
Two
cantatas for soprano,
Stravagante non e di
grounds this Perhaps
Scarlatti.
Vamor ch yio
San Pietro a Maiella, 57
-
Al
39)
miei fensieri, and
fine m'uccidete
sento.
(Naples, Bibl. del Conservatorio
[Although catalogued as works of
Domenico Scarlatti, in the manuscript they are attributed to Alessandro. Dent includes them in his catalogue of Alessandro's works.] 2. Canzone fer Alto. [Listed by Eitner as being in Berlin, Preussische
3.
and
Staatsbibliothek,
work was not Motet,
the
in
Wagener
collection.
In
1938
this
in the Preussische Staatsbibliothek.]
Memento Domine David. (London,
Egerton Ms. 2451,
65) [The same work,
fol.
tributed to Alessandro. It
is
so listed by
in
Museum,
British
Add. 14 166,
is
at-
Dent.]
Opera, Didone Abbandonata (Rome, 1724), to Metastasio's text. no eighteenth-century reference to a setting by Domenico of this opera. The references as recent as those of Bouvier, and Brunelli (Tutte le of ere di Pietro Metastasio) are surely founded on a mistake. 4.
[I can find
Burney (Memoirs formed in Rome Naples -premiere 5.
Three
in
of
.
.
.
Metastasio, Vol.
Domenico
to music by 1
7 24. See
Arias: Sfarge al
I, p.
36)
says that
it
was per-
Sarro, the composer of the
Chapter V, footnote 34.]
Mare, Passagier che
fa ritorno, and
Im-
magini dolenti, by Giuseppe Scarlatti. [Sfarge al Mare, and Passagier che fa ritorno, from Giuseppe Scarlatti's Merofe (Rome, 1740), were performed in London on October 31, 1 74 1, in the pasticcio Alessandro in Persia, and discussed by *
427
*
{MISCELLANEOUS AND SPURIOUS WORKS Burney as works of Domenico Scarlatti (A General History of Music, Vol. II, p. 838). Burney (ibid., p. 840) likewise discusses as a work of Domenico's the air, Immagrni dolenti, from Giuseppe's Arminio in in London on April 20, 1742, Merasfe, o I'OUmfiade. (See Walker, p. 195.)]
Germania (Florence, 1741), performed in the pasticcio
428
.
BIBLIOGRAPHY The
following bibliography includes only those works which have
me
been useful to
give a complete latti,
to include
in preparing this book. It does not
list
of publications concerning
purport to
Domenico
Scar-
works entirely drawn from sources already men-
tioned here, nor to perpetuate the
titles
of works of doubtful
value. Unless otherwise indicated, the editions listed are those to
which reference
is
made
in the present book.
[Accademia Musicale Chigiana.] Gli
Scarlatti
(A lessandro-Francesco-
Pietro-Domenico-Giuseffe). Siena, 1940. Adami da Bolsena, Andrea. Osservazioni fer ben regolare il Coro dei Cantori delta Caffella Pontificia. Roma, 1 7 1 1 Addison, Joseph. Remarks on several farts of Italy, &c. In the Years, ijoi, 7702,7703. 5th ed.; London, 1736. Ademollo, Alessandro, / teatri di Roma nel secolo decimosettimo. Roma, 1888. Agricola, J. F. Anleitung zur Singkunst. A us dem Italianise hen des Herrn Peter Franz Tosi y mit Erl'duterun gen und Zus'dtzen von .
Johann Friedrich Agricola.
.
.
Berlin,
IJS7Almeida, Fortunato de. Historia de Portugal. Coimbra, 1 922-1 926. Alvarez de Colmenar, Juan. Annates d'Espagne et de Portugal. Amster-
dam,
1
74 1.
Angles, Higini. [See Soler, Antoni; .
"Das
Quintets.]
Sis
spanische Volkslied," Archiv fur Musikforschung, III
(1938), PP. 331-362. Annunzio, Gabriele d\ Leda senza Cigno. Milano, 19 16. Argenson, R. L. de V. de P., marquis de. Memoires et journal inedit du Marquis dy Argenson. Paris, 1857-1858. Armstrong, Edward. Elisabeth Farnese. London, 1892. Aulnoy, Madame d\ Relation du Voyage d'Esfagne, avec une introduction et des notes par R. Foulche-Delbosc. Paris,^ 1926.
Avison, Charles.
An
Essay on Musical Expression. London, 1752.
Bach, C. P. E. Versuch uber die wahre Art das Clavier zu sfielen. Berlin,
1759, 1762. Essay on the True Art of Playing Keyboard Instruments, trans, and ed. by William J. Mitchell. New York, 1948. Bach, J. S. Keyboard Practice Consisting of an Aria with Thirty .
Ed. by Ralph Kirkpatrick. New York, 1938. Werke. Herausgegeben von der B ach-G es ells ch aft zu Leifzig. Leipzig, 1851-1899. [Reprinted, Ann Arbor, 1947.] Variations. .
*
429
*
'BIBLIOGRAPHY W.
Queen of Sweden. London, 1890. Memorie storico-critiche delta vita e delle of ere di Giovanni Pierluigi da Palestrina. Roma, 1828. Ballesteros y Beretta, D. Antonio. Historia de Esfana. Barcelona, Bain, F. Baini,
Christina,
Giuseppe.
1919-1941. A. M. Catalogo de los retratos de fersonajes esfaiioles que se conservan en la seccion de estamfas y de bellas artes de la Biblioteca Nacional. Madrid, 1901. Baretti, Joseph. An Account of the Manners and Customs of Italy. 2nd ed.; London, 1769. A Journey from London to Genoa, through England, PortuLondon, 1 770. gal, Sfain, and France. 3rd ed. Bauer, Luise. Die Tatigkeit Domenico Scarlattis und der italienischen Meister in der ersten Halfte des 18. J ahrhunderts in Sfanien. [UnBarcia,
.
;
published Inaugural-Dissertation,
The
Munchen, 1933.]
of William Beckford of Cambridge, 1928. Berwick, M. del R. F. y O., 16. duquesa de Alba, 9. duquesa de. Documentos escogidos del archivo de la casa de Alba. Madrid, 1 89 1. Blainville, [ de. Travels through Holland, Germany, Switzer) land, but especially Italy. London, 1757. Bonaventura, Arnaldo. Bernardo Pasquini. Roma, 1 923. Bouvier, Rene, Farinelli, le chanteur des rois Paris [1943]. Branco, M. B. Portugal na efocha de D. Joao V. 2nd ed.; Lisboa,
William.
Beckford,
Travel-Diaries
Fonthill.
y
1886.
Brinckmann, A. E. Die Baukunst des iy. und 18. J ahrhunderts I. Die Baukunst des iy. und 18. J ahrhunderts in den romanischen Landern. .
Berlin
—Neubabelsberg
9 1 9]
[ 1
Brosses, Charles de. Lettres familieres sur Vltalie. Paris,
Burnet, Gilbert.
Some
most Remarkable
Germany,
.
.
.
Letters, Containing
in
in the
An
Account
1
93 1.
of
what seemed
Travelling through Switzerland, Italy,
.
.
.
Years 1685. and 1686. 2nd ed.; Rotterdam,
1687. Burney, Charles. A General History of Music. Ed. by Frank Mercer. New York, 1935.
Memoirs London, 1796. .
.
of the Life
and Writings
of the
Abate Metastasio.
The
Present State of Music in France and Italy. London,
The
Present State of Music in Germany, the Netherlands,
1771. .
and
the United Provinces.
Cabanes,
Docteur.
London,
Le Mai
1
773.
Hereditaire
a°Esfagne. Paris [1927]. •
43O
[Vol.
II].
Les Bourbons
'BIBLIOGRAPHY Voyage d'Esfagne, fait en Vannee 1755. [An y abridged translation of hettere d un vago Italiano ad un suo amico,
[Caimo, Norberto.]
Milano, 1 760-1 767.] Paris, 1772. Cametti, Alberto. "Carlo Sigismondo Capeci (1652-1728), Alessandro e Domenico Scarlatti e la Regina di Polonia in Roma," Musica d'Oggi, XIII (1931), pp. 55-64} "I cembali del Cardinale Ottoboni," Musica d Oggi, VIII .
(1926),
pp.
339-341.
'Cristina di Svezia, l'arte musicale e gli spettacoli teatrali in
Roma," Nuova
Antologia, October, 19:
'Organi, organisti ed organari del Senato e Populo in
Maria
S.
XXVI(i 9
i
(1 583-1
Aracoeli
di
Romano Italiana,
"
9 ),pp.44iff.
L
848)," Rivista Musicale
y
Arcadia dal i6go al i8go. Roma, 189 1. D. Luis. Cronica de la ofera italiana en Madrid desde el ano 1738 hasta nuestros dias. Madrid, 1878. Casaglia, Ferdinando. Per le onoranze di Bartolommeo Cristofori. Carini, Isidoro.
Carmena y
Millan,
Firenze, 1876. Casanova, Jacques. Memoires. Paris: Gamier [1880]. Celani, Enrico. "I canton della Cappella Pontificia nei secoli XVIXVIII," Rivista Musicale Italiana, XVI (1909), pp. 55-112. "II primo amore di Pietro Metastasio," Rivista Musicale Italiana, XI (1904), pp. 228-264. Chase, Gilbert. The Music of Spain. New York, 1 94 1. Chedlowski, Casimir von. Neafolitanische Kulturbilder XIV. -XV III. Jahrhundert. 2nd ed.; Berlin, 1 920. Choron, A. E., and Fayolle, F. Dictionnaire historique des musiciens y artistes et amateurs. Paris, 1810-1811. Chrysander, Friedrich. G. F. Handel. 2nd ed.; Leipzig, 1 919. Cian, Vittorio. Italia e Sfagna nel secolo XVIII. Torino, 1896. Clarke, Edward. Letters concerning the Sfanish Nation, written at Madrid during the years 1760 and 176 1. London, 1763. Conti, Giuseppe. Firenze dai Medici ai Lorena. Firenze, 1909. [Cormatin, P. M. F. D., baron de.] Voyage du ci-devant due du Chatelet en Portugal. Revu par J. F. Bourgoing. Paris, an VI [I797]Cotarelo y Mori, Emilio. Ori genes y e stable cimiento de la ofera en Esfana hasta 1800. Madrid, 191 7. Coxe, William. Memoirs of the Kings of Sfain of the House of Bour.
.
bon,
.
.
.
7700
.
.
.
to
.
.
.
.
.
1788. 2nd ed.; London,
Crescimbeni, G. M. L Arcadia. Roma, 171 1. Notizie Istoriche degli Arcadi Morti.
1
8
1
5.
y
.
Roma,
1
72 1.
Croce, Benedetto. Storia del Regno di Nafoli. Bari, 1 93 1. "I teatri di Napoli nei secoli XV-XVIII." Archivio storico .
fer
le
frovince Nafoletane,
XIV-XVI '
431
'
(1889-1891).
'BIBLIOGRAPHY Dalrymple, William. Travels through Sfain and Portugal in 1774*
London, 1777. Danvila y Burguero, Alfonso. Fernando VI y Dona Barbara de Braganza. (1713-1748). Madrid, 1905. [Defoe, Daniel.] Memoirs of Caft. George Carleton. Edinburgh, 1808. Delia Corte, Andrea. "Alessandro Scarlatti," Enciclofedia Italiana,
XXXI, Dent, E.
J.
pp. 5-7. his Life and Works. London, 1905. N. L'Esfagne de Vancien regime. Paris,
Alessandro Scarlatti,
Desdevises du Dezert, G.
1897-1904. Deutsch, Otto Erich. Music Publishers* Numbers. London, 1946. D. Joao V. Conferencias e estudos comemorativos do segundo centenario
da sua morte (1750-1050). Lisboa, 1952. Dominici, Bernardo de'. Vite de* Pittori} Scultori } ed Architetti Nafoletani. Napoli,
1
742-1 744.
Doria, Gino. Storia di una cafitale: Nafoli dalle origini al i860. Napoli
[1935]. Dotto, Paolo. "Gaspare A. Scarlatti
XVII (1935),
il
palermitano," Musica d'Oggi,
383-386. Duclos, C. P. Memoires. Paris, 1 79 1. [Dumouriez, C. F. D.] fLtat Present du Royaume de Portugal en 1766. Lausanne, 1775. pp.
.
.
.
Eitner, Robert. Biografhisch-bibliografhisches Quellen-Lexikon. Leip-
I900ff.
zig,
Enciclofedia Italiana di scienze y lettere ed
arti.
Roma, 1936.
Faustini-Fasini, Eugenio. "Gli astri maggiori del *bel canto' Napoletano
—
II
Cav. Nicola Grimaldi detto 'Niccolino,' " Note dy archivio fer
la storia musicale,
XII (1935),
Fernan-Nunez, Conde Fienga,
"Giuseppe
Pasquale.
pp. 2()jfi.
de Carlos III. Madrid, 1898. Scarlatti et son incertaine ascendance
de. Vida
Revue Musicale, XIII (1932), pp. 113-118. "La veritable patrie et la famille d' Alessandro Scarlatti (Derrecherches et documents inedits)," Revue Musicale, X (1929),
directe," .
nieres
pp.
227-236.
Filifpo Juvarra. [See Vecchi di
Flood,
W.
Val Cismon.]
H. G. "Domenico
from notes contributed by quary, I (April,
Florez, Enrique.
1
9 10), pp.
Memoria de
1790. Florimo, Francesco.
La
Scarlatti's
W. 1
Visit
to
Dublin,
1
740-1,
H. Grattan Flood," Musical Anti-
78-1 81.
las
Reynas
catholfcas.
3rd ed. Madrid,
scuola musicale di Nafoli. Napoli, 1880-1882. '
432
'
5
'BIBLIOGRAPHY Lodovico.
Frati,
"Farinello
La
Bologna,"
a
Cultura
Musicale,
I
pp. 91-98.
(1922),
Friedrich II der Grosse. CEuvres de Frederic Le Grand. Berlin, 1846-
1857.
G ac eta
de Madrid, 1729-1757.
un Saggio
Galeazzi, Francesco. Elementi teorico-fractici di Musica con sofra VArte di suonare
il
Violino.
Garcia Rives, Angela. Fernando
Roma, 1791. VI
y
Dona Barbara
de Braganza
(1748-1759). Madrid, 1917. Gaetano. Catalogo della Biblioteca del Liceo Musicale di Bologna. Bologna, 1 890- 1 895. y Gasparini, Francesco. L Armonico Pratico al Cimbalo. 4th ed. Venezia, Gaspari,
;
1745. Gazeta de Lisboa Occidental. 171 _1 7 2 9* Geminiani, Francesco. The Art of A ccomfaniament
London [n.d.]. The Art .
of Playing
on the Violin
.
.
.
.
Of era
.
.
.
Of era
Of era nth. IX. London
[n.d.]. -.
Rules for flaying in a true Taste
.
.
VIII.
London
[n.d.]. .
A
Treatise of
Good Taste
in the
Art
of Mustek.
London,
1749Gerber, E.
L. Historisch-biografhisches Lexicon der Tonkiinstler. 790-1 792. Neues historisch-biografhisches Lexicon der Tonkiinstler. Leipzig, 1812-1814. Gerstenberg, Walter. Die Klavierkomfositionen Domenico Scarlattis. dazu Notenbeilage in besonderem Heft.) Regensburg [1933]. (. Giacomo, Salvatore di. // Conservatorio di Sant'Onofrio a Cafuana e Leipzig,
1
.
.
.
M. della Pietd dei Turchini. (/ quattro antic hi conmusica di Nafoli.) Palermo, 1924. // Conservatorio dei Poveri di Gesu Cristo e quello di Loreto. (/ quattro antichi conservatorn di musica di Nafoli.) Palermo, 1 928. Gleichen, C.-H., Baron de. Souvenirs. Paris, 1868. Goethe, J. W. von. Goethes Italienische Reise, besorgt von Hans Timotheus Kroeber. Leipzig, 19 1 3. Goldschmidt, Hugo. Die Lehre von der vokalen Ornamentik. Erster Band: Das 17. und 18. Jahrhundert bis in die Zeit Glucks. Charlotquello di S.
servatorii di .
tenburg, 1907.
"Una Regina XLI-XLII (1888).
Grottanelli, L.
Polonia
di
in
Roma," Rassegna
nazionale,
Habock, Franz. Die Gesangskunst der Kastraten. Erster Notenband: A. Die Kunst des Cavalier e Carlo Broschi Farinelli. B. Farinelli y s beruhmte Arien. Wien, 1923. '
433
'
'BIBLIOGRAPHY Habock, Franz. Die Kastraten und ihre Gesangskunst. Stuttgart, Berlin & Leipzig, 1927. Hamilton, Mary Neal. Music in Eighteenth Century Spain. Urbana, 1937Harding, R. E. M. The Piano-Forte. Cambridge, 1933. Hawkins, John. A General History of the Science and Practice of Music. New ed.; London, 1875. Heinichen, J. D. Der Generalbass in der Composition. Dresden, 1728. Herrando, Joseph. Arte, y funtual Exflicacion del modo de Tocar el
[Madrid, 175 6- 1757.] (1729). London [n.d.]. Hopkinson, Cecil. "Eighteenth-century Editions of the Keyboard Compositions of Domenico Scarlatti (1685-1757)," Edinburgh BiblioViolin
The
con perfection,
y facilidad.
Historical Register. Vol.
XIV
graphical Society Transactions, Vol. Ill, Part I (1948- 1949), pp.
47-71Ivo, Julio.
O
monumento de Mafra.
Porto,
1
930.
Joao V. [See D. Joao V.] Juvarra, Filippo. [See Vecchi
di
Val Cismon.]
Kany, C. E. Life and Manners
in Madrid 1750-1800. Berkeley, 1932. Kastner, Santiago. Carlos de Seixas. Coimbra [1947]. Contribution al estudio de la musica esfanola y fortuguesa. .
Lisboa,
1
94 1.
Keene, Benjamin. The Private Correspondence of Sir Benjamin Keene, K.B. Cambridge, 1933. Klenze, Camillo von. The Interpretation of Italy, during the last two centuries. Chicago, 1 907. Korte, Werner. Der Palazzo Zuccari in Rom. Leipzig, 1935. Krebs, Carl. "Die Privatkapellen des Herzogs von Alba," Vierteljahrsschrift fiir Musikwis sense haft, IX (1893), PP- 393~4°7Labat, P. Voyages du P. Labat de Vordre des Ff. Prescheurs y en Esfagne et en Italie. Amsterdam, 1 73 1. Laborde, J. B. de. Essai sur la Musique Ancienne
et
Moderne.
Paris,
1780. Lambertini, Michelangelo. "Portugal," Lavignac-Laurencie, Encyclopedic de la Musique, Sec. I, Vol. IV, pp. 2401-2469. Laparra, Raoul. "La musique et la danse populaires en Espagne,"
Lavignac-Laurencie, Encyclopedic de PP- 2353-2400. Lasses, Richard.
An
Italy.
Italian
la
Musique, Sec.
I,
Vol. IV,
Voyage, or a Compleat Journey through
London, 1698. *
434
'
.
'BIBLIOGRAPHY Lavignac, Albert, and Laurencie, Lionel de la. Encyclofedie de la Musique. Paris, 1913-1931. Lee, Vernon. Studies of the Eighteenth Century in Italy. London, 1880. Leichtentritt, Hugo. Handel. Stuttgart-Berlin, 1924. Ligi, B. "La cappella musicale del Duomo d'Urbino," Note d'archivio fer la storia musicale, II (1925).
Lima Cruz, M. A. Carlos de
Seixas (1704-1742). Lisboa, 1943. [Limojon] de St. Didier, [A. T.] The City and Refublick of Venice. London, 1699. Loewenberg, Alfred. Annals of Opera, 1597-1940. Cambridge [I943]Longo, Alessandro. Domenico Scarlatti e la sua figura nella storia della
musica. Napoli, 1913. Lorenz, Alfred. Alessandro Scarlatti's Jugendofer. Augsburg. 1 927. Lorenzoni, Antonio. Saggio fer ben sonare il Flauto traverso. Vicenza,
1779-
D. A. d'A., marquis de. Memoires secretes sur V etablissement Maison de Bourbon en Esfagne. Paris, 1818. Luciani, S. A. "Alia scoperta degli autograft di Domenico Scarlatti," Louville,
de
la
Archivi, Serie III, .
.
.
.
pp.
Anno
II (1935), Fascicolo IV.
Domenico Scarlatti. Firenze, 1939. "Domenico Scarlatti," Enciclofedia Domenico Scarlatti. Torino [ 1 939] "Postilla Scarlattiana,"
200-203. -. "Un'opera inedita
Italiana,
La Rassegna Domenico
di
XLVIII (1946),
Italiana,
Musicale,
XXXI,
pp. 7-9.
XLIV
(1940),
Scarlatti," Rivista
Musicale
433-445. Lustig, Renzo. "Filippo Juvarra scenografico," Emporium, LXIII (1926), pp. 246-253. "Per la cronistoria dell'antico teatro musicale. II Teatro della Villa Medicea di Pratolino," Rivista Musicale Italiana, XXXVI (1929), pp. 259-266. Luynes, [C. P. d'A.] due de. Memoires (1735-1758). Paris, 1860-1865. pp.
.
.
[Main waring, John.] Memoirs Handel. London, 1760. Malipiero, G. F. "Domenico (1927),
pp.
.
.
of the Life of the
Scarlatti,"
Late George Frederic
Musical
Quarterly,
XIII
476-488.
Mancini, Giambattista. Rifiessioni fratiche sul canto figurato. 3rd ed.; Milano, 1777. Manfredini, Vincenzo. Regole Armoniche o sieno frecettt ragionati fer
affrender la musica. 2nd ed. Venezia, 1797. [Marcello, Benedetto.] // Teatro alia Moda. [Venice, 1720.] ;
Marpurg, F.
W.
Anleitung
zum '
Claviers fielen. Berlin, 1755.
435
'
BIBLIOGRAPHY Marpurg, F.
W.
Musik. Berlin,
1
Kritische Brief e. Berlin,
.
Beitrage
Historisch-Kritische
zur Aufnahme der
754-1 778. 1
7 60- 1
763.
Martini, G. B. Storia delta Musica. Bologna, 175 7-1 78 1. Maugham, H. N. The Book of Italian Travel, 1 580-1900.
New York
& London,
1903. Mazza, Jose. Dicondrio biogrdfico de musicos Portugueses. Com prefacio e notas do Pe. Jose Augusto Alegria. [Lisboa], 1944- 1945. Mead, W. E. The Grand Tour in the Eighteenth Century. Boston & New York, 19 14. Mendel, Hermann, and Reissmann, August. Musikalisches Conversations-he xikon, Erganzungsband. Berlin, 1883. Mereaux, Amedee. Les clavecinistes de 163J a 1790. Paris, 1867. a cura di Bruno Brunelli. Milano Metastasio, Pietro. Tutte le of ere .
t I
.
.
,
943" I 954].
Misson, F.
M. A New Voyage
Mitjana, Rafael.
to Italy.
5th ed.; London, 1739. Laurencie,
"La musique en Espagne," Lavignac-La
Encyclofedie de la Musique Sec. I, Vol. IV, pp. 1913-235 1. Mizler [von Kolof], L. [C] Neu erofnete musikalische Bibliothek. y
Leipzig, 1 739-1 754. Molmenti, Pompeo. La storia Bergamo, 1926. Monnier, Philippe. Venise au
di
Venezia nella vita frivata. 6th ed.;
XVIIP
Montalto, Lina. "Fra virtuosi
Pamphili," Rivista Italiana del
detto
Nos.
1,
2 (January,
1908. Corte del Cardinal Bene-
siecle. Paris,
e musici nella
Dramma, Anno V,
Vol.
I,
March, 1941).
Montesquieu, Charles de Secondat, baron de
La Brede
et de.
CEuvres
completes. (Bibliotheque de la Pleiade.) Paris [1949]. Moratin, L. F. Obras fostumas. Madrid, 1867.
[Morei,
M. G.] Memorie
istoriche
deW A dunanza
1761. Morel-Fatio, A. P. V. Grands dy Esfagne
XVIIP
siecle.
(Etudes
sur
et fetits frinces
I'Esfagne
Roma,
degli Arcadi.
—Deuxieme
allemands au Serie.)
Paris,
1890. Natali, Giulio. // settecento. {Storia letteraria d* Italia, VIII.)
Milano,
1929.
Newton, Richard. "The English Cult Letters,
XX
of
Domenico
Scarlatti,"
Music
138-156. Nin, Joaquin. "The Bi-centenary of Antonio Soler," The Chesterian, XI (January-February, 1930), pp. 97-103. Noailles, A. M., due de. Memoires. Paris, 1 777. Cif
(1939),
pp.
Oliveira Martins, J. P. Historia de Portugal. Lisboa, 1880. '
436
*
BIBLIOGRAPHY Pavan, Giuseppe. "II Teatro Capranica," Rivista Musicale Italiana,
XXIX (1922), pp. 425-444. Penna, Lorenzo. Li frimi Albori musicali fer It frincifianti della musica figurata. Bologna, 1672. Perth, James, Earl of. Letters. London, 1845. Boccherini; notes et documents nouveaux far Picquot, Louis. Georges de Saint>-Foix. Paris, 1 930. .
.
.
Marc. Corelli. Paris, 1933. Antonio Vivaldi et la musique instrumentale Paris [1948]. Pollnitz, K. L., Freiherr von. The Memoirs of Charles-Lewis, Baron de Pollnitz, London, 1 737-1738. Pincherle, .
.
Prota-Giurleo,
Ulisse.
Alessandro Scarlatti
b
;
;
Bb;%;
D
;
alia breve
%
;
18 19
%; Andante commodo
C Moderato Bb;%; Minuet P»b
XII XII
14 15 16 17 18 19
Allegro Allegro
;
13 14 15 16 17
III III II II II II II II
XIII
57
F5
58 29 30
F6
31
32 33 34
II 35 II 36 III 59
G46
60
F8 F9
F7
di ballo
Allegro Allegro
Andante
;
D C
12
12 13
;
D;%;
29 30
XII XII XII XII XII XII
11
;
G;%;Vivo d
XI XI
5
8 9 10
;
tempo 431
3 4
7
Presto, quanto sia possibbile Allegro %; Allegro Non presto ma a alia breve
III 55 III 56
6
;
%; Andante
g;
27 28
1
2
che allegro alia breve Allegro
XLII
XI XI
Allegro
;
Piu tosto presto
;
;
;
;
30
;
31
32 33 34
XII 2 XII 3 XII 4 XII 5 XII 6 XII 7 XII 8 XII 9 XII 10 XII 11 XII 20 XII 21 XII 22 XII 23 XII 24 XII 25 XII XII XII XII XII
III III III III III II II III III II II
61 62 63 64 27 28 65
66
F10 Fll F12
F13 F14
37 38
II 39 II 40 II 41 II 42
26 27
II 43 II 44
28 29 30
II 45
II 46
V55
A
40
Miinster II
452
A
453
A; %; Andante
;
alia breve
;
Andante
51
II 51
Gerstenberg
1
52
II 52
Gerstenberg
2
allegro
1756 Venice
XI 454 455
184 209
G % Andante spiritoso G alia breve Allegro ;
;
1
;
2
;
*
45 3
XIII XIII
•
1
II 47
2
II 48
CATALOGUE OF SONATAS KlRKSixty Sonatas
LONGO
456 457 458
491
459
XLV XLVI
Prim. Source
PAT-
RICK
460
292 212 S.14
324
Key, Time, Tempo
A
breve Allegro A; %; Allegro D;%; Allegro (d;%; Allegro alia breve Presto ( C alia breve Allegro C;%; Allegro alia
;
D
Parma
Munster
XIII 3 XIII 4 XIII 5 XIII 6
3 4
;
5
6
Vtenna
Notes
II 49
II 50 II 53
G27
II 54
;
;
;
8
438
f
;
%; Andante
471
f
;
alia breve
8 9 10
Multo
;
XIII 7 XIII 8 XIII 9 XIII 10
7
;
461
462 463
II 55 II 56
II 57 II 58
G 19 G20
allegro
464 465 466 467 468 469
alia breve; Allegro
151
C;
242 118 476 226
C;%;
431
f
i;%; Allegrissimo F;%; Allegro F alia breve Allegro ;
II 59
15 16 17
20
XIII 17 XIII 18 XIII 19 XIII 20
21
XIII
22
XIII 22
I
25 24 25
XIII 23 XIII 24 XIII 25
26
XIII 26
114
C13
27
118
28
XIII 30 XIII 27
I 15
C 14 G31
29
XIII 28
I
16
G30
30
XIII 29
I 17
G28
XIV XIV 2
I 19
C 15 C16
XIV 3 XIV 4 XIV 5 XIV 6 XIV 7 XIV 8 XIV 9 XIV 10
121
12 13 14
C; Andante moderato
;
XIII 11 XIII 12 XIII 13 XIII 14 XIII 15 XIII 16
11
Allegro
15
16
;
II 60
11
12 13 14
CI C2
C3 C4
Also Vienna Also Vienna
G G
29
Also Vienna
G
45
10
molto
XLVII XLVIII
472 473
304 82 99 229
G; alia breve; Allegro G; %; Minuet Bb % Andante
474
203
Eb; %\ Andante
475
220
476 477 478
340 290
470 471
17
18 19
;
;
Bb;
alia breve; Allegro
18
C5
C6 C7 C8
molto
12
479
S.16
480 481
S.8 187
482
435
483
472
e
cantabbile breve Allegrissimo g; %; Allegro G; %; Allegrissimo E(j
;
alia
;
D; %; Andante
e
cantabbile D; alia breve; Allegrissimo alia breve Presto alia breve Andante e f cantabbile F alia breve Allegrissimo F;%; Presto
D
;
;
;
;
;
;
19
C9
10
G25
I 11
C10
112 113
Cll C12
21
1756 Venice
XII
484 485
XLIX L LI LII
486 487 488 489 490 491
492 493
419 153 455 205 S.37 S.41
206 164 14 S.24
D;%;
Allegro C alia breve Andante e cantabile C; alia breve; Allegro C;%; Allegro Bb alia breve Allegro Bb;%; Allegro D; alia breve; Cantabile D;%; Allegro D; %; Presto G alia breve Allegro
1
;
;
1
2
;
;
3 4 5
;
6 7
8 9
10
;
120
122 123 124 125 126 127 128
C17 C18 C 19 C20 G44 C21 C22 C23
Source
in
correctly
IV
•
454
'
5
Longo Venice
CATALOGUE OF SONATAS KlRK-
Sixty Sonatas
LIU
494 495 496 497 498 499 500
287
426 372 146
350 193
492 137
503 504 505
196 29 326
506 507
70 113
511 512 513
Key, Time, Tempo
Lonco
501 502
508 509 510
LIV
Prim.
PAT-
RICK
3
19
311 277 314 339 S.3
G;%;
;
%
;
D
;
;
D;%;
Moderato-Molto
C38 C39
25 26 27 28
XIV 25 XIV 26 XIV 27 XIV 28 XIV 29 XIV 30
145 132 133 146 147 150
C40 C27 C28 C41 C42 C45
XVI
157 158 159 160
D7 D8 D9
21
cantabile Eb;%; Allegro alia breve Allegro d; %; Allegro alia breve Allegro Allegro C; !%,%; Pastorale; ;
143 144
20
;
;
;
XIV 23 XIV 24
18 19
Eb; %; Andantino
D
23 24
17
;
;
142
16
;
;
22
15
;
;
C24 C25 C26 C31 C32 C29 C30 C33 C34 C35 C36 C37
13 14
;
Vienna
129 130 131 136 137 134 135 138 139 140
12
;
;
MUNSTER
XIV 11 XIV 12 XIV 13 XIV 14 XIV 15 XIV 16 XIV 17 XIV 18 XIV 19 XIV 20 XIV 21 XIV 22
11
Allegro E alia breve Allegro E;%; Allegro b alia breve Allegro b; %; Allegro A alia breve Andante Allegro A C alia breve Allegreto C;%; Allegro Bb alia breve Allegreto Bb;%; Allegro F alia breve Allegro non presto F;%; Allegro ;
Parma
Source
29 30
141
al-
legro-Presto
1757 Venice
XIII
LV LVI LVII LVIII
514 515 516 517 518 519 520 521 522 523 524 525 526
1
255 S.12
266 116 475 86 408 S.25
490 283 188 456
C alia breve Allegro C;%; Allegro ;
d
1
;
%
12
XV 2 XV 4 XV 3 XV 5 XV 6 XV 7 XV 8 XV 9 XV 10 XV 11 XV 12
13
XV
2
Allegretto d; alia breve; Prestissimo F; alia breve; Allegro f %; Allegro assay alia breve Allegretto Allegro alia breve Allegro G;%; Allegro F;%; Allegro F;%; Allegro c; alia breve; Allegro ;
3
;
4 5
6
;
G G;%; G ;
;
;
;
7
8 9 10 11
13
161
162 148 149 151
152 155 156 153
D D D
10 11
12
C43 C44
D D2 D5 D6 D3 1
comodo 527 528 529 530 531 532 533
458 200 327 44 430 223 395
C; %; Allegro
Bb
alia breve
14
assai
Allegro Allegro E;%; Allegro E;%; Allegro a; %; Allegro A alia breve Allegro ;
15
;
Bb;%;
;
16 17
18 19
20
;
XV 14 XV 15 XV 16 XV 17 XV 18 XV 19 XV 20
154 163 164
XV 21 XV 22 XV 23 XV 24 XV 25 XV 26 XV 27 XV 28
D4 D D D D D D
13 14
169 170
D
19
171
D21
172 173 174 175 176
D22 D23 D24 D25 D26
165 166 167 168
15
16 17
18
assai
534 535 536 537 538 539 540 541
11
D;
alia breve;
Cantabbile
21
262 236 293 254
D %
121
G;
alia breve; Allegro
22 23 24 25 26
F;
alia breve; Allegretto
27
S.17 120
;
;
Allegro
A;
alia breve;
A
%
;
;
G;%; F;%;
Cantabbile Prestissimo Allegretto
28
Allegretto
•
455
•
D20
Notes
CATALOGUE OF SONATAS KlRKSixty Sonatas
Prim. Source
PAT-
RICK
LONGO
542 543
167
227
Key, Time, Tempo
F;%; F;%;
29 30
Allegretto Allegro
Parma
MUNSTEJt
VffiNNA
XV 29 XV 30
177 178
D27 D28
XV 31
179
D29
Notes
1757
Parma
XV LIX
544
497
Bb;%;
LX
545
500
Bb
546
312
547
S.28
548
404
31
Cantabile
breve Prestissimo Cantabile g; %;
G
alia
;
alia breve
;
C;%;
549
S.l
C;
550
S.42
Bb
;
Allegro
;
Allegretto
alia breve; Allegro
;
alia
breve
;
Allegretto
32
XV 32
180
D30
33
XV 33
181
D31
34
XV 34
182
D32
35
XV 35
183
D33
36
XV 36
184
D34
37
XV 37
185
D35
551
396
Bb;%;
Allegro
38
XV 38
186
D36
552
421
d; alia breve; Allegretto
39
XV 39
187
D37
553
425
d;
%;
40
XV 40
188
D38
554
S.21
F
alia
555
477
;
{;%;
Allegro
breve
;
Allegretto
Allegro
*
A
41
XV 41
189
D39
42
XV 42
190
D40
56'
Longo's source Vienna D 29 Longo's source Vienna D 30 Longo's source Vienna D 31 Longo's source Vienna D 32 Longo's source Vienna D 33 Longo's source Vienna D 34 Longo's source Vienna D 35 Longo's source Vienna D 36 Longo's source Vienna D 37 Longo's source Vienna D 38 Longo's source Vienna D 39 Longo's source Vienna D 40
Table of Sonatas in the Order of Longo's Edition Volume
1
Volume
Lonco 1
2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11
12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19
PATKICK
514 384 502 158 406 139 302 461 303 84 534 478 60 492 160 306 371 331 508
20
51
21
162 198
22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31
32 33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41
42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50
380 292 46 418 238 194 504 82 318 67 87 376 319 88 325 196 249 43 268 217 405 530 62 47 439 266 234 70
Volume
2
LONGO
51
52 53 54 55 56 57 58 59 60 61 62 63 64 65 66 67 68 69 70 71 72 73 74
75 76 77 78 79 80 81
82 83 84 85 86 87 88 89 90 91
92 93 94 95 96 97 98 99 100
LONGO
PATJUCX
166 165 75 200 330 281 288 64 164 346 291 232 163 148 395 317 294 354 411 506 59 186 379 393 78 374 171 289 391 79 71 471 431 63 290 520 338 304 102 284 285 300 149 74 323
101 102
103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130 131 132 133 134 135 136 137 138 139 140 141 142 143 144 145 146 147 148 149 150
154
440 373 472 334
*
3
Volume
457
*
PATKICK
156 423 259 159 340 90 140 213 436 396 123 226 507 68 307 518 150 466 366 541 539 118 210 260 413 347 348 426 201 111 428 429 211 383 212 61 501 109 182 341
332 193 189 311 272
497 197 261
416 409
4
Kmk-
KlFK-
KlRK-
KntK-
Longo
151 152 153 154 155 156 157 158 159 160 161 162 163 164 165 166 167 168 169 170 171 172 173 174 175 176 177 178 179 180 181 182 183 184 185 186 187 188 189 190 191
192 193 194 195 196 197 198 199 200
PAIWCK
464 327 485 235 271 362 48 58 252 363 236 178 176 491 214 85 542 77 257 349 386 367 185 250 387 91 179 258 152 241 121 412 277 454 76 127 481 525 184 130 342 313 499 181
65 503 155 296 229 528
TABLE OF SONATAS Volume
5
Volume
LONGO
201 202 203 204 205 206 207 208 209 210 211 212 213 214 215 216 217 218 219
220 221 222 223 224 225 226 227 228 229 230 231 232 233 234 235 236 237 238 239 240 241 242 243 244 245
246 247 248 249 250
PATRICX
326 242 474 105 487 490 191 397 455 299 89 458 400 223 120 192 73 398 254 475 134 404 532 135 381 468 543 256 473 350 31 124 103
390 315 536 280 208 188 369 54
465 451 117 36 392 361 310 108 190
Volume
6
KlRK-
KlRK-
LONGO
251 252 253 254 255 256 257 258 259 260 261 262 263 264 265 266 267 268 269 270 271 272 273 274 275 276 277 278 279 280 281 282 283 284 285 286 287 288 289 290 291 292 293 294 295 296 297 298 299 300
7
Volume
KlRK-
LONGO
PATRICK
49 372 170 470 251 345 269 237 222 414 509 546 353 511 137 370 99 283 442 253 263 305 215 460 98 505 529 275 167
168 239 133 524 385 187 427 494 432 424 477 343 457 537 447 344 128 274 112 316
301 302 303 304 305 306 307 308 309 310 311 312 313 314 315 316 317 318 319 320 321 322 323 324 325 326 327 328 329 330 331 332 333 334 335 336 337 338 339 340 341 342 343 344 345 346 347 348 349
131
350
PATRICK
339 421 199 538 515 247 206 321 221 246 53 535 377 312 45 517 52 224 333 295 81
180 216 399 394 378 510 437 419
458
151
169 324 425 122 55 93 336
450 512 476 320 220 434 114 113
408 227 244 146 498
LONGO
351 352 353 354 355 356 357 358 359 360 361 362 363 364 365 366 367 368 369
370 371 372 373 374 375 376 377 378 379 380 381 382 383
384 385 386 387 388 389 390 391 392 393 394 395 396 397 398 399 400
8
KlRKPATWCK
225 11
243 230 100 56 40 95 308 22 435 92 21 177 401 1
5
26 145 10 207
496 28 15
20 147 136 3 7
203 438 69 19 17
445 35 14 2
375 4 39 218 219 286 533 551 16
273 228 360
TABLE OF SONATAS Volume
9
Volume
Lonco
401 402 403 404 405 406 407 408 409 410 411 412 413 414 415 416 417 418 419 420 421 422 423 424 425 426 427 428 429 430 431
432 433 434 435 436 437 438 439 440 441 442 443 444 445 446 447 448 449 450
PATRICK
72 126 86 548 157 37 115 521 231 174 23 358 9 388 119 18 161 443 484 444 552 141 32 33 553 495 402 209 175 531 469 44 446 267 482 364 106 462 255 50 314 104 356 449 153 262 173 359 27 245
10
Supplement
KlRK-
KlRK-
Lonco
PATRICK
422 116 433 309 486 526
451 452 453 454 455 456 457 458 459 460 461 462 463 464 465 466 467 468 469 470 471 472 473 474 475 476 477 478 479 480 481 482 483 484 485 486 487 488 489 490 491 492 493 494 495 496 497 498 499 500
132 527 270 129 29 417 430 138 96 264 233 279 110 403 463 483 183 107 519 467 555 38 6
365 25 389 322 282 448 13 125 8 12 523
456 500 301 101 24 66 544
202 30 545
459
KlRK-
Lonco
PATRICK
S.l
549 420 513 407 329 298 34 480 287 335 415 516 352 459 278 479 540 195 297 276 554 355 205 493 522 337 328 547 240 368 83 265 382 351 248 42 488 57 441 172 489 550 410 293 357
S.2
S.3 S.4
S.5 S.6 S.7 S.8 S.9
S.10 S.ll S.12 S.13 S.14 S.15 S.16 S.17 S.18 S.19 S.20 S.21 S.22 S.23 S.24 S.25 S.26 S.27 S.28 S.29 S.30 S.31
S.32 S.33 S.34 S.35 S.36 S.37 S.38 S.39 S.40 S.41 S.42 S.43 S.44 S.45
THE SCARLATTI FAMILY TREE i.
PIETRO SCARLATA Married (5 V 1658) to
-by 1678
(
1
)
Eleonora D'Amato Children: Anna Maria Antonia Diana (8 II 1659-28 X 1659), Pietro Alessandro Gaspare (2 V 1660-24 1725), Anna Maria (8 XII i66i 2 -i 4 XII 1703), Melchiorra Brigida (5 X 1663-2 XII 1736), Vincenzo Placido (10 1665 4— ), Francesco Antonio Nicola (5 XII 1666- ), Antonio Giuseppe 18 (15 I 1669), Tommaso (between 1669 and i672 -i VIII
X
X
1760) 2.
(2 V 1660-24 X 1725) Antonia Anzalone Children: Pietro Filippo (5 I 1679-22 II 1750), Benedetto Bartolomeo(24VIII 1680-21 VIII 1684), Alessandro Raimondo 7 6 (23 XII 1681 — 1717 or after ), Flaminia Anna Caterina (10 IV 8 Cristina Leonora Magdalena (6 IV 1683-C.1724 or 1725 ), 1684-1714 or after 9 ), Giuseppe Domenico (26 X 1685-23 VII 1757), Giuseppe Nicola Roberto Domenico Antonio (17 II 1689 10 - ), Caterina Eleonora Emilia Margherita (15 XI 1690- ), Carlo Francesco Giacomo (5 V 1692- ), Giovanni Francesco Diodato (7 V 1695- )
ALESSANDRO SCARLATTI Married (12 IV 1678)
to
ANNA MARIA SCARLATTI
(8
XII i66i 2 -i 4 XII 1703)
Married (1685?) to Paolo Massonio Astrolusco 17 ( Married (9 II 1699) to Nicola Barbapiccola Children: Carlo Giuseppe Nicola 11 (7 XI 170 1-
MELCHIORRA BRIGIDA SCARLATTI
(.'/;
DOM EN ICO SCARLATTI./ / Pieces de Clavecin pdU a mis en /
Concertos.
W.
/
/
of
line 10 from end. For 4.10, Washington, Library of Congress. New Haven, Yale School of Music [A presentation copy from Clementi to Samuel Weslev]. 10 from end. For 41 1, line
/*.
GRANDS
A SEPT PARTIES C
de
/
XII
bis.
TO /
410,
A PARIS /
/
.
.
Music. p.
404, line 32. For Largo (?), read Largo (derived from the second movement of K. 81),
4
.
dominico scarlatti. / Selected from his Suites de Lecons, / for the / Harpsichord or Piano Forte / and Revised zvith a Variety of Improvements / by / Ambrose pitman. / Volume the -first / [London, Preston, 1785, according to Hopkinson (p. 64)] New Haven, Yale School of
from the third movement of
tion
GUGLIELMI, et HAY-
/ DITERS,
.
Concerto
K.
20.
/
19.
(26).
404, line (89b)
ouvertures /
BAILLEUX
It.
1-.
404, line
/
DX; Arrangees / Pour le Clavecin ou Forte-Piano / et / deux sonaTES / Par / CLEMENTI, et SCAR-
portrait
Scarlatti's
QL'ATRE
18.
attribu-
a paris,
406, line 23. For Regie d'Or. read Regie d'Or. / 410, lines 1 3-16. Should read
Composees / Par
Domingo Antonio de Ve-
tion to
w /
Asturies. Prix 9. p.
Portuguese
lasco.
406, lines 20 to 22: Should read / Pour le / clavecin. / Composees / Par Dom 00 Scarlatti./ aitre de Clavecin du Prince des 6. Pieces
359, end. Add [Domenico's portrait has found in Alpiar^a, Portugal, bequest of Jose
The
lection. p.
+3.]
-1
[Violino
part only].
contents are those of Avison's col-
Scarlatti, his wife. Passages
in Solar Quintes,
Pincherle
Primo Concertino
trio Musical, IV, p.
J57,
Marc
Paris,
ScsrUtti.
(Paris,
servatoire
Res.
Siff:
Bibl.
2634,
Don du
Con-
fols.
4OV-
4+v)
Musique
[In
a
volume of seventeen such
works. See Appendix VI, 15. This
468
•
"Introdu^i©!^ of Tolo-
the
is
and
meo.] p.
before
415,
from
9
line
end.
Drams
del
(except
end)
There are arias, and the work is one oboe, two flutes,
[4.} strings
forty-seven
I2V)
and continuo. (Recorded, an edition bv Terenzio Z:r-
D
,
(Fols.
major,
8v-iov)
Temfo
?'i. ::..:—;
.-:_'j/;;.
;\;
in three ms. volumes.
for
Allegrissimo,
major,
and contin uo
rna)
for four missing pages at the
scored
G
[3.]
c
[The complete opera
di marci:':;
:
.
and continuo. (Fob.
A
[5.]
:-:c.
r-
1 1
minor, Allegro, Adagio,
•:••:-
i-i
...-.-:
::r.::- _:.
strings
:'::
in
(Fob. I3r-I4r) major, Allegro, Grace [6.]
dini,
a leaflet reprinting the
with
lines
415,
the
of
complete text Westminster,
opera,
by
The
:-:::::
violins
5
i8v)
1305.)] and 6 from end.
this opera
for
unknown,
is
before
line
:'::
.-...'.:-:
"
-.z-zt.
:
:
and continuo. (Fob. 14V-
C
major, Presto, Adagio e AUegrissmto, for strings and continuo. (Fob. iox-22v) [7.]
mask
remainder of the
415,
D
'.
OPW
Delete
p.
ir- 3 v)
(Fols.
major, Allegro, Grace,
Mtnuet, for transverse Bote, oboe, and continuo. (Fob. 4r-8r)
{'
Scarlet.
Convenraale
ioteca
Francesc:
p.
G
strings
Insert
'.
continuo.
[2.]
staccato,
4 from end.
[8.]
Domenico du Conser-
[9.]
B
flat
Allegro,
major,
Insert
Smfonia
del
Sif:
(Paris, Bibl.
Scarlatti.
2634, fols. 51V-52V) [In a volume of seventeen such
vatoire Res.
works. See Appendix VI. is
Ouverture
the
1
5.
m
me
Delete
6.
der of the music
417, after line ::x>.]
is
The
remain-
unknown.
6. Insert
(Hamburg
manuscript score, complete with recitatives, from the library of Friedrich Chrysander.] Sinionia Scarlatti.
del
Sig*:
(Paris, Bibl.
vatoire Res.
2634,
Domenico du Conser3~r-40r)
fols.
[In a volume of seventeen such works. See Appendix VI, 15. This the Ouverture or
Sinfonia
G
(Paris,
-..z.-z.
Yz'.i.
[This
is
-
Bibl.
du
Conservatoire Res. 2634)
strings
the Ouverture of Nor-
continuo. (Fols. 4OV-44V)
[This
is
the "Introduttionew of
Tolomec] major, AUegro-P
and continuo. [The Adagio, howand violin only.] (Fob. 45^490 ever, calls for flute, oboe
Contents: [1.]
Adagio, Allegrissimo fresto, strings
and con-
:-.--xC:
B flat major, I [13.] Grace, Pre-;c, for oboe, strings and
G
1
418, after line 2: Seventeen works each entitled
G
and con-
[ 1 1.] C major, Allegro, Adagio, Minuet, for oboe, strings and continuo. (Fols. 33V-36V)
[12.]
[Fall
is
Allegro,
Allegro, for oboe, strings
Minuet, for oboe,
tatsbibliothek)
p.
minor, Presto-Allegro,
tinuo. (Fols. 29:-
Seiro.]
p.
D
Minuet, for oboe, strings and continuo. (Fob. 26v-2v
This
TetU;
of
:;ntinuo. (Fob. 23r-26r)
egro,
Grace, Allegro, for cbc^
and continuo. (Fob. 4Qv-5ir)
A
[i6.]
major, Allegro, Grave, and con-
Paris,
tinue (Fols. 51V-52V) [This is the Ouverture of Te-
toire
tide in Sciro.]
sop.,
C
[17.] to,
Largo e
major, Allegro e Presstaccato, Presto, for
and continuo.
oboes, strings
53r~58v) [In [It
p.
two p.
ther operas by
Domenico
but they are for the
p.
identifiable.]
421,
lines
7
to
II.
Should read
Bologna, Archivio di San Petronio: A chi nacque injelice, alto &
Add
i960)
an
trof-po
injelice,
sop.
1728).
p.
Two 422,
5
[Inscribed for
Cafriccio
Tu mi
subject
logue
"2
fols.
&
There
sop.
chiedi are
all
Avison's adapta-
del
fugato
to
7,
Sig*.
the
ex-
cata-
Dent's Alessandro Scar-
Mi
Bibliothek, Sant
tormenta
Tu mi
il
chiedi
b
Tiranna
and
fensiero
a
mio ben
si
&
cont.
"fuga
dix
sara
[ca.
Ruscelletto ch e lungi dal
Gelo avvamfo considero Two further arias without face si
alle sue fene fub celar
apparently
at-
mare
e sento specific
in
Two
Favorite
London ... J. Cooper 1792]. See Appendix V C 21.
427,
p. y
no
V A 8. A sonata
Sonatas
Vedi Vafe Dice amor
Dona
indicated]
as
instru-
by Enrique Granados. See Appen-
Domeni-
7.
attribution
12" [no voices or
a
10 and 13 in VenSonatas Ineditas, transcribed
tiseis
co:
Che
words,
Hs 3960
Sonatas
6.
and strings [for soprano, except Vedi Vafe, which voice
for tenor], attributed to
[Score,
no
tributed to Durante).
feni in amore, alto for
Hs 3969
S.A.T.B.,
strings], also Sant
ments
Belle fufille care
Arias
is
S.A.T.B.,
Che che fretendi
independent.
entirely
no indication of voices or instruments. The same piece appears as a Fuga E stemforanea in (Bischofliche SantiniMunster
included,
in
not
are
[At-
cont.
latti.]
No
c.
identification
(London, BritMuseum, Egerton Ms. 2451, 92v-99r) The twelve parts
Should read Lug. 1702"]
6.
question,
to
of
ish
to
Domenico, but
tributed to
is
(London,
this
from K. 91, 89 and 81) Robert Lee.] 425, Appendix VII A 5, 6, and 8. Should read 5.
cantatas
lines
Cantatas
Che
Fugues
owe
[I
Scarlatti a dodici.
toire:
cept
Volk,
by Rudolf
edition
tions
cont.
p.
and
tarys
&
[Both published in an edition by Lino Bianchi, Milano, Ricordi.] Brussels, Bibliotheque du Conserva-
Arno
(Koln,
in
(as well as that of set
961
425, line 5. Add The fugue appears as number five of Thomas Roseingrave's Volun-
cont.
Ah
1
Ewerhart.
Scarlatti,
moment un-
core,
an edition by Lino Bianchi.
424, end. Published
fur-
still
mio
il
423, end. Add Published (Roma, de Santis, in
(Fols.
hand.]
a different
Chi in catene ha & cont.
probable that this volume
is
contains the ouvertures of
p.
422, lines 13 and 14. Should read Bibliotheque du Conserva-
p.
Allegro, for oboe, strings
.
.
.
after line
Two
18. Insert
end of a first two volumes edited by Worgan. (See Appendix V C 11 and 15.) This 11.
sonatas at the
manuscript bound with the
manuscript
contains
nineteen
so-
natas in a late eighteenth-century
47O
•
hand, originally numbered twelve
The
p.
[Appendix V A 5]); by Soler which is that listed in Appendix VII B 7; a sonata in C major ^4 P fesi0 and a sonata in C major 9/8 Prestissimo. Neither of these last two can be
p.
a sonata
accepted
as
They
are
(New Haven,
Yale
Scarlatti.
closer to Soler.
School of Music,
Ma
31 /Sea 7k/
135; the annotation "1754 Aranjuez" for K. 375 and 377; and a not entirely legible date [1752?] for K. 483. Vienna G 132,
contains the "Introduction" from Roseingrave's collection, but
also
V
vicembalistica
di
Domenico
Roma, 1956. 432, after line 8. Insert " 'Tetide in
unnumbered. notes on Longo's erroneous attributions of sources are based on my copy of his edition. I have dis-
Scar-
The
latti.
.
L'Opera ritrovata,"
di
Domenico
Sciro,'
281-289.
il
Principe Ferdinando de' Firenze,
p.
p.
434. Insert Kirnberger, J. P. Die Kunst des reinen Satzes in der Musik. Zwey-
und Konigsberg,
p.
alia
p.
p.
line 13. Insert
"Observations sur la valeur historique des compositions
Add
—
,
pour clavecin de Dominique Scarlatti." Congres inter nationale d'histoire de la musique. Paris, 1900. 438, lines 8 and 7 from end. Should read
471
p.
—
breve;
alia
breve read C;
354, column
451, K.
Munster,
5
451, K. 354, column Vienna. Delete II
.
p.
Notes.
445, K. 95. For read Vivace 449, K. 270, column Key, Time,
Insert II
435, after
are
444, K. 80, column Notes. Depreviously unpublished
Tempo. For C;
1776. p.
n, column XIV 18
442, K.
lete
Me-
1961.
ter Theil. Berlin
they
that
Also Venice
432. Insert
dici.
however,
not the same in different printings. p.
pp.
Fabbri, Mario. Alessandro Scarlatti
p.
covered,
Scarlatti
La Rassegna Musicale,
XXVII (1957),
e
Vienna volumes
A
Leipzig, 1957.] 430. Insert Arte ClaBogianckino, Massimo.
p.
end. Should read
to
perusal of the
revealed the date 1752 in Vienna G, in connection with K. 206, 119,
429, line 7 from end. Should read Berlin, 1753, 1762. [Reprinted in
p.
.)
441, line 10
A
facsimile, p.
(1956), pp. 165-193. 440, lines 20 and 21. Delete (For K. 95 the original tempo indication was not available.) 440, line 4 from end. For read
p.
C n.) p.
Annuario Musical, IV
.
Worgan
so-called
f
(1949), pp. 137-154. "Musicos de Mariana de Neuburgo y de la real capilla de Napoles," Annuario Musical, XI
K. 96, 121, 109, 54, 139, 143, 48, 144, 50, HO, 142, 181, 347, 108, 380, 381 (of which only 181, 347, 380 and 381 do not the
la
Scarlatti,"
nineteen sonatas
are
appear in manuscript
sobre
tos
manuscript
either
sonatas,
or printed).
N. A. "Documenam ilia de Domenico
Solar Quintes,
13-31
(obviously to follow a collection of
451,
5
K.
355,
column Munster.
Insert II 6 p.
451, K. 355, column Vienna. De6
lete II p.
481, right
read 269
column,
line
28.
For 296
FURTHER ADDITIONS April 1968 p. xvi, line 12.
Printed by
Should read
BORN
(Columbia, reissued on Od-
sonatas
footnote 29.
By October
Add new
footnote 30. I
Add
p. 412, at end. 1
an eighteenth-century impres-
ment of Sonata IV
patrick.
63) appears with
in Solos for
a German
for the Harpsichord or Violoncello compos'd by Signor Giovanni Adolf Hasse.
London,
Seconda.
p.
1
740].
(I
.
.
owe
.
John
this in-
440,
Insert
5.
Le Sonate di Domenico
Torino, 1967.
first line.
Should read
This catalogue 1 p. 440. 1
Addfootnote
The musical
incipits are given in
the catalogue in the tion of this book,
409, lines 4 to 2 from end. Should read
"LIBRO
For Ademollo, Alessandro,
437, after line
Scarlatti. p.
(demolished before 1967)
title
and
York, Johnson Reprint
Pestelli, Giorgio.
Add
[Main
manuscript
read Ademollo, Alessandro.
formation to John Parkinson.)
p.
New
p. 429, line 14.
Flute or Violin with a Thorough Bass
[c.
Keyboard Works, in
the
Corporation.
The Capriccio (K.
.
from
printed sources, edited by Ralph Kirk-
in Barcia.
only slight variants as the third move-
.
Addfootnote
Scarlatti: Complete
151, third paragraph, first sentence.
Fig. 40.
Hallowell and
J.
In preparation (1968), Domenico
facsimile
Suffix footnote
.
p. 64).]
412, line 16. Should read
p.
bought from Paul Proute
one described
Walsh
25,
George B. Vaughan.
sion of this engraving similar to the
Opera
HOL-
March
desirable. 1
In 1967
p.
N°. 45
[Advertised
Harborside, Maine,
since
Leganitos.
in Paris
BLAND
J. .
(Hopkinson,
1967 buildings
1948 had been constructed on the sites at 9 to 13, 35, 37 and 41 Calle de p. 118,
.
1786 in a catalogue of the publisher
yssey Records). p. 118,
.
as in preceding. After
VI:"]/Price 5 s ..od /LONDON
472
now
German
transla-
(1968) in prepa-
ration (Miinchen, Heinrich Ellermann
Verlag).
INDEX The
following index covers Chapters I-XII, and Appendices
While
it
includes informative material in footnotes,
bibliographical
IV.
and source references.
Abos, Girolamo, 10 Academia Real da Historia Portuguesa,
Aranjuez,
88-89, IX 9> I2 6, 166-167, 2-1 14 201, Fig. 28; embarkations, Arcadia, 37, 42-45* 47> S 1 2 j 82 Archi, Giovanni Antonio, 62
n
S
71
Acquaviva, Cardinal, 57 Addison, Joseph, quoted opera librettos, 48
on
Italian
393; on turns, 394} examples quoted, 369-371,
mordents,
musical
393 Alari, Paola, 52 Alba, third Duke of, 120
Alba, twelfth Duke of (earlier Duke of Huescar), 1 20-1 21 j DS's letter to, 120-121, Fig. 39 Albani, Cardinal, 19 Albano, Rosalina, 328 Albero, Sebastian, 122, 124
Domenico, 141, 155, 298 Alberti bass, 148, 200, 319
Alberti,
Alexander VIII (Pope), 38 d'Amato, Eleanora (grandmother
DS),
Aresti, Floriano,
Ariosti, Attilio,
l'Augier, 170; on DS's attitude towards
composition, 104 d'Aulnoy, Mme., 89; quoted on Aranjuez, 88 Avison, Charles, 124, 145, 284, 285,
286
125,
372. 379> 382, 393) quoted 388} musical example quoted, 388 Bach, Johann Sebastian, 8, 19, 25, 121, 369,
of
83, 184 Anzalone, Antonia (mother of DS). See Scarlatti, Antonia Anzalone Anzalone, musicians by the name of, 7 Afflauso Devoto, 52 Afflauso Gemtliaco, 59
Aquinas,
St.
Thomas,
12,
195, 211, 214, 219,
379>
194,
•
158,
155,
3^1) 382-383, 384} BrandenConcertos, Chromatic 229;
tions,
180,
390,
398;
Matthew
St.
Passion, 71, quoted 219, 220;
part
Inventions,
quoted, 222;
St.
Two-
Cantata
60 John Passion quoted, 321;
219 Bach, Wilhelm Friedemann,
8
Bach family, 149
Tommaso, 56, 57 Baini, Giuseppe, 65 Baldini, Innocenzo, 62 Bai,
Barbapiccola, Niccola, Baretti,
Joseph,
6,
quoted
17, 18
on
Mafra, 68 basso continuo. See continuo Bataglioli, Francisco, 110
Bauer, Luise, 134-135
117
153,
Fantasy, 206, 229; Goldberg Varia-
38; of Fernando VI, Queen Maria Barbara, and the Spanish Court, Fig. 38 Amor d'un'ombra, 53, 66. See also
d'Annunzio, Gabriele, // Piacere, 47 Antonio (Infant of Portugal), 71-73,
152,
burg
37,
Narciso.
142, 151,
188,
309, 314, 315, 322, 365, 367, 368,
101, Fig. 32; portraits of 118, Figs. 36, 38; of Farinelli,
d'Anglebert, Jean Henry, 379; musical example quoted, 386
125,
187,
222, 241, 252, 259, 280, 281, 306,
Essercizi,
31,
Emanuel, 8, 103, 188, 192, 211, 366, 367, 368,
Bach, Carl Philipp
5
Figs.
96
Ariosto, Lodovico, 23, 50, 120; chanted by Venetian fishermen, 23
Ambleto, 25, 61-63; singers, 62 Amiconi, Jacopo, 105, no, 113, 118119, 120, 132; frontispiece for DS's
DS,
153
Arger, Jane, 316
Agricola, Johann Friedrich, 365, 366; quoted on appoggiaturas, 369-371;
on
IA and
does not cover
it
473
'
visit
to
INDEX
guese "Scarlati," 327 Beethoven, Ludwig van, 125, 142, 253, 264, 281 Bellini, Vincenzo, 223 Benedict XIII (Pope), 127, 135
no,
land, 124; on Farinelli, 94-97,
Beckford, William, quoted on music at the Pieta in Venice, 255 on Italian opera audiences, 60-61; on Portu-
132; on Farinelli's keyboard instruments, 175-176} on Worgan and sonatas of DS, 124; on visit to DS's brother, 134, 328; on l'Augier and DS, 170; on A. Scarlatti's children,
328 Byfield, John, 32
Berenice, 64
Cachurro, Eugenio, 130 Caffarelli (Gaetano Majorano), 112
Bernabo, Giovanni Battista, 64 Bernacchi, Antonio, 94 Bernat-Veri, Jorge Bosch, 185
Callcott, W. H., 154 Camarero, Encarnacion
Bernini, Filippo, 4 Bernini, Gian Lorenzo, 4, 58 Bibbiena family, 13 Blainville, quoted
on Ottoboni, 38} on
Bordoni Borrel, Eugene, 316 Bosco Parhasio y 43 Braganza, Maria Barbara de (Infanta Princess
of
the
Queen of Spain). See Maria Barbara de Braganza Brahms, Johannes, 139, 276 Asturias, later
Broschi, Carlo. See Farinelli
President de, on Carlos III, 132; quoted on Ottoboni, 38; on Christmas Eve at the Vatican, 57 Biilow, Hans von, 125, 237 Buen Retiro (Madrid), 91, 97, 98, Brosses,
1 1
o- 1
1
Buonacorsi, Jacopo, 52 Burney, Charles, quoted on actresses, 6; on Naples conservatories, 9-10; on reputed pupils of A. Scarlatti, io;on Hasse's report of A. Scarlatti, 11; on music at the Pieta in Venice,
24; on Gasparini and A. Scarlatti, 25-26; on Italian audiences, 29-30; on Roseingrave, 30-32; on Roseingrave's account of DS's playing, 30-31; on performances of cantatas by A. Scarlatti, 39-40; on Narciso, 54 on Hasse's account of DS's playing) 75> on DS and popular music, 82, 167; on DS compared to C. P. E. Bach, 103; on DS's attitude towards i
composition, bling,
Canaletto, Antonio, 22 Canavari, Antonio, 64 Cantata da Recitarsi .
Bordoni, Faustina. See Hasse, Faustina
later
DS)
la Notte del SS mo Natale, 56 Cantata "fatta in Livorno," 15
Mme., 125, 139, 145, 393 Bolsena, Andrea Adami da, 58
Boivin,
Portugal,
of
135
Ottoboni's concerts, 40 Boiardo, Matteo Maria, 50
of
Scarlatti (great-
great-great-granddaughter
104; on DS and gam115; on DS's vogue in Eng*
.
.
Cantata Pastorale, 71 Capeci, Carlo Sigismondo, 34, 43, 52; librettos for operas by DS, 47-54, 66; and A. Scarlatti, 47, 65; aria text quoted, 48; argument of Tolonteo quoted, 51 ; preface of Amor d'un'ombra quoted, 53 Cappella Giulia, 56-59 Capranica theater, 62, 64, 65 Carafa, Domenico Martio (Duke of
Maddaloni), 4 Carbone, Antonia, 328 Caresana, Cristoforo, 20 Carlos II (King of Spain), 12, 90 Carlos III (King of Spain, earlier King of Naples), 85, 98, 131, 132, 185; Order of, 100; portrait, Fig. 27 Carneiro de Sousa, Joseph Dionisio, 69 Carpio, Eleanora del (Princess of Colobrano), 4
Casanova, Giacomo, 22, 24, 64, 81 Casini, Giovanni Maria, 41 Cat Fugue. See DS Sonata 30 Cerone, Domenico Pietro, 244 Cesti, Marcantonio, 41 Chambonnieres, J. C. de, 146 Charles
VI (Emperor
Chopin, Frederic,
of Austria), 95 197, 198-199,
191,
242, 306 Choron, A. E., 125 Clarke,
Edward, quoted on
Farinelli,
97 clavichord,
474
288;
as
mistranslation
Spanish clavicordio, 186
of
INDEX Clement IX (Pope), 37 Clementi, Muzio, 125, 146, 153, 154} DS, musical example of editing
equal temperament, 194, 241-242 Escorial, 90, Fig. 29 Essercizi fer Gravicembalo, 1 01-104,
99, 105-106, 109-110,
di Clodoveo, 34, 48 Giulio, librettos for operas
by
Convo, DS, 16
Coreggio, 175 Corelli, Arcangelo, 25, 35, 38, 39, 40, 42, 43-44, 57, 82, 150, 229, 276* portrait, Fig. 6
Corradini, Francesco, 98, no, 112 Corselli, Francesco, 98-99, no,
in,
112, 122, 243
Giovanni An-
96-97, 109-110, 116; his instruments, 175-178} portraits, 113, 118,
38; and DS, 97, 132-133, 138 Farnese, Isabel (Queen of Spain, wife of Felipe V), 85-86, 89, 93-94, 95" 9 6 97, 99, io 7, IQ 8, 126} portrait,
Cotumacci, Carlo, 10, 328 Couperin, Francois, 149- 168, 180, 187, 188, 280, 281, 316, 365, 382-383 Coxe, William, quoted on Farinelli, 9596, 109-110; on death of Felipe V, 106; on Fernando VI, 108 } on Queen Maria Barbara, 108 Crescimbeni, Giovanni Mario, 43; on meeting of the Arcadians, 44 } quoted on performance of Tolomeo, 52
(Queen of Sweden),
4, 5,
30,
31,
37,
115-116,
,
Fig. 27
Faulkner's Journal, quoted on Dublin concert by a Scarlatti, 328 Faustina. See Hasse, Faustina Bordoni Felipe (Duke of Parma, Infant of Spain), 177 Felipe II (King of Spain), 90, 120 Felipe
tonio
V
(King of Spain),
Fernando VI (King of Spain,
earlier
Prince of the Asturias), 78, 79-80, 83, 85, 89, 97, 98, 99, 106, 109, no} character, 86, 87, 107-108, 126, 131; musical activities, 82, 130,
1135 portraits, 118, Figs. 26, 27, 38}
"9
12
Ferrini
David, Jacques Louis, 47
(pianofortes), 15, Festeggio Armonico, 78 figured bass. See continuo
De
Fitzwilliam, Lord, 123-124
Sanctis, F., 12
La Dirindina, 63-64
176,
178
Flipart, Joseph, 118 Foggia, Antonio, 16 Fontana, Carlo, 49
Diruta, Girolamo, 147, 155 Dixit Dominus, 140
1
16, 81,
96,
and DS, 82, 83, 99 Fernando VII (King of Spain), 100,
Czerny, Carl, 164, 187
Elisi, Filippo,
13,
107} character, 84-85, 88, 90-91, 93-94, 105-106} portrait, Fig. 27 Feo, Francesco, 10 Fernandez, Diego, 176 89,
35-
36, 41, 43, 45, 46, 47 Cristofori, Bartolomeo, 15, 176, 178
Dominici, Bernardo de, quoted Flaminia Scarlatti and Solimena, Durante, Francesco, 141
94-98,
119, 125-126, 130-131, 132-133, 138, 169, 175-177, 184; character,
109-110,
La Conver stone
74,
in, 112-113,
166,
Figs.
397
(Carlo Broschi),
Farinelli
153, 154, 155, 158, 159, 187, 193, 213, 214, 238, 259, 276, 278,
Croce, Benedetto,
156-161, Figs.
Fabri, Annibale Pio, 64 Falla, Manuel de, 114
in,
See Archi,
144,
Euripides, 53
24-25 Contesa delle Stagioni y 65, 70-71 continuo, 122, 148, 149, 150, 151-152,
Cortoncina.
137,
32-34
Conca, Sebastiano, 38 Conforto, Domenico, quoted on Scarlatti family scandal, 6 Conforto, Nicolo, no, 112, 243 conservatories, Naples, 9-10 } Venice,
Cristina
125,
124,
quoted, 394"395 Colignani, Francesco, 65
on 8
Fortier,
Fontes,
B.,
10
Marques
de, 59, 93 Franceschiello, 39 Frederick the Great (of Prussia), 26}
quoted on Joao V, 68
12
*
475
INDEX 147-148, 153, 154, 276, 277; compared with DS, 147-148 Friedrich II der Grosse. See Frederick
Gonzaga, Maria Luisa, 45 Goya, Francisco de, 91, 92, 119, 120, 167, Fig. 42 La Granja, 89-90, 107
the Great Froberger, Johann Jacob, 153 Frugoni, Carlo Innocenzo, 43
Greco, Gaetano, 10, 149 Grimaldi, Nicolo, 20, 21-22, Grimani, Cardinal, 46
Fux, Johann Joseph, 328
Guadagni, Cardinal, 57
Gabrieli, Andrea,
Guardi, Francesco, 22 Guido. See Reni, Guido guitar, influence on DS, 196, 205-206,
Girolamo,
Frescobaldi,
27-28,
146,
147 Gabrieli, Giovanni, 147 Gaceta de Madrid, on opera at Buen Retiro, 111-112; quoted on music in Maria Barbara's quarters, 87 Galuppi, Baldassare, no, 298 Gasparini, Francesco, 25-27, 30, 32, 41, 61, 74, 208, 213, 231, 365, 393, 395; portrait, Fig. 4; and DS, 25-27, 42; quoted on Pasquini, 41 ; on Corelli, 42 musical example quoted, ;
224 Gustavus Adolphus (King of Sweden), 35 HafTner, Johann Ulrich,
125 Handel, George Frederic, 19, 32-34, 41, 45, 46, 56, 68, 146, 187; and DS,
32-34, 40, 151 harpsichord, handstops,
182-183, 284285; pedals, 182-183, 287; range, 176-183; registers, use of, 177, 180J 83, 197, 283-292; regulation, 180, 183; and organ style, 147-149, 152; sound as bounded by the organ, guitar, and orchestra, 194-196
394 Maria, 56 Gazeta de Lisboa, quoted on performance of Te Deum by DS, 69 ; on royal serenades, 70, 715 on DS ser-
Gasparri, Francesco
enades, 70, 71
Geminiani, Francesco, 10, 39, 231, 365,
harpsichords, lish,
395> 396 Genovesi, Domenico, 62 Gentili, Francesco
of
178;
Maria (father-in-law
Gaspar (brother-in-law of DS),
77
Margarita Rossetti (mother-inlaw of DS), 76, 77, 105, 117, 130 Gentili, Maria Catalina (first wife of DS). See Scarlatti, Maria Catalina Gentili,
Gentili
Johann Adolf, 10, 11, 27, 75, 96, 98, 110; arias sung by Farinelli, 96; on DS's playing, 75
Haydn, Joseph,
Giacomelli, Geminiano, 96 Gigli, Girolamo,
63 Giordano, Luca, 1 1 Giusti, Maria, 52 Giustini da Pistoia, Lodovico, 183 // Giustino, 16-17
72-73,
Domenico, 64
J. W. von, 174 Goldoni, Carlo, 22, 23, 329 Goldschmidt, Hugo, 393
Goethe,
French,
Hasse,
Gerber, Ernst Ludwig, 125 Gerstenberg, Walter, 142, 190
Gleichen, Baro;., quoted on VI, 131
15-16; Eng287; Flemish, 177, 177, 182; German,
Cristofori,
182,
182, 283-285 Hasse, Faustina Bordoni, 26
Gentili family, 77
Gizii,
177,
177; Italian, 15-16, 40, 176, 177, Kirkman, 15; 182-183, Fig. 3; modern, 177, 287; Ruckers, 178; Spanish, 175-180, 284; transposing, 175-177; Tschudi, 15; two-manual, 180-182; two-manual, use of, 180-
DS), 76
Gentili,
28
Fernando
103,
125,
174,
185,
253, 281 Heinichen, Johann David, 125, 395 Herrando, Jose, 112, 365 Herrera, Juan, 90 Hindemith, Paul, 306 The Historical Register, quoted on wed-
ding of Fernando VI and Maria Barbara, 79-80; on Spanish Court in Seville, 82; on Maria Barbara, 86 Hotz, Pierre du, 120, 121 Huescar, Duke of. See Alba, twelfth
Duke of Hummel, Johann Nepomuk, 187
476
INDEX Longo, Alessandro, edition of DS's so-
Ifigenia in Aulide, 50, 53 Ifigenia in Tauri, 50, 53
Innocent
natas,
XI (Pope), 37
Inquisition,
V
V (King
Joao 68,
71,
72,
59
of Portugal), 43, 6783,
93,
126} portrait,
245 and DS, 68, 71, 80, 99, 101-102, 137 Jolli, Antonio, no; painting of Naples, Fig.
Fig.
1
Jomelli, Nicolo,
Jose
no
(Crown Prince of Portugal,
later
Jose I), 78 Juvarra, Filippo, 49-50, 51, 58, 81, 90, 1595 portrait, Fig. 8; theater designs,
49-50, 62, DS, 49-5o> 93
Figs.
9-145
155, 156, 367, "corrections,"
and
394; 223,
226, 227-228, 230-231, 233, 234, 236, 237-241, 282, 283,-293, 380} insertions, 185, 215, 224, 231, 269, 282, 287, 293, 302, 303, 305, 310, 315, 380, 396, 397; omissions, 142, 153, 181, 284, 304, 390; quoted,
Spain, ^0-91
Intermedj Pastoralt, 63 Irene y 18-19 Isabel (Farnese). See Farnese, Isabel Iste Confessor, 58,
143,
alterations
and
223, 238, 239, 380 Lorenzani, Paolo, 56 Lorenzoni, Antonio, 365 Lotti, Antonio, 32 Louis XIV (King of France), 54, 109 lute, and harpsichord style, 147, 194, 196, 205 Louville, Marquis de, quoted on Felipe
V, 84
Macarti, Anastasia (second wife of DS). See Scarlatti, Anastasia Maxarti
Ximenes Madrid, character, 92 opera and theater, 97-99; Royal Palace, 91, 93, ;
Keeble, John, 32
Keene, Sir Benjamin, quoted on Fernando VI and Maria Barbara, 80, 86; on Escorial, 90; on Felipe V and music, 93-94; on Felipe
V
and Fari-
106; on Queen Maria Barbara, 108-109; on Spanish Court opera,
nelli,
111, 126; on musician refugees from Lisbon earthquake, 126
Kelway, Joseph, 125
122
Mafra, 68, 93 Mainwaring, John, quoted on Handel and DS, 32-34 Maio, Giuseppe de, 329 Manzuoli, Giovanni, 112 Maratta, Carlo, 40 Marcello, Benedetto, 26, 63, 151, 152; quoted on libretto prefaces, 17; on libretto dedications,
Kirkman (harpsichords), 15
Laborde, Lasses,
J.
of
B. de, 125
Richard,
quoted
on
Franz, 166-167, 199 Longhi, Pietro, 22
8
Princess
of
Queen of Spain),
no;
illness
the 15,
and
character, 1 30-131; 71-72, 86-87, 108-109, 126; musical activi-
death,
71-72, 78-79, 82, 83, 87, 113, 193; her keyboard instruments, 175180, 182, 183, 184; portraits, 78, 118, 193, Figs. 25, 27, 38; and DS, 7>> 7*> 78-79> 82, 83, 99, 102, 109, 114, 115-116, 117, 131, 137-138,
ties,
163,
1
70-1
7 1,
Maria Casimira
29
Liszt,
later
78-80, 89, 97, 107,
36-37 Lauda Jerusalem, 140 Legrenzi, Giovanni, 16 Lemoine, Alfred, 104-105; portrait of
DS, Fig. 35 Leo, Leonardo, 10, 329 Leopold I (Emperor of Austria), 72 Limojon de St. Didier, quoted on Venetian serenades, 23-24; on Venetian opera and theater audiences, 28-
Portugal,
Asturias, later
Roman
opera,
Lisbon, character, 67 Literes, Antonio, 122
1
Maria Antonia (Infanta of Spain), in Maria Barbara de Braganza (Infanta
Krieger, Johann Philipp, 41
37,
43.
45-47>
175
(Queen 54-55,
of 5«,
Poland), 59,
82,
93; her theater, 47-54 Mariani, Lorenzo, 64 Marianna (Queen of Portugal, wife of Joao V), 65, 70
477
INDEX Marpurg, Friedrich Wilhelm, 125; mu-
Nicolino. See Grimaldi, Nicolo
examples quoted, 382, 388 Martelli, Pier Jacopo, 43>,5 2 > 53 Martini, Padre G. B., 64; quoted on DS, 72 Mass in G minor, 121-122, Fig. 23 Maxarti, Anastasia (second wife of
notes inegalesy 316-317
DS). See Scarlatti, Anastasia Maxarti Ximenes Mazza, Jose, quoted on Seixas and DS,
mira, 47-54 > Rome, 36-37, 60-65; Venice, 23, 28-30 opera audiences, Italian, 28-30, 60-61 opera librettos, 17-18, 47-53, 56, 60,
sical
73 Medici, Cosimo III
de',
Medici, Ferdinando
de', 13, 15, 21, 22,
32 Medici, Gian Gastone
15
32 98-99,
de',
Mele, Giovanni Battista, 112
no,
99,
on Aranjuez per-
171 Migliavacca, Giovanni Ambrogio,
1 1
Mingotti, Regina, 112 Miserere in E minor, 59; in G minor, 58, Fig. 21 Mison, Luis, 1 12 Misson, F. M., quoted on Queen Cristina, 35 Mizler, Lorenz Christoph, 125 Moliere, J. B. C. de, 132 Montesquieu, quoted on spectacle, 60; on Italian theater, 60; on castrati,
Morellati, Paolo, 177
Mozart, Wolfgang Amadeus, 42,
53, 179, 185, 200,
214, 222, 253, 264, 269, 276, 280, 281, 288, 306, 314, 322, 368 Muffat, Georg, 41
Queen Maria Casi-
69-70
V Orlando,
50
ornamentation, 365-398 VOttavia, 16-17 Ottoboni, Pietro, Cardinal, 32, 37, 3839, 42, 43, 44, 47, 49, 5*, 5*, 58, 75, 93, I 5 I 5 ms concerts, 39-40; his theater, 39, 49-50; portrait, Fig. 7 Ovid, 53 Oxinaga, Joaquin, 122
Paganini, Nicolo, 197, 199 Pagano, Nicolo, 6, 7, 327, 328 Paita, Giovanni, 62
Giovanni Pierluigi da, 42,
Palestrina,
122, 148, 277 Pamphili, Benedetto, Cardinal, 4 82,
Pamphili
e
Pallavicini,
Flaminia, 4-5
Paolucci (singer), 40 Paradies, Domenico, 141
Pardo, 91, 167 Pariati, Pietro, 25, 61
Parrado, Anastasia Ximenes (second wife of DS). See Scarlatti, Anastasia
Naples, character,
3, 11-12; conserva9-10; Neapolitan characteris11-12; royal chapel, 12; royal
tories, tics,
132; Otto-
Pannini, Giovanni Paolo, 40-41 Panzacchi, Domenico, 112
64
174,
131,
132, 329;
62 operas by DS. See DS, operas organ, pieces by DS, 142, 185, 283284, 285; registration by DS, 185, 283-284, 285; and harpsichord style >
gier,
142,
125-126,
16-19, 98,
boni, 39, 49-50;
ish,
formances, 125-126; on Queen Maria Barbara's illness, 130-131; on l'Au-
125,
110-112,
Naples,
organs,
Metastasio, Pietro, 27, 43, 60, 74, 75, 98, no, in, 120, 125-126} letters
103,
Madrid and Spanish Court, 97-
147-149, 153, 194-195, 196 Madrid royal chapel, 185-186; Ottoboni, 40; Portuguese and Span-
Mengs, Anton Rafael, 81 Mereaux, Amedee, 104 Merulo, Claudio, 147, 277
to Farinelli quoted
opera,
palace, 12; view of, Fig. 1 Narciso, 31, 53-54, 66. See also
Amor
d'un'ombra Antonio, 62 Nebra, Jose (or Joseph) 122, 124, 243 Natilii,
Maxarti Ximenes Pasquini, Bernardo, 25, 35, 4*-4 2 , 43" 44, 82, 148, 149, 150, 152, 155, 190,
276; quoted on Palestrina, 42 Penna, Lorenzo, 365 Pergolesi, Giovanni Battista, 10 Peruzzi, Anna,
de,
83,
112,
1
12
Petrarca, Francesco, 43, 120 Petrarch. See Petrarca, Francesco
478
INDEX Philip
V
(King of Spain). See Felipe
Margarita (mother-in-law of Gentili, Margarita Ros-
Rossetti,
V
DS). See
pianoforte, 73, 288-289, 3195 DS's possible use of, 179, 183-185} sustaining pedal, 319
Rossi, Michelangelo, 148
pianofortes, 15, 175-176, 178-179, 1831855 converted into harpsichords,
Ruspoli, Prince, 52 Rutini, Giovanni Placido, 152
setti
Ruckers
(harpsichords),
178
15,
178} range, 179 Picchi, Giovanni, 147
Sabatini, F.,
church and conservatory (Venice), 24-25 Pistocchi, Francesco Antonio, 94 Pistocco. See Pistocchi, Francesco An-
Sabbatini, L. A., 365
Pieta,
83
Giovanni
Sacchetti,
Battista,
93
Sacchi, Giovenale, 134; quoted on Farinelli and DS, 1 1 6 ; on Farinelli's
instruments, 176 Saint-Lambert, Michel de, 316 Saint-Simon, L. de R., due de, on Queen Maria Casimira, 55; quoted on Ottoboni, 38; on Felipe V, 84,
tonio
Pitman, Ambrose, 125 Pitoni, Ottavio, 65
Pla, Jose, 33 Pla, Juan, 33
Baron, quoted on Venetian masquerades, 23} on Venetians, 24} on church of the Pieta in Venice, 24 Pollaroli, Carlo Francesco, 18, 149 Porpora, Nicolo, 10, 64, 94 Portugal, Court of, character, 67-68; royal chapel, 68-70, 71, 72, 80; serPollnitz,
enades, 70-71, 78 Poussin, Gaspard Dughet, 40 Provenzale, Francesco, 5, 13
A
Salve Regina in major, 121, 129 Salvi, Antonio, 64 Sannazaro, Jacopo, 12, 43 Santiago, Order of, 99-100, 134 Santini, Fortunato, 139 Sao Roque, church (Lisbon), 68, 69 Sarro, Domenico, 10, 329
Alessandro
Scarlatti,
(father
of
DS),
32, 69, 127, 327, 328, 329; birth, early life and marriage, 4; 31,
Purcell, Henry, 103, 174
establishment in Naples, 4-6; family
Quantz, Johann Joachim, 26, 74, 125, 365, 367; quoted on Gasparini, 26) on A. Scarlatti and DS playing, 75 Raaff, Anton,
1
7-8
life,
4,
16,
22,
;
employment, Rome,
35,
Naples, 4,
5,
4,
36, 37, 39, 46, 65; 11, 13, 16, 46; Court
of Tuscany, 13-16, 22; knighthood, 134; as teacher, 8, 10-11, 5, 100, 75; friendship with Gasparini, 25-
12
Rabaxa, Miguel, 122 Rallo, Rosa, 135 Rameau, Jean Philippe, 103, 149, 158,
26; in Arcadia, 43-44; playing, 7475; death and epitaph, 75; coat of arms, 75, 134, 326; keyboard mu-
188, 191, 194, 208, 211, 365 Raphael, 175 Reger, Max, 280 Renda, Domenico, 52 Reni, Guido, 175 Reynolds, Sir Joshua, 47 Rivera, Abate, 44 Rolli, Paolo, 43, 66 Rome, character, 14, 60; opera
sic,
i49>
*5 2 >
portrait, Fig.
l
5S> fingering,
2; and
DS,
188;
8, 9,
11,
13-14, 16, 19, 20, 21-22, 25-26, 3738, 45-47. 54, 56, 64-65, 66, 74-76. 103, 149; quoted on music, 11 ; letter presenting
DS
to
Ferdinando
de'
Medici, 21-22; Toccata Prima quot-
and 60-65 Roseingrave, Thomas, 30-32; edition of DS's sonatas, 124, 139, 145, 151, 155, 284, 285, 286, 393, 398; quoted, 388; friendship with DS, 30-31; and Narciso, 53, 66; on DS's plaving, 30-31 theater,
•
ed,
189
Scarlatti,
Scarlatti,
Alessandro (Abate), 43 Alessandro (nephew of DS),
329 Scarlatti,
Alexandro or Alessandro (son
of DS), 92, 129 Scarlatti,
479
son of
Alexandro Domingo (grand-
DS), 129
INDEX Scarlatti,
Maxarti
Anastasia
Ximenes
(second wife of DS), 116, 117, 127, 129,
130
Scarlatti, Scarlatti, 5. 6, 7,
Scarlatti,
Anna (niece of DS), 329 Anna Maria (aunt of DS), i7> 3^7 Antonia
(granddaughter
of
DS), 130 Scarlatti,
DS),
Antonia Anzalone (mother of
4, 7,
Scarlatti,
»*7
Antonio (son of DS),
117,
M6-152, 194; reputed England, 65-66, 70; confused identity, 65, 66, 74, 128, 164, 329; as teacher, 71-73, 78, 82, 123-124; mentioned as "Abbade," 71, 77; influence, 73, 123-125, 194; marriages, 76-77, 116; family life, 77, 83, 92, 105, 115-118, 127; descendants, 7677, 83, 100-101, 104, 130, 133-136, 140, 330; offspring, 83, 92, 105, 116-
Scarlatti,
Scarlatti,
(daughter of DS).
Barbara
Maria Barbara
See Scarlatti,
1 29-1 30; influence of Spain 81-82, 87, 88-91, 114-115, 116, 1 19-120, 167-168; of Spanish music and dance, 82, 91, 114-115, 160,
Scarlatti,
167-168, 202, 204-205, 221, 295-296,
Carlo (brother of DS), 328 Carlos (great-great-grandson
303, 311; knighthood, 99-100, 11 6, 134; opinions, 101-103, 104, 121; reputed gambling, 115-116; reputation,
DS), 135-136
Scarlatti,
DS,
(brother of DS),
Benedetto
328 Scarlatti,
to
117, 128,
on
130
of
28, 4i-4*> 73»
visit
Cristina
(sister
of
DS), 328
(y Aldama), Dionisio (greatgrandson of DS), 100-101, 135, 327,
124-125, 133, 164, 281; reminiscences of Neapolitan folkmusic, 129, 202-203;
Scarlatti
death, 129; legendary corpulence, 170-
33°
171; technique compared with that of contemporaries, 186-194; audiences for his playing, 186; improvising,
Scarlatti,
Domenico
(referred to as
DS).
birth, 4;
92,
1
186-187$
20-1 21, 139-140, Figs.
7-2 1) 39) portraits, 76-77) 104-105, 118, i35- I 36, i7*> 193-/94, Figs. 35, 36, 38; quoted, Essercizi dedication, 1
I
drid,
autographs, 58,
.
LIFE
domiciles, Naples, 45
118, Fig. 40; sojourns,
Ma-
101-102,
Na-
Duke
4-13, 16-20, 74; Rome, 13-14, 32-65, 74, 76-775 Florence, 14-15, 21 ; Pratolino, 14-155 Leghorn, 15; Venice, 22-32; Lisbon, 67-73, 7&>
ples,
83-87; Aranjuez, 88-89rL; La Granja, 89-9off., Escorial, 9ofF. ; MaSeville,
drid, 9 2ff.; early life, 4, 6, 7, 8, 9,
nicknamed Mimo,
1
1
74; education, 89, 11, 25-26; character, 12, 13-14, 19, 3o, 33» 56, 75-77) 79) 81-82, 89, 91, 103-105, 114-116, 119, 120-121, 126127; employment, Naples, 12,13; Rome, Maria Casimira, 46-54, Vatican, 56-
and A.
2
1
59, 65, Portuguese embassy, 59; Portu68-73; Spain, 80, 82, 83; and church music, Naples, 12; Vatican, 56-
59; Portugal, 68-70; Spain, 1 21-122, 129; evolution of style, 15, 17, 18-19,
1
Scarlatti.
;
letter
to
testament, 127-128;
See
Scarlatti,
Ales-
sandro, and DS. For further relation-
Antonio (Infant of Portugal), Farinelli, Fernando Gasparini, Handel, Joao V, Juvarra, Maria Barbara de Braganza, Roseingrave, Seixas, Soler. ships see
Arcadia, Capeci, VI, Frescobaldi,
8,
gal,
102-103;
preface,
of Alba,
2
cantatas,
.
WOR KS serenades,
oratorios,
and
other occasional pieces, 15, 34, 48, 52, 56, 59, 65, 70-71, 78: Afflauso De•votOy 52; Afflauso Genetliaco, 59; la Notte del Cantata da Recitarsi .
.
.
SS™ Natale, 56; Cantata "fatta in Livorno" 1 5 Cantata Pastorale, 7 1 Contesa delle Stagioni, 65, 70-71; La .
;
152, I55-M6, 159, 162-165, 168-170, 172-174; and public theater, 30, 61-66;
Conversione di Clodoveo, 48; 34, Festeggio Armonico, 78; Serenades (1722), 71 church music, 56-59, 68-70, 121122, 129, 140: Dixit Dominus, 140;
playing, 30-31, 33, 75, 186-194; musiantecedents and influences, 25, 27-
Iste Confessor, 58, 59; Lauda Jerusalem, 140; Mass in G minor, 121, Fig.
33-34, 51, 53-54, 58, 70-71, 75) 78, 82, 103-104, 114-115, 145-146, 149-
cal
480
;;
INDEX Scarlatti,
Domenico
{continued)
23; Miserere in E minor, 58, 59$ Miserere in G minor, 58, 59} Salve Regina in A major, ill, 1295 Stab at Mater, 58} Te Deum in C major, 69;
Te
Gloriosus, 69
operas, 16-19, 25, 31, 47"54-> 61-64,
66: Ambleto, 61-63; Amor d'un'ombra, 53, 66, see also Narciso; Berenice, 64;
La Dirindina, 63-64;
Ifigenia in Aulide,
5°> 53> Ifigenia in Tauri, 50, 53; // Giustino, 16-17; Intermedj Pastorali,
63;
L'lrene,
54,
66,
L
see
18-19; Narciso, 31, 53Amor d'un'ombra',
also
Orlando, 50; VOttavia, 16, 17; La 50; Tetide in Sciro, 50, 52, 53; Tolomeo, 50-52, 53 sonatas: Sonata 1, 210, quoted 182, 384; Sonata 2, 272; Sonata 3 (1), 255, y
Silvia,
256, *57> 258, 259, 262, 263, 265, 266, 274, 277; Sonata 5, quoted 386; Sonata 158; Sonata 7 (n), 255, 274, quoted 384, 385; Sonata 8, 161, 227, 398, quoted 396; Sonata 9, 203, quoted 6,
376; Sonata 11, 161; Sonata 12, 227, quoted 377; Sonata 14, 227; Sonata 16 (in), 255, 262, 274, 304; Sonata 18 (iv), 255, 256, 276, 287, 289, 291, 296, 299, quoted 215, 226; Sonata 19, 198, 268, quoted 372; Sonata 20, 160, quoted 201, 377; Sonata 21, 181,
quoted 376; Sonata 23, quoted 191; Sonata 24, 155, 160, 195, 286; Sonata 26, 205, 227, quoted 228; Sonata 28 (v), 276, 278; Sonata 29 (vi), 180, 213, 267, 270, 276, 286, 299, 300302, quoted Fig. 34; Sonata 30, 153, 161, 269; Sonata 31, 14.4., 155, 172, quoted 388; Sonata 32, 144, 151 ;
154,
Sonata 33, 144; Sonata 34, 144, 151 Sonata 35, 25, 33, 144, 151 ; Sonata 36, 144; Sonata 37, 144, 200, quoted 199; Sonata 38, 144; Sonata 39, 144, Sonata 41, 155; Sonata 40, 144, 151 x 44> 1 53> 185, 269; Sonata 42, 144, 151 Sonata 43, 162; Sonata 44 (vn), ;
nata 85, 33, 141, 144, 150, 151, 2695
Sonata 87, 161; Sonata 88, 144, 152, 269, 282, 283, 285; Sonata 89, 144, 152, 269, 304; Sonata 90, 144, 152, 269, 304; Sonata 91, 144, 152, .269, 304; Sonata 92, 161, 398; Sonata 93, 144, 1 53> 1 ^5i 2 96; Sonata 94, 141, 144, quoted entire 150; Sonata 96 (xm), 141, 163, 188, 200, 205, 213, 255, 261, 267, 291, 392, quoted 210, 234$ Sonata 99, 142; Sonata 100, 142; Sonata 102, 304; Sonata 103, 304; Sonata
105 (xiv), 210, 234, 255, 256, 257, 258, 263, 272, 303-304; quoted 221; Sonata 106, 143, 181, 274; Sonata 107, 143, 211, 274; Sonata 108, 201, quoted 375; Sonata 109, 142, 293, 398, quoted 181, 387; Sonata no, 142, 181, quoted 392; Sonata 113, 293; Sonata 114, 392; Sonata 115 (xv), 163, 209, 258, 259, 261, 298, 315, 392, 398; Sonata 116 (xvi), 163, 188, 243; Sonata 118, quoted 391; Sonata 119
(xvn), 189, 193, 197, 204, 231, 234, 392, quoted 162, 191,
304;
232; Sonata 192; Sonata 124, 315, quoted 231; Sonata 125, 265; Sonata 126, 187; Sonata 127, quoted 368, 383, 389; Sonata 130, 274; Sonata 132 (xix), 89, 248, 255,
181
2 59>
;
14J, 162, 191, 197-198, 211, 260, 262, 263, 277, 286, 393; Sonata 45, 152, 162; Sonata 46 (vin), 162, 249,
255, 258, 262, 287, 298, 299, Sonata 47, 162; Sonata 48, 162, Sonata 49, 162, 392; Sonata 50, 162; Sonata 51, 162, quoted 371,
Sonata 52 (xn), 161, 162, 192, 270, 278, 291, 388, 397; Sonata 53, 162, quoted 398; Sonata 54 (ix), 162, 193, 198, 276, 289, 295; Sonata 55, 141, 162; Sonata 56, 162; Sonata 57 (x), 162, 200, 255, 262, 269, 315; Sonata 58, 144, 153, 185, 269; Sonata 59, 144; Sonata 60, 144; Sonata 61, i44> 149, 200, 269; Sonata 62, 144, 276} Sonata 63, 33, 144, 151; Sonata 64, 144, 151; Sonata 69, 161; Sonata 70, 144, 282, 283, 285; Sonata 71, 144} Sonata 72, 144; Sonata 73, 144, 151, 282, 283, 285; Sonata 74, 144; Sonata 75, 144; Sonata 76, 144, 304; Sonata 77, 144, 151 ; Sonata 78, 141, 144, 150; Sonata 79, 144, 153, 304; Sonata 80, 144, quoted entire 152; Sonata 81, 144, 151, 269, 304; Sonata 82, 141, 144, 150, 151, 269; Sonata 83, 144, 151; Sonata 84 (xi), 161, 270; So-
141,
389;
48
261,
120
291,
(xvm),
263, 266, 267, 268, 273, 294, 392; Sonata 133 (xx), 211, 255, 259, 267, 273; Sonata 136, quoted 391;
INDEX Scarlatti,
Domenico
(continued)
2765 Sonata 14.1, 162} Sonata 143, 144, 162; Sonata 149, quoted 184} Sonata 150, 304} Sonata 159, 266} Sonata 172, 392} Sonata 175 (xxi), 255, 260, 261, 263, 286, 392, quoted
Sonata 140 (xxn), 188; Sonata 142, 162, 203; Sonata 148, 304; Sonata
(xxxiv), 169, 263, 265, 277} Sonata 296; Sonata 318, 241 $ Sonata 319, 241 } Sonata 321, 227, quoted 228} Sonata 328, 185, 282, 284, 285; Sonata 337, 169; Sonata 343, 1695 Sonata 347, 142 j Sonata 348, 141, 142; Sonata 350, 172) Sonata 351, 168, 2695 Sonata 355, quoted 376; Sonata 356, 190, 1985 Sonata 357, 188, 198, quoted 190, 374, 381 j Sonata 358, quoted 200 j Sonata 359, quoted 2 30$ Sonata 360, quoted 376} Sonata 366 (xxxv), 172, 188, 271, 277; Sonata 367 (xxxvi), 172, 188, 276} Sonata 368, quoted 378; Sonata 373, 277, 293} Sonata 379, quoted 188; Sonata 380, 172, 294} Sonata 381, 172 j So315,
233} Sonata 185, 311; Sonata 188, quoted 371, 395; Sonata 189, 188; Sonata 190, 220, 264; Sonata 194, quoted 389, 392; Sonata 199, quoted 3755 Sonata 206, 165, 216, 217, 218, 398, quoted 215, 218, 219, 238; Sonata 208 (xxm), 143, 167, 197, 239, 286, 289, 290, 291, quoted entire Figs. 4344; Sonata 209 (xxiv), 143, 167, 261, 271, 290, 291; Sonata 211, 188, 203 Sonata 213, 2695 Sonata 214, 269} Sonata 215 (xxv), 241, 249, 259, 268, 273> 279, 287, 290, quoted 236, 376, 380; Sonata 216 (xxvi), 258, 264, 268, quoted 235, 368; Sonata 222, quoted 223; Sonata 223, 197, 210, quoted 211; Sonata 224, 1 97 j Sonata 225, quoted 3805 Sonata 235, 269, quoted 378} Sonata 237, quoted 249; Sonata 238 (xxvn), 167, 201, 255, Sonata 256, 276, 398} 294, 239 ;
(xxvm), 168, 255, 258, 259, 263, 267, 276, 277, 2795 Sonata 246, 195, 215, quoted 3735 Sonata 249, 275; Sonata 253, 264; Sonata 254, 185; Sonata 255, 185 j Sonata 256, 266, quoted 216, 376, 380, 385, 389, 395; Sonata 258, 237; Sonata 259 (xxix), 1 ^5> 257, 258, 259, 290; Sonata 260 (xxx), 89, 165, 166, 247, 271, 273, 287, 289, 3205 Sonata 261, 165, 249, quoted 3735 Sonata 262, 1 65 j Sonata 263 (xxxi), 165, 260, 267, 268, 277, 2 7 8 > 279, 2 9o,
298, 302; Sonata 264
(xxxn),
165, 248, 254, 262, 266, 268, 270, 273, 290; Sonata 265, 168, 200, 269; Sonata 268, 250, Sonata 269, 269; Sonata 273, 269; Sonata 274, 143; Sonata 275, 143 j Sonata 276, i43> 269; Sonata 277, 269; Sonata
282, 2695 Sonata 284, 1 68, 169, 2695 Sonata 287, 142, 185, 269, 277, 282, 284, 285; Sonata 288, 142, 185, 269, 282, 284, 285; Sonata 296, 169; Sonata 298, 269, quoted 203; Sonata 299,
Sonata
,
Sonata 428, 173} Sonata 429, Sonata 431, 173, 2715 Sonata 1 73 j 434, 143; Sonata 435, i43> quoted 204; Sonata 436, 143, quoted 2045 Sonata 437, quoted 203; Sonata 443, 173; Sonata 444, 173; Sonata 445, 141; Sonata 446, 293; Sonata 455, 188 Sonata 456, 220 j Sonata 458, 170, quoted 387 j Sonata 460 (xlv), 248, 269, 270, 276, 278, quoted 377; Sonata 461 (xlvi), 200, 264, 267, 279; Sonata 463, quoted 394; Sonata 464,
2975
;
quoted
482
•
226;
Sonata
466,
234,
398}
}
INDEX Scarlatti,
Domenico
{continued)
5
3895
Sonata
490
(xlix),
143,
keyboard range, 144, 171-172, 179; use of two manuals, 180-182, 185 pianoforte, 178-179, 183-185} organ sonatas, 185-186; organ registration, 185, 283-284} sonatas with figured 180}
Sonata 470 (xlvii), 143, 172, 188, quoted 368; Sonata 471 (xlviii), 143, 3045 Sonata 474, quoted 3775 Sonata 477, 201} Sonata 478, 173; Sonata Sonata 481, 479> x 73> quoted 373 266, quoted 377; Sonata 482, 170; Sonata 484, quoted 192; Sonata 485, 1435 Sonata 486, 1435 Sonata 487, *43> 1 9 1 > 2 4 2 > quoted 199; Sonata 488, quoted 202; Sonata 489, quoted 201,
51-152; technique, 187-194} 188, 187-190} glissando, handcrossings, 161-162, 168, 246} 169-170, 181, 192; shadings of harpsichord sound, 196-199, 285-286, 288bass,
1
fingering,
289; orchestral effects, 196, 199-200, 205, 291-292, 295, 303; imitations of other instruments, 199-205, 227, 291292 sonatas, harmony, 157, 158-159, 207250: consistency, 207-208; 237^241} materials, 208-220 cadential vs. diatonic, 220-221} intensities, 222-223} peculiarities, 224-237} superpositions, 229-233} contractions and extensions, equal 2 33 _2 37> tonalities used, 241 temperament, modulation, 241-242} }
}
243-250 sonatas, form, 251-279: variety, 251252} Scarlatti sonata defined, 252-253} component sections, 253-265} compared with classical sonata, 253-255, 256, 258, 263-264, 266} main types of form, 265-269} exceptional forms, 269-271; fugues, 152-155; tonal structure, 271-275} treatment of thematic material, 253-271, 276-279 sonatas, performance, 280-323: fashions, 280-28 1 ideals, 281-282} DS's text, 282-283} dynamics and registration, 283-292} DS's tempo markings, 161, 292-293} performer's choice of tempo, 293-295} pulse, 294-298} effectiveness of corona, 298; relation of pulse and rhythm, 298-300; independence from bar line, 298-299; problems of rhythmical playing, 298-304; rhythmic perceptions and mathematical precision, 299-300; divisions of rhythmic impulse, 299-302; rhythmic polyphony, 295, 297, 298, 302-304} treatment of syncopations, 303-304; rhythmic activity and passivity, 309; units of rhythmic impulse, 309-310; negotiation of ritards and rubato, 318319 sonatas, performance (phrasing) slurs and staccato marks, 304; definition of phrasing, 305 methods of mark}
sonatas, origin, 114-116, 137; script
sources,
114,
137-1415
manuuse
of oi
term sonata and other qualifying titles T m 1 noi ru'icp arrangement, n rri n crt*rr\&Y\t UNI A7 pairwise 141 141-143} triptychs, 142-143; chronology, 144144146, 156, 170-172; instrumental treatment, 175-206: harpsichords used, 175• ;
"
483
:
;
INDEX Scarlatti,
Domenico
(continued)
310; phrasing based on vocal breathing and dance gesture, 307, 310-31 1; harmonic inflection, 312-316; physical basis of harmonic sensibility, 313-314; keyboard player's use of tension and release, 313-314; tonal inflection, 314inflection
315;
of
dissonant
92, 129
passing
315-317; relation of phrasing to tempo and rhythm, 308-312, 315-319 sonatas, ornamentation, 365-398
Scarlatti, 6,
Domingo
Nicolo (brother of DS), 328 Orencio (great-great-greatgrandson of DS), 1 36 •
Scarlatti,
Encarnacion
( great-great-great-granddau ghter
DS).
See
Camarero,
o
Encarnacion
Scarlatti
Fernando (son of DS), 83,
Scarlatti,
92, 117, 128, 129, 130, 133
DS),
7,
Francesco (uncle of DS),
5,
Flaminia
Scarlatti,
(sister
of
328
Scarlatti,
n6, 327 Scarlatti, Raimondo
(grand-
DS), 100, 130, 133, 135 Giulio Alessandro (Canon),
son of Scarlatti,
DS),
5»
(brother of DS),
117, 328
65,
Scarlatti,
Rosa (daughter of DS), 117,
130 Scarlatti,
Tommaso
(uncle of
DS),
5,
16-17, 18, 327, 328 Scarlatti family, 4-8, 17, 36, 43, 77, 6,
7>
100-101,
115-117,
129-130,
133-
Schubert, Franz, 103, 174 Scola, Adamo, 101 Scotti,
Annibale, Marquis, 98,
Giuseppe (unidentified), 17 Giuseppe (parentage uncer-
Scarlatti,
nephew of DS),
66, 128, 327,
329
Juan Antonio (son of DS),
Scarlatti,
9 2 > H7> i27> 129 Scarlatti (y Guillen), Julio 8 3>
great-great-great-grandson
(great-
of
DS),
MS Scarlatti,
Julito (great-great-greatgreat-great-grandson of DS), 136
Scarlatti,
Maria
no
Segovia, Andres, 196 Seixas, Carlos, 73-74,
150; and DS, 73-74 Serenade (for December 27, 1722), 71 Seville, Alcazar, 82, 87 Shakespeare, William, Hamlet, 62
La
Silvia,
(daughter
of
DS),
92, 129, 130
Maria Barbara (daughter of DS), 117, 118, 130 Scarlatti, Maria Catalina Gentili (first wife of DS), 76, 83, 92, 105, 116,
Scarlatti,
127; portrait, 76-77,
Jan
(King of Poland), 45,
46, 52
Maria Casimira (Queen of Poland). See Maria Casimira Soler, Antonio, 123-124, 140, 179, 186, 208, 211, 212, 224, 243-246, 251, 398; quoted on DS's harpsichord works, 140; on his notation of works of DS, 140; on part-writing, 224; on ornaments, 393; musical examples quoted, 212, 245, 246; and DS, 123-
Sobieski,
124, 140
Solimena, Francesco, 7-8 sonata, term as applied by DS, 141 sonatas, by DS. See DS, sonatas Spain, character,
135-136 •
50
Sobieski, Alessandro, 50, 51, 52, 55 Sobieski, Clementina, 55 Sobieski,
43 Scarlatti,
I, 7>
7,
Sidney, Sir Philip, 43
65, 327-328
Scarlatti (y Robles), Francisco
tain,
DS),
Scarlatti family papers, 135-136, 175
Eduardo, 327 (Camarero),
Scarlatti
7>
(brother of
136, 327-330
Scarlatti,
6,
Pietro
*9> 46, 327, 328, 329 Scarlatti, Pietro (grandfather of
130
8,
5,
Scarlatti,
DS), 117,
(son of
Melchiorra (aunt of DS),
327> 328
7>
Scarlatti,
tones,
Scarlatti,
Mariana (daughter of DS),
Scarlatti,
305; use of legato and staccato, 305-307, 308, 319-322; overlapping and sustaining of broken harmonies, 319-321; vocal inflection of melodic lines, 307-308; rhythmic values and groupings of melodic lines, 308ing phrasing,
484
of,
character,
81-82, 90-91; Court 107, 1 19-120,
83-87,
132; itinerary, 83, 88-90, 91-92, 107; opera and theater, 97-99, 110112, 125-126, 131, 132, orchestra,
INDEX 112, scenery, 110-112; royal chapel,
122-123, choir and orchestra, 123; residences. See Aranjuez, Buen Retiro, Escorial, La Granja, Madrid (Royal Palace), Pardo, Seville (Alcazar) Spain, music and dance, 82, 114-115, 204, 205, 221, 295-296, 114-115, 167, 204, 205, 221, 295-296,
160,
Mme.
Ursins,
des,
Uttini, Isabella,
1
85 12
167,
303; and DS, 81-82, 87, 160,
Vaureal (French ambassador), quoted on DS and Farinelli, 109 Velasquez, 92 Veneziano, Gaetano, 19 Venice, character, 22-24;
303 Stabat
Tosi, Pier Francesco, 365, 366 Trevisani, Francesco, 38 Tschudi (harpsichords), 15
Mater\ 58
Stafford, Lord, 57
Richard, quoted on Nicolo Grimaldi, 28
Steele,
Giuseppe,
24-25
;
conservato-
opera and theater, 23, 28-
30 Venier, G. B., 125 Verdi, Giuseppe, 103, 223 Vico, Giambattista, 12, 43
Stravinsky, Igor, 229 Tartini,
ries,
365
Tomas Luis de, 122 Vignola, Giuseppe, 329
Tasso, Torquato, 23 Tausig, Karl, 125 Taxis, Count, 176
Victoria,
Te Deunty 69 Te GloriosuSy 69
Queen Maria Casimira, 54-55 Vinci, Leonardo, 10, 329
Teatro Capranica (Rome), 62, 74, 65 Teatro de los Canos del Peral (Ma-
Vitali, Francesco, 62
drid), 98
Teatro San Bartolomeo (Naples), 329 Teatro San Carlo (Naples), 98, 132,
Lorenzo, 41
Vittorio
Amedeo
Vivaldi, Antonio,
Madrid, 97-985 Ottoboni, 39, 49-50 Queen Maria Casimira, 47j
54; Rome, 36-37, 60-65; Venice, 2830 thorough bass. See continuo. Tiepolo, Giovanni Battista, 81, 93,
term as applied by DS, 141 of
third
Duke of Alba), 120 Tolomeo, 50-52, 53, Fig. 22
Tor
Witvogel, G. F., 125
Worgan, John, Ximenes,
122,
Anastasia
Zipoli,
(second
Domenico, 149
Torres, Joseph, 122
Zuccari, Palazzo
theater
125 wife
Zappi, Giambattista, 44 Zarlino, Gioseffo, 244 Zeno, Apostolo, 25, 43, 61-62 Zuccari, Federigo, 47 Zuccari, Giacomo, 54
Nona
124,
of
DS). See Scarlatti, Anastasia Maxarti Ximenes
(Rome), 36 Torres, Cristoval Romero de, 117, 128 di
199; por-
Winckelmann, Johann Joachim, 47
119, 120, 265 Titian, 174, 175
(son
151,
25,
Fig. 5
Wesley, Charles, 125
in Sciro, 50, 52, 53
Hernando de
(King of Savoy),
.
theater,
toccata,
quoted on
Wagner, Richard, 280 Walther, Johann Gottfried, 125
Tencin, Cardinal, 57
Toledo,
II
de,
93 trait,
Telemann, Georg Philipp, 152 Tempesti, Domenico, 62
due
H.,
Vittori,
329
T elide
C. L.
Villars,
485
(Rome), 47
MUSIC
DOMENICO
SCARLATTI
RALPH KIRKPATRICK From the
NICO SCARLATTI:
original reviews of
ndtrw^o the subject which has ap"Not only the best examinatH^of peared up to the present time. It is the only one commensurate with [Scarlatti's] true artistic stature, and the significance of his Olin Downes, The New York Times music to his time and ours."
—
"Has brought the composer
to
life
man and
as a
an
as
artist
against an 18th-century background as vigorous and as detailed
by Canaletto Herald Tribune
as a picture
"The
entire
but for
book
is
.
.
." .
—
Virgil
New
Thomson,
York
remarkable not only for its completeness its material has not only been scrupu-
fullness as well;
its
assembled but has been wisely, ripely and significantly The whole is illuminated by the vivacious sensitivity to Albert Frankmusic for which Kirkpatrick's playing is famous." lously
used.
—
enstein,
New
York Herald Tribune
"However much unearthed
book
will
is
it
hard to believe that
admirable
this
not remain the standard work which every scholar and
The (London) Times
player of Scarlatti must consult."
"This fascinating
composer has found
Ralph Kirkpatrick's book deserves
when
all
a
RALPH KIRKPATRICK Quarterly as an "author rank performing
artist
has
worthy biographer.
a
encomiums
the
major work appears that Paul Henry Lang, The Saturday Review
order
may be
additional information about Scarlatti
the future,
in
fills
been described
who combines
that are in
need."
a long-felt
in
the
Musical
the qualities of a front
with those of a dedicated scholar."
the foremost American harpsichordist and
one of the
He
is
principal
on keyboard music of the eighteenth century. In addiand abroad, and to teaching at Yale University, Mr. Kirkpatrick spent twelve years completing this
authorities
tion to concerts, both here
!
book.
The
Italian
Government awarded Ralph
Kirkpatrick the Knight
Cross of the Order "al Merito della Repubblica" for his remarkable contributions as performer on behalf of
and
for this outstanding
— of
translation-
one
biography
of the
most
Domenico
— now available
original
in
to
Scarlatti
an
composers of
all
Italian
time.
x^FOLLO EDITIONS 425 PARK AVENUE SOUTH,
NEW YORK, N. Y.
1
001